Книго


 © Frederik Pohl. Beyond the blue event horizon (1980). GateWay #2.
 © Фредерик Пол. За синим горизонтом событий.
    by: 

GrAnD

   Date: 16.07.2002

   It was not easy to live, being young, being so completely alone. "Go to
the  gold, Wan, steal what you want, learn. Don't be afraid," the Dead Men
told him. But how could he not be afraid? The silly but worrisome Old Ones
used  the gold passages. They might be found anywhere in them, most likely
at  the  ends of them, where the gold skeins of symbols ran endlessly into
the center of things. That is, exactly where the Dead Men kept coaxing him
to go. Perhaps he had to go there, but he could not help being afraid.
   Wan did not know what would happen if the Old Ones ever caught him. The
Dead  Men  probably  knew,  but  he  could not make any sense out of their
ramblings  on  the  subject.  Once  long  ago,  when Wan was tiny-when his
parents were still alive, it was that long ago-his father had been caught.
He had been gone for a long time and then had come back to their green-lit
home.  He  was  shaking, and two-year-old Wan had seen that his father was
afraid and had screamed and roared because that was so frightening to him.
   Nevertheless he had to go to the gold, whether the grave old frog-jawed
ones  were  there  or not, because that was where the books were. The Dead
Men  were  well  enough.  But  they  were  tedious,  and touchy, and often
obsessed.  The  best  sources of knowledge were books, and to get them Wan
had to go where they were.
   The  books  were  in  the  passages that gleamed gold. There were other
passages,  green  and  red  and  blue,  but there were no books there. Wan
disliked the blue corridors, because they were cold and dead, but that was
where  the Dead Men were. The green was used up. He spent most of his time
where  the  winking red cobwebs of light were spread against the walls and
the  hoppers  still  held food; he was sure to be untroubled there, but he
was  also  alone.  The gold was still in use, and therefore rewarding, and
therefore  also  perilous.  And  now  he  was  there, cursing fretfully to
himself-but  under  his breath-because he was stuck. Bloody damn Dead Men!
Why did he listen to their blathering?
   He  huddled,  trembling,  in  the insufficient shelter of a berry bush,
while two of the foolish Old Ones stood thoughtfully plucking berries from
its  opposite side and placing them precisely into their froggy mouths. It
was  unusual,  really,  that they should be so idle. Among the reasons Wan
despised  the  Old  Ones was that they were always busy, always fixing and
carrying  and  chattering, as though driven. Yet here these two were, idle
as Wan himself.
   Both  of  them  had  scraggly  beards,  but  one  also had breasts. Wan
recognized  her  as a female he had seen a dozen times before; she was the
one  who  was  most  diligent  in pasting colored bits of something-paper?
plastic?-onto her sari, or sometimes onto her sallow, mottled skin. He did
not  think  they  would see him, but he was greatly relieved when, after a
time,  they  turned  together  and moved away. They did not speak. Wan had
almost  never  heard  any  of  the  grave  old frog-jaws speak. He did not
understand  them  when they did. Wan spoke six languages well-his father's
Spanish,  mother's English, the German, the Russian, the Cantonese and the
Finnish of one or another of the Dead Men. But what the frog-jaws spoke he
did not comprehend at all.
   As  soon  as  they  had  retreated down the golden corridor-quick, run,
grab!  Wan had three books and was gone, safely back in a red corridor. It
might  be  that  the  Old  Ones had seen him, or perhaps not. They did not
react  quickly. That was why he had been able to avoid them so long. A few
days  in  the  passages, and then he was gone. By the time they had become
aware he was around, he wasn't; he was back in the ship, away.
   He  carried  the  books  back  to  the ship on top of a pannier of food
packets.  The  drive  accumulators  were  nearly recharged. He could leave
whenever he liked, but it was better to charge them all the way and he did
not  think  there  was any need to hurry. He spent most of an hour filling
plastic bags with water for the tedious journey. What a pity there were no
readers  in  the  ship  to make it less tedious! And then, wearying of the
labor,  he  decided  to say good-bye to the Dead Men. They might, or might
not, respond, or even care. But he had no one else to talk to.
   Wan  was  fifteen  years  old,  tall,  stringy, very dark by nature and
darker  still  from  the lights in the ship, where he spent so much of his
time.  He was strong and self-reliant. He had to be. There was always food
in  the  hoppers,  and  other goods for the taking, when he dared. Once or
twice  a  year,  when  they  remembered, the Dead Men would catch him with
their little mobile machine and take him to a cubicle in the blue passages
for  a  boring  day  during  which he was given a rather complete physical
examination.  Sometimes  he  had  a tooth filled, usually he received some
long-acting  vitamin  and mineral shots, and once they had fitted him with
glasses.  But  he  refused  to  wear them. They also reminded him, when he
neglected  it  too  long,  to study and learn, both from them and from the
storehouses of books. He did not need much reminding. He enjoyed learning.
Apart  from  that, he was wholly on his own. If he wanted clothes, he went
into  the  gold  and  stole  them  from  the Old Ones. If he was bored, he
invented  something  to do. A few days in the passages, a few weeks on the
ship, a few more days in the other place, then back to repeat the process.
Time  passed. He had no one for company, had not had since he was four and
his parents disappeared, and had almost forgotten what it was like to have
a  friend.  He did not mind. His life seemed complete enough to him, since
he had no other life to compare it with.
   Sometimes  he  thought  it  would  be  nice  to  settle in one place or
another,  but  this  was  only  dreaming.  It  never  reached the stage of
intention. For more than eleven years he had been shuttling back and forth
like  this.  The  other place had things that civilization did not. It had
the dreaming room, where he could lie fiat and close his eyes and seem not
to feel alone. But he could not live there, in spite of plenty of food and
no  dangers, because the single water accumulator produced only a trickle.
Civilization  had much that the outpost did not have: the Dead Men and the
books, scary exploring and daring raids for clothes or trinkets, something
happening. But he could not live there either, because the frog-jaws would
surely catch him sooner or later. So he commuted.
   The  main lobby door to the place of the Dead Men did not open when Wan
stepped  on  the treadle. He almost bumped his nose. Surprised, he stopped
and  then  gingerly  pushed against the door, then harder. It took all his
strength  to  force  it open. Wan had never had to open it by hand before,
though  now and then it had hesitated and made disturbing noises. That was
an  annoyance. Wan had experienced machines that broke down before; it was
why the green corridors were no longer very useful. But that was only food
and  warmth, and there was plenty of that in the red, or even the gold. It
was  worrisome  that anything should go wrong around the Dead Men, because
if they broke down he had no others.
   Still,  all  looked  normal;  the  room  with the consoles was brightly
fluoresced,  the  temperature  was comfortable and he could hear the faint
drone  and  rare click of the Dead Men behind their panels as they thought
their  lonely, demented thoughts and did whatever they did when he was not
speaking  to  them.  He  sat  in his chair, shifting his rump as always to
accommodate to the ill-designed seat, and pulled the headset down over his
ears.
   "I am going to the outpost now," he said.
   There was no answer. He repeated it in all of his languages, but no one
seemed  to want to talk. That was a disappointment. Sometimes two or three
of  them  would be eager for company, maybe even more. Then they could all
have a nice, long chat, and it would be as though he were not really alone
at  all.  Almost as though he were part of a "family", a word he knew from
the  books and from what the Dead Men told him, but hardly remembered as a
reality.  That  was  good.  Almost  as good as when he was in the dreaming
place,  where  for  a  while he could have the illusion of being part of a
hundred  families,  a million families. Hosts of people! But that was more
than  he  could  handle  for  very  long. And so, when he had to leave the
outpost to return for water, and for the more tangible company of the Dead
Men,  he was never sorry. But he always wanted to come back to the cramped
couch  and  the  velvety  metal blanket that covered him in it, and to the
dreams.
   It  was  waiting  for  him; but he decided to give the Dead Men another
chance.  Even  when  they  were  not  eager  for talk, sometimes they were
interestable  if  addressed  directly.  He  thought for a moment, and then
dialed number fifty-seven.
   A  sad,  distant  voice in his ear was mumbling to itself: "...tried to
tell  him  about  the  missing  mass.  Mass! The only mass on his mind was
twenty  kilos  of  boobs and ass! That floozy, Doris. One look at her and,
oh, boy, forget about the mission, forget about me...
   Frowning,  Wan  poised  his  finger  to  cancel. Fifty-seven was such a
nuisance!  He  liked  to  listen  to  her when she made sense, because she
sounded  a  little  like  the way he remembered his mother. But she always
seemed  to  go  from  astrophysics  and space travel and other interesting
subjects  directly to her own troubles. He spat at the point in the panels
behind  which  he  had elected to believe fifty-seven lived-a trick he had
learned from the Old Ones-hoping she would say something interesting.
   But  she  didn't  seem  to  intend  to. Number fifty-seven-when she was
coherent  she  liked  to  be  called  Henrietta-was babbling on about high
redshifts  and  Arnold's  infidelities  with Doris. Whoever they were. "We
could  have  been  heroes,"  she  sobbed, "and a ten-million-dollar grant,
maybe  more,  who  knows  what  they'd pay for the drive? But they kept on
sneaking off in the lander, and "Who are you?"
   "I'm  Wan,"  the boy said, smiling encouragingly even though he did not
think  she  could  see  him. She seemed to be coming into one of her lucid
times.  Usually  she  didn't  know he was speaking to her. "Please keep on
talking."
   There  was a long silence, and then, "NGC 1199," she said. "Sagittarius
A West."
   Wan  waited politely. Another long pause, and then she said, "He didn't
care about proper motions. He made all his moves with Doris. Half his age!
And  the  brain  of a turnip. She should never have been on the mission in
the first place..."
   Wan  wobbled his head like a frog-jawed Old One. "You are very boring,"
he  said  severely,  and  switched  her off. He hesitated, then dialed the
professor,   number   fourteen:   although   Eliot  was  still  a  Harvard
undergraduate, his imagery was that of a fully mature man. And a genius at
that. 'I should have been a pair of ragged claws.' The self-deprecation of
mass  man  carried  to  its  symbolic  limit. How does he see himself? Not
merely  as  a  crustacean.  Not  even  as  a  crustacean,  only  the  very
abstraction  of a crustacean: claws. And ragged, at that. In the next line
we see..."
   Wan  spat  again at the panel as he disconnected; the whole face of the
wall  was  stained  with  the  marks of his displeasure. He liked when Doc
recited  poetry, not so much when he talked about it. With the craziest of
the  Dead  Men,  like fourteen and fifty-seven, you didn't have any choice
about what happened. They rarely responded, and almost never in a way that
seemed  relevant,  and  you  either  listened  to what they happened to be
saying or you turned them off.
   It  was almost time for him to go, but he tried one more time: the only
one with a three-digit number, his special friend, Tiny Jim. "Hello, Wan."
The  voice  was  sad  and  sweet.  It tingled in his mind, like the sudden
frisson  of  fear  that  he felt near the Old Ones. "It is you, Wan, isn't
it?"
   "That is a foolish question. Who else would it be?"
   "One  keeps  on hoping, Wan." There was a pause, then Tiny Jim suddenly
cackled,  "Have  I  told  you  the one about the priest, the rabbi and the
dervish who ran out of food on the planet made of pork?"
   "I  think you have, Tiny Jim, and anyway I don't want to hear any jokes
now."
   The invisible loudspeaker clicked and buzzed for a moment, and then the
Dead Man said, "Same old thing, Wan? You want to talk about sex again?"
   The boy kept his countenance impassive, but that familiar tingle inside
his lower abdomen responded. "We might as well, Tiny Jim."
   "You're  a  raunchy  stud for your age, Wan," the Dead Man offered; and
then,  "Tell  you about the time I almost got busted for a sex offense? It
was  hot  as hell. I was going home on the late train to Roselle Park, and
this  girl  came  in,  sat  across the aisle from me, put her feet up, and
began to fan herself with her skirt.
   Well,  what would you do? I looked, you know. And she kept on doing it,
and  I  kept  looking,  and finally around Highlands she complained to the
conductor  and he threw me off the train. Do you know what the funny thing
was?"
   Wan was rapt. "No, Tiny Jim," he breathed.
   "The funny thing was I'd missed my regular train. I had time to kill in
the  city,  so  I  went  to  a  porn  flick.  Two  hours of, my God, every
combination you could think of. The only way I could've seen more was with
a  proctoscope,  so  why was I slouching out over the aisle to peek at her
little white panties? But you know what was funnier than that?"
   "No, Tiny Jim."
   "She  was right! I was staring, all right. I'd just been watching acres
of  crotches  and boobs, but I couldn't take my eyes off hers! That wasn't
the  funniest thing, though. Do you want me to tell you the funniest thing
of all?"
   "Yes, please, Tiny Jim. I do."
   "Why,  she got off the train with me! And took me to her home, boy, and
we  just made out over and over, all night long. Never did catch her name.
What do you say to that, Wan?"
   "I say, is that true, Tiny Jim?"
   Pause. "Aw. No. You take all the fun out of things."
   Wan  said  severely, "I don't want a made-up story, Tiny Jim. I want to
learn  facts."  Wan  was angry, and thought of turning the Dead Man off to
punish him, but was not sure whom he would be punishing. "I wish you would
be nice, Tiny Jim," he coaxed.
   "Well..."  The  bodiless  mind  clicked  and  whispered to itself for a
moment,  sorting through its conversational gambits. Then it said, "Do you
want to know why mallard drakes rape their mates?"
   "No!"
   "I  think  you  really  do,  though,  Wan.  It's interesting. You can't
understand  primate  behavior  unless you comprehend the whole spectrum of
reproductive  strategies.  Even  strange  ones.  Even  the Acanthocephalan
worms.  They  practice rape, too, and do you know what Moniliformis dubius
does?  They  not  only rape their females, they even rape competing males.
With like plaster of Paris! So the poor Other Worm can't get it up!"
   "I don't want to hear all this, Tiny Jim."
   "But  it's  funny,  Wan!  That must be why they call him 'dubius'!" The
Dead Man was chuckling mechanically, a-heh! A-heh!
   "Stop  it,  Tiny  Jim!"  But  Wan  was  not just angry any more. He was
hooked.  It  was  his  favorite subject, as Tiny Jim's willingness to talk
about it, at length and in variety, was what made him Wan's favorite among
the  Dead  Men.  Wan  unwrapped a food packet and, munching, said, "What I
really want to hear is how to make out, Tiny Jim, please?"
   If the Dead Man had had a face it would have shown the strain of trying
to  keep  from laughing, but he said kindly, "'Kay, sonny. I know you keep
hoping. Let's see, did I tell you to watch their eyes?"
   "Yes,  Tiny  Jim.  You  said  if  their pupils dilate it means they are
sexually aroused."
   "Right.  And  I  mentioned  the  existence  of  the  sexually dimorphic
structures in the brain?"
   "I don't think I know what that means, exactly."
   "Well,  I  don't,  either, but it's anatomically so. They're different,
Wan, inside and out."
   "Please, Tiny Jim, keep telling me about the differences!" The Dead Man
did, and Wan listened absorbedly. There was always time to go to the ship,
and  Tiny  Jim  was  unusually coherent. All of the Dead Men had their own
special  subjects  that  they  zeroed in to talk about, as though each had
been  frozen  with  one  big  thought in his mind. But even on the favored
topics  you  could  not  always  expect them to make sense. Wan pushed the
mobile unit that they used to catch him-when it was working-out of the way
and sprawled on the floor, chin in hands, while the Dead Man chattered and
reminisced and explained courtship, and gifting, and making your move.
   It  was  fascinating,  even  though he had heard it before. He listened
until the Dead Man slowed down, hesitated, and stopped. Then the boy said,
to confirm a theory:
   "Teach  me,  Tiny  Jim.  I  read  a  book  in which a male and a female
copulated.  He  hit  her  on  the  head  and  copulated  her while she was
unconscious.  That appears to me an efficient way to 'love', Tiny Jim, but
in other stories it takes much longer. Why is this?"
   "That was not love, sonny. That was what I was telling you about. Rape.
Rape is a bad idea for people, even if it works for mallard ducks."
   Wan nodded and urged him on: "Why, Tiny Jim?"
   Pause.  "I  will  demonstrate it for you mathematically, Wan," the Dead
Man  said  at  last.  "Attractive sex objects may be defined as female, no
more  than  five  years  younger  than you are, no more than fifteen years
older. These figures are normalized to your present age, and are also only
approximate.  Attractive  sex  objects  may  further  be  characterized by
visual,  olfactory,  tactile,  and  aural qualities stimulating to you, in
descending  weighted  order of significance plotted against probability of
access. Do you understand me so far?"
   "Not really."
   Pause. "Well, that's all right for now. Now pay attention. On the basis
of those four preliminary traits, some females will attract you. Up to the
point  of  contact  you  will not know about other traits which may repel,
harm  or  detumesce  you. 5/28 of subjects will be menstruating. 3/87 will
have  gonorrhea, 2/95 syphilis. 1/17 will have excessive bodily hair, skin
blemishes  or  other  physical deformities concealed by clothing. Finally,
2/71  will  conduct  themselves  offensively during intercourse, i/i6 will
emit  an  unpleasant  odor,  3/7  will  resist  rape  so extensively as to
diminish  your  enjoyment; these are subjective values quantified to match
your known psychological profile. Cumulating these fractions, the odds are
better  than  six  to  one that you will not receive maximum pleasure from
rape."
   "Then I must not copulate a woman without wooing?"
   "That's right, boy. Not counting it's against the law."
   Wan  was  thoughtfully silent for a moment, then remembered to ask, "Is
all this true, Tiny Jim?"
   Cackle of glee. "Got you that time, kid! Every word."
   Wan  pouted  like a frog-jaw. "That was not very exciting, Tiny Jim. In
fact, you have detumesced me."
   "What  do you expect, kid?" Tiny Jim said sullenly. "You told me not to
make up any stories. Why are you being so unpleasant?"
   "I am getting ready to leave. I do not have much time."
   "You don't have anything else!" cackled Tiny Jim.
   "And you have nothing to say that I want to hear," said Wan cruelly. He
disconnected  them  all,  and angrily he went to the ship and squeezed the
launch control. It did not occur to him that he was being rude to the only
friends  he  had  in the universe. It had never occurred to him that their
feelings mattered.

   On  the  twelve  hundred  and eighty-second day of our all-expense-paid
joyride  on  the  way  to the Oort Cloud, the big excitement was the mail.
Vera  tinkled  joyously  and  we  all  came  to collect it. There were six
letters   for   my   horny  little  half-sister-inlaw  from  famous  movie
stars-well,   they're  not  all  movie  stars.  They're  just  famous  and
good-looking  jocks  that she writes to, because she's only fourteen years
old  and  needs  some  kind of male to dream about, and that write back to
her,  I  think, because their press agents tell them it's going to be good
publicity.  A  letter from the old country for Payter, my father-in-law. A
long  one,  in  German. They want him to come back to Dortmund and run for
mayor  or  Blirgermeister  or  something.  Assuming, of course, that he is
still  alive when he gets back, which is only an assumption for any of the
four of us. But they don't give up. Two private letters to my wife, Lurvy,
I  assume  from  ex-boyfriends.  And a letter to all of us from poor Trish
Bover's  widower,  or  maybe  husband, depending on whether you considered
Trish alive or dead:
   Have you seen any trace of Trish's ship?
                              Hanson Bover
   Short  and  sweet,  because that's all he could afford, I guess. I told
Vera  to  send  him  the same reply as always-"Sorry, no." I had plenty of
time  to  take  care of that correspondence, because there was nothing for
Paul C. Hall, who is me.
   There  is  usually  not much for me, which is one of the reasons I play
chess  a lot. Payter tells me I'm lucky to be on the mission at all, and I
suppose  I  wouldn't  be if he hadn't put his own money into it, financing
his  whole  family.  Also his skills, but we've all done that. Payter is a
food  chemist.  I'm a structural engineer. My wife, Dorema-it's better not
to  call  her  that,  and we mostly call her "Lurvy"-is a pilot. Damn good
one,  too.  Lurvy  is  younger  than  I am, but she was on Gateway for six
years.  Never  scored, came back next to broke, but she learned a lot. Not
just  about  piloting.  Sometimes I look at Lurvy's arms with the five Out
bangles,  one  for  each  of her Gateway missions; and her hands, hard and
sure  on the ship controls, warm and warming when we touch... I don't know
much about what happened to her on Gateway. Perhaps I shouldn't.
   And  the  other  one  is  her  little jailbait half-sister, Janine. Ak,
Janine!  Sometimes  she  was fourteen years old, and sometimes forty. When
she was fourteen she wrote her gushy letters to her movie stars and played
with her toys-a ragged, stuffed armadillo, a Heechee prayer fan (real) and
a  fire-pearl (fake) which her father had bought her to tempt her onto the
trip.  When  she was forty what she mostly wanted to play with was me. And
there  we  are. In each other's pockets for three and a half years. Trying
not to need to commit murder.
   We  were not the only ones in space. Once in a great while we would get
a  message  from  our  nearest neighbors, the Triton base or the exploring
ship that had got itself lost. But Triton, with Neptune, was well ahead of
us in its orbit-round-trip message time, three weeks. And the explorer had
no power to waste on us, though they were now only fifty light-hours away.
It was not like a friendly natter over the garden hedge.
   So what I did, I played a lot of chess with our shipboard computer.
   There's  not  an  awful  lot  to  do on the way to the Oort except play
games,  and  besides  it  was  a  good way to stay noncombatant in The War
Between  Two  Women that continually raged in our little ship. I can stand
my  father-in-law, if I have to. Mostly he keeps to himself, as much as he
can  in  four  hundred  cubic  meters.  I can't always stand his two crazy
daughters, even though I love them both.
   All  this would have been easier to take if we had had more room-I told
myself  that-but  there is no way to go for a cooling-down walk around the
block  when  you  are in a spaceship. Once In a while a quick EVA to check
the  side-cargos,  yes,  and  then  I  could look around-the sun still the
brightest star in its constellation, but only just; Sirius ahead of us was
brighter,  and  so  was  Alpha Centauri, off below the ecliptic and to the
side.  But that was only an hour at a time, and then back inside the ship.
Not  a  luxury  ship.  A  human-made antique of a spaceship that was never
planned  for  more than a six-month mission and that we had to stay cooped
up  in for three and a half years. My God! We must have been crazy to sign
up.  What  good is a couple million dollars when getting it drives you out
of your head?
   Our  shipboard  brain was a lot easier to get along with. When I played
chess  with  her,  hunched  over  the console with the big headset over my
ears,  I could shut out Lurvy and Janine. The brain's name was Vera, which
was  just  my  own  conceit  and  had  nothing to do with her, I mean its,
gender. Or with her truthfulness, either, because I had instructed her she
could  joke  with  me  sometimes.  When  Vera  was downlinked with the big
computers  that  were in orbit or back on Earth, she was very, very smart.
But  she  couldn't carry on a conversation that way, because of the 25-day
round-trip  communications  time,  and  so when she wasn't in link she was
very, very dumb-"Pawn to king's rook four, Vera."
   "Thank you..." Long pause, while she checked my parameters to make sure
who  she  was  talking  to  and  what she was supposed to be doing. "Paul.
Bishop takes knight."
   I could beat the ass off Vera when we played chess, unless she cheated.
How  did she cheat? Well, after I had won maybe two hundred games from her
she  won  one.  And  then  I  won  about  fifty, and then she won one, and
another,  and  for  the  next twenty games we were about even and then she
began  to  clobber  me every time. Until I figured out what she was doing.
She  was transmitting position and plans to the big computers on Earth and
then,  when  we recessed games, as we sometimes did, because Payter or one
of  the  women would drag me away from the set, she would have time to get
Downlink-Vera's  criticism  of  her  plans  and  suggestions  to amend her
strategies.  The  big  machines  would  tell  Vera  what  they  thought my
strategies  might  be,  and how to counteract them; and when Downlink-Vera
guessed right, Shipboard-Vera had me. I never bothered to make her stop. I
just  didn't  recess games any more, and then after a while we were so far
away  that  there  just wasn't time for her to get help and I went back to
beating her every game.
   And  the chess games were about the only games I won, those three and a
half  years.  There  was no way for me to win anything in the big one that
kept  going  on  between  my  wife, Lurvy, and her horny fourteen-year-old
half-sister,  Janine. Old Payter was a long time between begats, and Lurvy
tried  to  be  a  mother to Janine, who tried to be an enemy to Lurvy. And
succeeded.   It  wasn't  all  Janine's  fault.  Lurvy  would  take  a  few
drinks-that  was  her  way  of  relieving  the  boredom-and then she would
discover  that  Janine  had  used  her  toothbrush,  or  that  Janine  had
unwillingly  done as she had been told and cleaned up the food-preparation
area  before  it  began  to  stink,  but  hadn't  put  the organics in the
digester.  Then  they  were  off.  From time to time they would go through
ritualized  performances of woman talk, punctuated by explosions-"I really
love those blue pants on you, Janine. Do you want me to tack that seam?"
   "All  right, so I'm getting fat, is that what you're saying? Well, it's
better  than  drinking  myself  stupid  all  the  time!"-and  then back to
blow-drying  each  other's hair. And I would go back to playing chess with
Vera.  It was the only safe thing to do. Every time I tried to intervene I
achieved  instant  success  by  uniting  them  against  me:  "Fucking male
chauvinist pig, why don't you scrub the kitchen floor?"
   The  funny  thing  was,  I  did  love  them both. In different ways, of
course, though I had trouble getting that across to Janine.
   We  were  told  what  we  were  getting  into when we signed up for the
mission. Besides the regular long-voyage psychiatric briefing, all four of
us went through a dozen session hours on the problem during the preflight,
and what the shrink said boiled down to "do the best you can." It appeared
that  during  the  refamilying  process  I  would have to learn to parent.
Payter  was  too  old,  even  if  he  was the biological father. Lurvy was
undomestic,  as you would expect from a former Gateway pilot. It was up to
me; the shrink was very clear about that. It just didn't say how.
   So  there  I was at forty-one, umpty zillion kilometers from Earth, way
past  the  orbit  of  Pluto, about fifteen degrees out of the plane of the
ecliptic,  trying not to make love to my halfsister-in-law, trying to make
peace  with  my  wife, trying to maintain the truce with my father-in-law.
Those were the big things that I woke up with (every time I was allowed to
go to sleep), just staying alive for another day. To get my mind off them,
I would try to think about the two million dollars apiece we would get for
completing  the  mission. When even that failed I would try to think about
the  long-range  importance  of  our mission, not just to us, but to every
human being alive. That was real enough. If it all worked out, we would be
keeping most of the human race from dying of starvation.
   That  was  obviously important. Sometimes it even seemed important. But
it   was  the  human  race  that  had  jammed  us  all  into  this  smelly
concentration-camp  for  what  looked  like  forever; and there were times
when-you know?-I kind of hoped they would starve.
   Day  1283. I was just waking up when I heard Vera beeping and crackling
to  herself,  the way she does when there's an action message coming in. I
unzipped  the  restraining sheet and pushed myself out of our private, but
old Payter was already hanging over the printer.
   He  swore  creakily.  "Gott  sel  dammt!  We have a course changing." I
caught  hold  of  a rail and pushed myself over to see, but Janine, busily
inspecting  her cheekbones for pimples in the wall mirror, got there ahead
of  me.  She  ducked  her head in front of Payter's, read the message, and
slid  herself  away disdainfully. Payter worked his mouth for a minute and
then said savagely, "This does not interest you?" Janine shrugged minutely
without looking at him.
   Lurvy  was coming out of the private after me, zipping up her skivvies.
"Leave  her  alone,  Pa," she said. "Paul, go put some clothes on." It was
better  to  do what she said, besides which she was right. The best way to
stay  out of trouble with Janine was to behave like a puritan. By the time
I fished my shorts out of the tangle of sheets, Lurvy had already read the
message.  Reasonably  enough;  she was our pilot. She looked up, grinning.
"Paul!  We have to make a correction in about eleven hours, and maybe it's
the  last  one! Back away," she ordered Payter, who was still hanging over
the  terminal, and pulled herself down to work Vera's calculator keys. She
watched  while  the  trajectories  formed, pressed for a solution and then
crowed: "Seventy-three hours eight minutes to touchdown!"
   "I myself could have done that," her father complained.
   "Don't  be grouchy, Pa! Three days and we're there. Why, we ought to be
able to see it in the scopes when we turn!"
   Janine, back to picking at her cheekbones, commented over her shoulder,
"We could have been seeing it for months if somebody hadn't busted the big
scope."
   "Janine!"  Lurvy  was  marvelous  at holding her temper in-when she was
able  to  do  it  at all-and this time she managed to stay in control. She
said  in her voice of quiet reason, "Wouldn't you say this was an occasion
for  rejoicing, not for starting arguments? Of course you would, Janine. I
suggest we all have a drink-you, too."
   I stepped in quickly, belting my shorts-I knew the rest of that script.
"Are  you going to use the chemical rockets, Lurvy? Right, then Janine and
I  will  have  to  go out and check the side-cargos. Why don't we have the
drink when we come back?"
   Lurvy  smiled sunnily. "Good idea, dear. But perhaps Pa and I will have
one  short  one  now-then  we'll  join you for another round later, if you
like."
   "Suit  up,"  I  ordered  Janine,  preventing  her  from saying whatever
inflammatory  remark  was  in  her  mind.  She obviously had decided to be
placatory for the moment, because she did as she was told without comment.
We  checked  each  other's  seals,  let  Lurvy and Payter double-check us,
crowded  one by one into the exit and swung out into space on our tethers.
The  first thing we both did was look toward home-not very satisfying; the
sun  was  only  a  bright star and I couldn't see the Earth at all, though
Janine usually claimed she could.. The second thing was to look toward the
Food Factory, but I couldn't see anything there. One star looks a lot like
another  one, especially down to the lower limits of brightness when there
are fifty or sixty thousand of them in the sky.
   Janine  worked  quickly  and  efficiently, tapping the bolts of the big
ion-thrusters  strapped  to  the  side  of  our ship while I inspected for
tightness  in  the  steel straps. Janine was really not a bad kid. She was
fourteen years old and sexually excitable, true, but it was not at all her
fault  that  she  had no satisfactory person to practice being a woman on.
Except  me  and,  even less satisfactorily, her father. Everything checked
out, as of course we bad been pretty sure it would. She was waiting by the
stub of the big telescope's mounting by the time I finished, and a measure
of  her  good humor was that she didn't even say anything about who let it
crack  loose  and  float  away in the crazy time. I let her go back in the
ship  first.  I  took  an  extra couple of minutes to float out there. Not
because  I  particularly  enjoyed  the view. Only because those minutes in
space  were  about the only time I had had in three and a half years to be
anything approaching alone.
   We  were  still moving at better than three kilometers a second, but of
course  you  couldn't  tell that with nothing around to compare. It felt a
lot  as  though we weren't moving at all. It had felt that way, a lot, for
all  of  the  three  and  a half years. One of the stories we had all been
hearing  for  all  that time from old Peter-he pronounces it "Pay-ter"-was
about his father, the S. S. Werewolf. The werewolf couldn't have been more
than  sixteen when The Big One ended. His special job was transporting jet
engines to a Luftwaffe squadron that had just been fitted out with ME210s.
Payter  says  his  daddy went to his death apologizing for not getting the
engines  up  to  the squadron in time to cream the Lanes and the B-17s and
change   the   outcome  of  the  war.  We  all  thought  that  was  pretty
funny-anyway,  the  first time we heard it. But that wasn't the real funny
part The real funny part was how the old Nazi freighted them. With a team.
Not horses. Oxen. Not even pulling a wagon-it was a sledge! The newest, up
to  the minute, state of the art jet turbines-and what it took to get them
operational  was  a  tow-headed  kid  with  a willow switch, ankle deep in
cowflop.
   Hanging  there,  creeping  through space, on a trip that a Heechee ship
could have done in a day-if we had had one, and could have made it do what
we  wanted  it  to-I  felt  a kind of a sympathy with Payter's old man. It
wasn't that different with us. All we were missing was the cowflop.
   Day  1284. The course change went very smoothly, after we all struggled
into  our  life-support systems and wedged ourselves into our acceleration
seats,  neatly  fitted  to  our air and vital-signs packs. Considering the
tiny delta-V involved, it was hardly worth the effort. Not to mention that
there  wouldn't be much use in life-support systems if anything went wrong
enough for us to need them, five thousand A. U. s from home. But we did it
by the book, because that was the way we had been doing it for three and a
half years.
   And-after  we had turned, and the chemical rockets had done their thing
and  stopped and let the ion-thrusters take over again, and after Vera had
fumbled  and clucked and hesitantly announced that it looked all right, as
far  as  she  could  tell, of course pending confirmation some weeks later
from  Earth-we  saw it! Lurvy was the first one out of her seat and at the
visuals, and she snapped it into focus in a matter of seconds.
   We hung around, staring at it. The Food Factory!
   It  jiggled  annoyingly in the speculum, hard to keep in focus. Even an
ion  rocket contributes some vibration to a spaceship, and we were still a
long  way  off.  But it was there. It gleamed faintly blue in the darkness
punctuated  by  stars,  strangely  shaped.  It  was  the size of an office
building  and more oblong than anything else. But one end was rounded, and
one  side  seemed  to  have  a long, curved slice taken out of it. "Do you
think it's been hit by something?" Lurvy asked apprehensively.
   "Ah,  not  in  the  least,"  snapped  her  father.  "It  is  how it was
constructed! What do we know of Heechee design?"
   "How do you know that?" Lurvy asked, but her father didn't answer that;
didn't  have to, we all knew that he had no way to know, was only speaking
out  of  hope,  because  if it was damaged we were in trouble. Our bonuses
were  good  just  for  going out there, but our hopes for real payoff, the
only  kind  of payoff that would pay for seven round-trip years of misery,
rested  on  the  Food  Factory  being  operable. Or at least studyable and
copyable.  "Paul!"  Lurvy  said  suddenly.  "Look  at the side that's just
turning away-aren't those ships?"
   I  squinted,  trying  to make out what she saw. There were half a dozen
bulges  on the long, straight side of the artifact, three or four smallish
ones, two quite large. They looked like pictures I had seen of the Gateway
asteroid,   right  enough,  as  far  as  I  could  tell.  But-"You're  the
ex-prospector," I said. "What do you think?"
   "I  think  they  are. But, my God, did you see those two end Ones? They
were  huge.  I've  been in Ones and Threes, and I've seen plenty of Fives.
But  nothing  like that! They'd hold, I don't know, maybe fifty people! If
we had ships like that, Paul-If we had ships like that..."
   "If,  if,"  snarled  her father. "If we had such ships, and if we could
make  them  go  where we wanted, yes, the world would be ours! Let us hope
they still work. Let us hope any part of it works!"
   "It  will, Father," caroled a sweet voice from behind us, and we turned
to  see Janine, propped with one knee under the digester hose, holding out
a  squeeze  bottle  of  our  best home-made genuine recycled grain neutral
spirits. "I'd say this really calls for a celebration." She smiled.
   Lurvy looked at her thoughtfully, but her control was in good shape and
she only said, "Why, that's a nice idea, Janine. Pass it around."
   Janine  took  a  ladylike  small  swig  and handed it to her father. "I
thought you and Lurvy might like a nightcap," she said, after clearing her
throat-she had just graduated to drinking the hard stuff on her fourteenth
birthday,  still  did  not  like it, insisted on it only because it was an
adult prerogative.
   "Good  idea,"  Payter nodded. "I have been up now for, what is it, yes,
nearly  twenty  hours.  We  will all need our rest when we touch down," he
added,  handing  the  bottle  to my wife, who squeezed two ounces into her
well-practiced throat and said:
   "I'm  not  really sleepy yet. You know what I'd like to do? I'd like to
play Trish Bover's tape again."
   "Oh, God, Lurvy! We've all seen it a zillion times!"
   "I  know,  Janine.  You don't have to watch if you don't want to, but I
kept  wondering if one of those ships was Trish's and-Well, I just want to
look at it again."
   Janine's lips thinned, but the genes were strong and her control was as
good  as  her sister's when she wanted it to be-that was one of the things
we  were measured on, before they signed us for the mission. "I'll dial it
up,"  she  said, pushing herself over to Vera's keyboard. Payter shook his
head and retired to his own private, sliding the accordion-pleated barrier
into place to shut us out, and the rest of us gathered around the console.
Because it was tape we could get visual as well as sound, and in about ten
seconds  it  crackled  on and we could see poor, angry Trish Bover talking
into  the  camera  and  saying the last words anybody would ever hear from
her.
   Tragedy  can  only  be  tragic  just so long, and we'd heard it all for
three and a half years. Every once in a while we'd play the tape, and look
at  the  scenes  she  had  picked up with her handheld camera. And look at
them.  And  look  at them, freeze-frame and blowup, not because we thought
we'd  get  any  more  information  out  of them than Gateway Corporation's
people  already  had,  although  you never knew. Just because we wanted to
reassure  ourselves  it  was all worth it. The real tragedy was that Trish
didn't know what she had found.
   "This  is  Mission  Report  Oh-Seventy-Four  Dee  Nineteen," she began,
steadily  enough. Her sad, silly face was even trying to smile. "I seem to
be  in  trouble.  I  came  out  at a Heechee artifact kind of thing, and I
docked,  and  now  I can't get away. The lander rockets work. But the main
board  won't.  And I don't want to stay here till I starve." Starve! After
the  boffins  went over Trish's photos they identified what the "artifact"
was-the CHON-Food Factory they had been looking for.
   But  whether  it  was  worth  it  was still an open question, and Trish
surely  didn't  think  it  was worth it. What she thought was that she was
going  to die there, and for nothing, not even going to cash in her awards
for  the  mission. And then at the end, what she finally did, she tried to
make it back in the lander.
   She  got  into the lander and pointed it for the sun, and turned on the
motors,  and  took  a pill. Took a lot of pills; all she had. And then she
turned  the  freezer  up to max and got in and closed the door behind her.
"Defrost me when you find me," she said, "and remember my award."
   And maybe somebody would. When they found her. If they found her. Which
would  likely  be in about ten thousand years. By the time her faint radio
message  was  heard  by  anybody,  on  maybe  its five hundredth automatic
repetition, it was too late to matter to Trish; she never answered.
   Vera  finished  playing  the tape and quietly restowed it as the screen
went dark. "If Trish had been a real pilot instead of one of those Gateway
go-go  prospectors,  jump  in  and push the button and let the ship do its
thing,"  said Lurvy, not for the first time, "she would have known better.
She would have used what little delta-V she had in the lander to kill some
angular momentum instead of wasting it by pointing straight in."
   "Thank  you,  expert  rocket  pilot,"  I  said,  not for the first time
either. "So she could've counted on being inside the asteroids a whole lot
sooner, right? Maybe in as little as six or seven thousand years."
   Lurvy  shrugged.  "I'm  going  to bed," she said, taking a last squeeze
from the bottle. "You, Paul?"
   "Aw,  give me a break, will you?" Janine cut in. "I wanted Paul to help
me go over ignition procedures for the ionthrusters."
   Lurvy's guard went up at once. "You sure that's what you want him to go
over? Don't pout, Janine. You know you've gone over it plenty already, and
anyway it's Paul's job."
   "And what if Paul's out of action?" Janine demanded. "How do we know we
won't hit the crazy time just as we're doing it?"
   Well,  nobody  could  know  that,  and  as  a matter of fact I had been
forming  the  opinion  that we would. It came in cycles of about a hundred
and  thirty  days, give or take a dozen. We were pushing it close. I said,
"Actually, I'm a little tired, Janine. I promise we'll do it tomorrow." Or
whenever  one of the others was awake at the same time-the important thing
was  not  to  be  alone  with Janine. In a ship with the total cubage of a
motel  room,  you'd  be  surprised  how hard that is to arrange. Not hard.
Practically impossible.
   But  I  really wasn't tired, and when Lurvy was tucked alongside me and
out of it, her breathing too quiet to be called anything like a snore, but
diagnostic  of  sleep  all  the same, I stretched against the sheets, wide
awake, counting up our blessings. I needed to do that at least once a day.
When I could find any to count.
   This  time  I  found  a  good  one.  Four thousand A. U. plus is a long
trip-and  that's  as  the  crow  flies. Or, actually, as the photon fires,
because  of course there aren't a lot of crows in near-interstellar space.
Call  it  half  a  trillion kilometers, near enough. And we were spiraling
out,  which meant most of a revolution around the sun before we got there.
Our  track  wasn't  just  25  light-days,  it  was more like 60. And, even
power-on the whole way, we weren't coming up to anything like the speed of
light.  Three  and a half years... and all the way we were thinking, Jeez,
suppose  someone  figures  out  the  Heechee drive before we get there? It
wouldn't  have helped us a bit. It would've been a lot more than three and
a half years before they got around to doing all the things they wanted to
do  when  that  happened.  And  guess where on that list the job of coming
after us would have been?
   So  the  good  thing  I  found to dwell on was that at least we weren't
going to find the trip was for nothing, because we were almost there!
   All  that remained was to strap the big ion-thrusters onto it see if it
worked...  start  the slow return trip, shoving the thing back down toward
the Earth... and, somehow, survive till we got there. Call it, oh, another
four years; I went back to cherishing the fact that we were almost there.
   The  idea  of mining comets for food wasn't new, it went back to Krafft
Ehricke  in  the  1950s  anyway,  only  what  he suggested was that people
colonize  them.  It  made  sense.  Bring  along  a  little  iron and trace
elements-the  iron to build a place to live in, the trace elements to turn
CHON-chow into quiche lorraine or hamburgers-and you can live indefinitely
on  the  food around you. Because that's what comets are made of. A little
bit  of  dust,  a few rocks, and a hell of a lot of frozen gases. And what
are the gases? Oxygen. Nitrogen. Hydrogen. Carbon dioxide. Water. Methane.
Ammonia.  The  same  four  elements  over  and  over  again. CHON. Carbon,
hydrogen, oxygen, nitrogen, and what does CHON spell?
   Wrong.  What  comets are made of is the same thing you are made of, and
what C-H-O-N spells is "food."
   The  Oort  cloud  was  made up of millions of megaton-sized servings of
chow. Back on Earth there were ten or twelve billion hungry people looking
toward it and licking their lips.
   There  was  still a lot of argument about what comets were doing there,
out  in  the  cloud. It was still arguable about whether they even came in
families.  Opik  a  hundred  years ago said more than half the comets ever
sighted  fit  into well-defined groups, so there, and so did his followers
ever  since.  Whipple  said bullshit, there's not a group you can identify
that has more than three comets in it. And so did his followers. Then Oort
came  along  to  try to make sense of it. His idea was that there was this
great shell of comets all the hell around the solar system, and every once
in  a  while  the sun would reach out and pluck one out, and it would come
loping  in  to  perihelion.  Then we would have Halley's comet, or the one
that  was supposed to have been the Star of Bethlehem, or whatever. Then a
bunch  of  the  guys  began  kicking  that around, asking why exactly that
should  happen.  It  turned  out  it couldn't-not if you assume Maxwellian
distribution   for   the  Oort  cloud.  In  fact,  if  you  assume  normal
distribution,  you  also have to assume that there isn't any Oort cloud in
the first place. You can't get the observed nearly parabolic orbits out of
an Oort cloud; so said R. A. Lyttleton. But then somebody else said, well,
who  says the distribution can't be non-Maxwellian? And so it proved. It's
all  lumpy.  There are clusters of comets, and great volumes of space with
almost none.
   And  while  no doubt the Heechee had set their machine to graze in rich
comet pastures, that had been a lot of hundreds of thousands of years ago,
and  it  was now in a kind of cometary desert. If it worked, it had little
left to work on. (Maybe it had eaten them all up?)
   I fell asleep wondering what CHON-food would taste like. It couldn't be
a lot worse than what we had been eating for three and a half years, which
was mainly recycled us.
   Day 1285. Janine almost got to me today. I was playing chess with Vera,
everybody  asleep,  happy  enough,  when  her  hands  came  around the big
earpieces and covered my eyes. "Cut it out, Janine," I said. When I turned
around she was pouting.
   "I just wanted to use Vera," she said.
   "For what? Another hot love letter to one of your movie stars?"
   "You  treat  me  like  a  child," she said. For a wonder, she was fully
dressed; her face shone, her hair was damp and pulled down straight to the
back  of  her  neck.  She  looked  like  your  model  serious-minded young
teen-ager.  "What I wanted," she said, "was to go over thruster alignments
with Vera. Since you won't help me."
   One  of  the reasons Janine was along with us was that she was smart-we
all  were; had to be to be accepted for the mission. And one of the things
she  was  smart  at was getting at me. "All right," I said, "you're right,
what  can  I  say?  Vera?  Recess  the  game  and  give us the program for
providing propulsion for the Food Factory."
   "Certainly," she said,"... Paul." And the board disappeared, and in its
place  she  built up a holo of the Food Factory. She had updated her specs
from  the  telescopic  views we had obtained, and so it was shown complete
with  its  dust cloud and the glob of dirty snowball adhering to one side.
"Cancel the cloud, Vera," I ordered, and the blur disappeared and the Food
Factory  showed  up like an engineering drawing. "Okay, Janine. What's the
first step?"
   "We dock," she said at once. "We hope the lander facsimile fits, and we
dock  it.  If  we  can't  dock we link up with braces to some point on the
surface; either way, our ship becomes a rigid part of the structure, so we
can use our thrust for attitude control."
   "Next?"
   "We  all  dismount  the  number-one  thruster  and  brace it to the aft
section  of the factory-there." She pointed out the place on the holo. "We
slave it to the board here, and as soon as it is installed we activate."
   "Guidance?"
   "Vera  will  give  us  coordinates-oops,  sorry,  Paul."  She  had been
drifting  out  of orientation with me and Vera, and she caught my shoulder
with  her  hand  to  pull  herself back. She kept her hand there. "Then we
repeat  the process with the other five. By the time we have all six going
we  have  a  delta-V  of two meters per second per second, running off the
239pu generator. Then we start spreading the mirror foils..."
   "No."
   "Oh,  sure,  we  inspect  all  the moorings to see that they're holding
under  thrust  first;  well,  I  take that for granted. Then we start with
solar power, and when we've got it all spread we should be up to maybe two
and a quarter meters..."
   "At  first,  Janine.  The  closer we get in, the more power we get. All
right.  Now  let's go through the hardware. You're bracing our ship to the
Heechee-metal hull; how do you go about it?"
   And  she  told me, and kept on telling me; and by gosh she knew it all.
The only thing was her hand on my shoulder became a hand under my arm, and
it  moved  across  my  chest,  and began to roam; and all the time she was
giving  me  the  specs  for coldwelding and how to get collimation for the
thrusters, her face serious and concerned, and her hand stroking my belly.
Fourteen  years  old.  But  she didn't look fourteen, or feel fourteen, or
smell  fourteen-she'd  been  into Lurvy's quarter of an ounce of remaining
Chanel. What saved me was Vera; good thing, everything considered, because
I  was  losing  interest in saving myself. The holo froze while Janine was
adding  an  extra  strut  to  one of the thrusters, and Vera said, "Action
message coming in. Shall I read it out for you... Paul?"
   "Go  ahead." Janine withdrew her hand slightly as the holo winked away,
and the screen produced the message:

          We've  been  requested  to  ask you for a favor. The next
       outbreak  of  the  130-day  syndrome  is  estimated to occur
       within  the next two months. HEW thinks that a full-coverage
       visual  of  all  of  you  describing  the  Food  Factory and
       emphasizing  how  well things are going and how important it
       is will significantly reduce tensions and consequent damage.
       Please  follow  the  accompanying script. Request compliance
       soonest  possible so that we may tape and schedule broadcast
       for maximum effect.

   "Shall I give you the script?" Vera asked.
   "Go ahead-hard copy," I added.
   "Very well... Paul." The screen turned pale and empty, and she began to
squirt  out  typed  sheets of paper. I picked them up to read while I sent
Janine  off to wake up her sister and father. She didn't object. She loved
doing television for the folks back home, it always meant fan letters from
famous people for the brave young astronette.
   The  script was what you would expect. I programmed Vera to roll it for
us line by line, and we could have read it in ten minutes. That was not to
be.  Janine insisted her sister had to do her hair, and even Lurvy decided
she  had to make up and Payter wanted his beard trimmed. By me. So, all in
all,  counting  four rehearsals, we blew six hours, not counting a month's
power,  on  the  TV  broadcast. We all gathered before the camera, looking
domestic and dedicated, and explained what we were going to be doing to an
audience  that  wouldn't  be seeing it for a month, by which time we would
already  be  there.  But if it would do them any good, it was worth it. We
had  been through eight or nine attacks of the 130-day fever since we took
off  from  Earth.  Each  time  it  had  its  own  syndrome,  satyriasis or
depression,  lethargy or light-hearted joy. I had been outside when one of
them  hit-that  was how the big telescope got broken-and it had been about
an  even  bet  whether I would ever make it back inside the ship. I simply
didn't  care.  I  was  hallucinating loneliness and anger, being chased by
apelike  creatures  and  wishing  I  were  dead.  And  back on Earth, with
billions  of people, nearly all of them affected to one degree or another,
in  one  or  another  way,  each time it hit it was pure bell. It had been
building  up  for  ten  years-eight  since  it  was  first identified as a
recurring scourge-and no one knew what caused it.
   But everybody wanted it stopped.
   Day  1288. Docking day! Payter was at the controls, wouldn't trust Vera
on  a  thing  like that, while Lurvy was strapped in over his head to call
off  course  corrections.  We  came to relative rest just outside the thin
cloud of particles and gas, no more than a kilometer from the Food Factory
itself.
   From  where  Janine  and I were sitting in our life-support gear it was
hard  to  see  what  was  going on outside. Past Payter's head and Lurvy's
gesticulating  arms  we  could catch glimpses of the enormous old machine,
but  only  glimpses.  no more than a glimmer of blue-lit metal and now and
then a docking pit or the shape of one of the old ships-
   "Hellfire! I'm drifting away!"
   "No, you aren't, Payter. The goddam thing's got a little acceleration!"
   -and  maybe  a star. We didn't really need the life-support; Payter was
nudging us gently as he would a jellyfish in a tank. I wanted to ask where
the  acceleration  came  from,  or  why; but the two pilots were busy, and
besides I did not suppose they knew the answer.
   "That's  got it. Now bring her in to that center docking pit, middle of
that row of three."
   "Why that one?"
   "Why not? Because I say so!"
   And  we  edged in for a minute or two, and came to relative rest again.
And  we  matched  and locked. The Heechee capsule at the forward end mated
neatly with the ancient pit.
   Lurvy  reached  down  and  killed  the board, and we all looked at each
other. We were there.
   Or, to put it another way, we were halfway. Halfway home.
   Day  1290.  It  was  no  surprise  that  the  Heechee  had  breathed an
atmosphere  we  could survive in. The surprise was that any of it was left
in  this place, after all the tens or hundreds of thousands of years since
anyone  breathed any of it. And that was not the only surprise. The others
came later, and were scarier and worse.
   It  was  not  just the atmosphere that had survived. The whole ship had
survived-in  working  condition!  We knew it as soon as we were inside and
the samplers had shown us we could take off our helmets. The blue-gleaming
metal  walls  were  warm  to  the touch, and we could feel a faint, steady
vibration.  The temperature was around twelve-cool, but no worse than some
Earthside  homes  I've  been in. Do you want to guess what the first words
were  spoken  by  human  beings  inside  the  Food Factory? They came from
Payter, and they were:
   "Ten million dollars! Jesus, maybe even a hundred!"
   And  if  he  hadn't  said it, one or another of us would. Our bonus was
going  to  be  astronomical.  Trish's  report hadn't said whether the Food
Factory  was  operational  or  not-for  all  we knew, it could have been a
riddled hulk, empty of anything that made it worthwhile. But here we had a
complete  and  major  Heechee  artifact,  in  working condition! There was
simply  nothing  like  it  to judge against. The tunnels on Venus, the old
ships,  even Gateway itself had been carefully emptied of nearly all their
contents  half  a  million  years  before. This place was furnished! Warm,
livable, thrumming, soaked with weak microwave radiation, it was alive. It
did not seem old at all.
   We  had little chance to explore; the sooner we got the thing moving in
toward  Earth,  the  sooner  we  would  cash in on its promise. We allowed
ourselves  an  hour  to  roam  around  in  the breathable air, poking into
chambers  filled  with  great  gray and blue metal shapes, slithering down
corridors,  eating  as  we  wandered,  telling  each other over the pocket
communicators  (and  relayed  through  Vera  to Earth) what we found. Then
work. We suited up again and began the job of derigging the side-cargos.
   And that was where we ran into the first trouble.
   The  Food Factory was not in free orbit. It was accelerating. Some sort
of thrust was driving it. It was not great, less than one percent of a G.
   But the electric rocket assemblies weighed more than ten tons each.
   Even  at  one  percent  of  perceived weight, that meant over a hundred
kilograms  of  weight, not counting ten tons worth of inertia. As we began
to unship the first one it pulled itself free at one end and began to fall
away. Payter was there to catch it, but it was more than he could hold for
long;  I  pulled myself over and grabbed the side-cargo with one hand, the
brace it had been fastened to with the other, and we managed to keep it in
place until Janine could secure a cable over it.
   Then we retired inside the ship to think things over.
   We were already exhausted. After three-plus years in confined quarters,
we  were  not  used  to  hard work. Vera's bio-assay unit reported we were
accumulating  fatigue poisons. We bickered and worried at each other for a
while,  then Payter and Lurvy went to sleep while Janine and I schemed out
a  rigging that would let us secure each side-cargo before it was released
and  swing  it  around  the  Food Factory on three long cables, belayed by
smaller guiding cables so that it would not smash into the hull at the far
end of its travel and pound itself into scrap. We had allowed ten hours to
move  a rocket into position. It took three days for the first one. By the
time  we  had  it  secured  we  were stark, staring wrecks, our heartbeats
pounding, our muscles one solid ache. We took a full sleep shift and a few
hours  of  loafing  around the interior of the Food Factory before we went
back  to  securing  the rocket so that it could be started. Payter was the
most  energetic  of us; he went prowling as far as he could go down half a
dozen  corridors.  "All come to dead ends," he reported when he came back.
"Looks  like  the  part  we  can  reach  is  only  about  a  tenth  of the
object-'less we cut holes through the walls."
   "Not now," I said.
   "Not  ever!"  said  Lurvy  strongly. "All we do is get this thing back.
Anybody wants to start cutting it up, it will be after we've collected our
money!"  She  rubbed  her  biceps, arms folded across her chest, and added
regretfully, "And we might as well get started on securing the rocket."
   It took us another two days to do that, but finally we had it in place.
The  welding  fluxes  they  had  given us to secure steel to Heechee metal
actually  worked.  As  far as we could tell from static inspection, it was
solid.  We  retired  into  the  ship  and  commanded Vera to give it a ten
percent thrust.
   At  once  we  felt a tiny lurch. It was working. We all grinned at each
other,  and I reached into my private hold-all for the bottle of champagne
I had been saving for this occasion-Another lurch.
   Click,  click,  click,  click-one  after another our grins snapped off.
There should have been only one felt acceleration.
   Lurvy  jumped  to  the  cyber board. "Vera! Report delta-V!" The screen
lighted  up  with  a  diagram  of  forces:  the Food Factory imaged in the
middle,  force  arrows  showing  in  two directions. One was our thruster,
doing its job of pushing against the hull. The other was not.
   "Additional  thrust  now  affecting  course...  Lurvy,"  Vera reported.
"Vector result now same in direction and magnitude as previous delta-V."
   Our  rocket  was  pushing against the Food Factory. But it wasn't doing
much good. The factory was pushing back.
   Day  1298.  So we did what we obviously had to do. We turned everything
off and screamed for help.
   We slept, and ate, and wandered around the factory for what seemed like
forever,  wishing  the  25-day delay did not exist. Vera wasn't much help.
"Transmit   full   telemetry,"  she  said,  and,  "Stand  by  for  further
directives." Well, we were doing that already.
   After  a day or two I pulled the champagne out anyway, and we all drank
up.  At  .  01G  the  carbonation  had  more  muscle than gravity did, and
actually  I  had  to  hold  my thumb over the bottle and my palm over each
glass  to  squirt and catch the spraying champagne. But after a fashion we
toasted. "Not so bad," said Payter when he had chug-a-lugged his wine. "At
least we've got a couple million each."
   "If we ever live to collect it," snarled Janine.
   "Don't  be  such a downer, Janine. We knew when we started out that the
mission  might  bum  out." And so we had; the ship was designed so that we
could start back on our basic fuel, then rerig the photon-thrusters to get
us home-in another four years or so.
   "And  then  what,  Lurvy?  I'll  be  an eighteen-year-old virgin! And a
failure."
   "Oh,  God.  Janine, go explore for a while, won't you? I'm tired of the
sight of you."
   And so were all of us, of each other. We were more tired of each other,
and  less  tolerant,  than  we  had  been  all  the way out in the cramped
quarters of the ship. Now that we had more space to lose each other in, as
much  as  a  quarter-kilometer  of  it  at  farthest stretch, we were more
abrasive  on  each other than ever. Every twenty hours or so Vera's small,
dull brain would stumble through her contingency programs and come up with
some  new  experiment:  test  thrusts  at  one percent of power, at thirty
percent  of  power,  even  at  full  power. And we would get together long
enough  to  suit  up  and carry them out. But they were always the same no
matter  how  hard  we pushed against the Food Factory, the artifact sensed
it,  and  pushed  back  at  exactly the right magnitude and in exactly the
right direction to keep its steady acceleration to whatever goal it had in
mind.  The  only  useful thing Vera came up with was a theory: the factory
had  used  up  the comet it was working on and was moving on to a new one.
But  that  was  only intellectually interesting. It did not do a practical
thing  to  help. So we wandered around, mostly alone, carrying the cameras
into  every  room  and  corridor we could reach. What we saw they saw, and
what  they saw was transmitted on the time-sharing beam to Earth, and none
of it offered much help.
   We found where Trish Bover had entered the factory easily enough-Payter
did  that,  and called us all to look, and we gathered silently to inspect
the  remnants  of  a  long-decayed  lunch, the discarded pantyhose and the
graffiti she had scratched on the walls:

   And

   "Maybe  God  will,"  said  Lurvy  after  a  while, "but 1 don't see how
anybody else can."
   "She  must have been here longer than I thought," Payter said. "There's
junk scattered all around in some of the rooms."
   "What kind of junk?"
   "Old spoiled food, mostly. Down toward the other landing face, you know
where  the  lights  are?"  I did, and Janine and I went to see. It was her
idea  to keep me company, and not an idea I had been enthusiastic about at
first.  But  maybe the 12C temperature and the lack of anything like a bed
tempered  her interest, or maybe she was too depressed and disappointed to
be  very  interested  in  her ambition to lose her virginity. We found the
discarded  food  easily enough. It didn't look like Gateway rations to me.
It  seemed  to  come  in  packets;  a  couple of them were unopened, three
biggish  ones,  the  size  of  a  slice  of  bread,  wrapped in bright red
something or other-it felt like silk. Two smaller ones, one green, one the
same  red  as  the  others  but  mottled  with  pink  dots.  We opened one
experimentally.  It  stank  of  rotten  fish  and  was obviously no longer
edible. But had been.
   I  left  Janine  there  to  go back to find the others. They opened the
little  green  one. It did not smell spoiled, but was hard as rock. Payter
sniffed  it,  then  licked It, then broke off a crumb against the wall and
chewed  it thoughtfully. "No taste at all," he reported, then looked up at
us, looked startled, then grinned.
   "You  waiting for me to drop dead?" he inquired. "I don't think so. You
chew on it awhile, it gets soft. Like stale crackers, maybe."
   Lurvy  frowned. "If it really was food..." She stopped and thought. "If
it  really  was  food,  and  Trish left it there, why didn't she just stay
here? Or why didn't she mention it?"
   "She was scared silly," I suggested.
   "Sure  she  was. But she did tape a report. She didn't say a word about
food. The Gateway techs were the ones who decided this was a Food Factory,
remember?  And all they had to go on was the wrecked one they found around
Phyllis's World."
   "Maybe she just forgot."
   "I  don't  think she forgot," said Lurvy slowly, but she didn't say any
more  than  that.  There wasn't anything more to be said. But for the next
day or two we did not do much solitary exploring.
   Day  1311.  Vera  received  the  information about the food packages in
silence. After a while she displayed an instruction to submit the contents
of the packages to chemical-and bio-assay. We had already done that on our
own, and if she drew conclusions she did not say what they were.
   For  that  matter,  neither  did  we. On the occasions when we were all
awake  together  what  we mostly talked about was what we would do if Base
could  not  figure  out  a  way  for us to move the Food Factory. Vera had
already  suggested  that  we install the other five side-cargos, turn them
all  on  full-power  at  once  and see if the factory could out-muscle six
thrusters.  Vera's suggestions were not orders, and Lurvy spoke for all of
us  when  she said, "If we turn them on full and they don't work, the next
step  is  to  turn them on to over rated capacity. They could get damaged.
And we could get stuck."
   "What  do  we  do  if  we hear from Earth and they make it an order?" I
asked.
   Payter  cut  in  ahead  of  her. "We bargain," he said, nodding sagely.
"They want us to take extra risks, they give us extra pay."
   "Are you going to do the bargaining, Pa?"
   "You bet I am. And listen. Suppose it don't work. Suppose we have to go
back.  You  know  what we do then?" He nodded to us again. "We load up the
ship  with  everything  we  can carry. We find little machines that we can
take  out,  you  know?  Maybe we see if they work. We stuff that ship with
everything  it can hold, throw away everything we can spare. Leave most of
the side-. cargos here and load on big machines outside, you see? We could
come back with, God, I don't know, another twenty, thirty million dollars'
worth of artifacts."
   "Like  prayer fans!" Janine cried, clapping her hands. There were piles
of  them  in  the  room  where Payter had found the food. There were other
things  there,  too,  a sort of metal-mesh couch, tulip-shaped things that
looked like candleholders on the walls. But hundreds of prayer fans. By my
quick guess, at a thousand dollars each, there was half a million dollars'
worth of prayer fans in that room alone, delivered to the curio markets in
Chicago  and  Rome...  if  we  lived to deliver them. Not counting all the
other  things  I  could  think  of,  that I was inventorying in my mind. I
wasn't the only one.
   "Prayer fans are the least of it," Lurvy said thoughtfully. "But that's
not in our contract, Pa."
   "Contract!  So  what  are they going to do with us, shoot us? Cheat us?
After  we  give  up  eight  years  of  our  lives? No. They'll give us the
bonuses."
   The  more we thought about it, the better that sounded. I went to sleep
thinking  about which of the gadgets and what-you-call 'ems I'd seen could
be  carried back, and what among them seemed the most valuable, and had my
first pleasant dreams since we had tested the thruster-
   And  woke up with Janine's urgent whisper in my ear. "Pop? Paul? Lurvy?
Can you hear me?"
   I  swam up to a sitting position and looked around. She wasn't speaking
in  my  ear;  it  was my radio. Lurvy was awake beside me, and Payter came
hurrying  around  a corner to join us, their radios going too. I said, "We
hear you, Janine. What..."
   "Shut up!" the whisper came, hissing out with white sound as though her
lips  were  pressed against the microphone. "Don't answer me, just listen.
There's someone here."
   We stared at each other. Lurvy whispered, "Where are you?"
   "I  said  shut  up! I'm out at the far docking area, you know? Where we
found  that food. I was looking for something we could bring back with us,
like  Pop  said,  only-"Well, I saw something on the floor. Like an apple,
only  it  wasn't-kind  of  reddish  brown  on the outside and green on the
inside,  and  it  smelled  like...I  don't  know  what  it  smelled  like.
Strawberries. And it wasn't any hundred thousand years old, either. It was
fresh. And I heard-wait a minute."
   We  did  not  dare answer, just listened to her breathing for a moment.
When  she  spoke  again her whisper sounded scared. "It's coming this way.
It's  between  me  and you, and I'm stuck. I-keep thinking it's a Heechee,
and it's going to be..."
   Her  voice  stopped. We heard her gasp; then, out loud, "Don't you come
any closer!"
   I  had  heard  enough. "Let's go," I said, jumping toward the corridor.
Payter  and  Lurvy  were  right  behind me as we hurried in long, swimming
leaps  down the blue-walled tunnel. When we got near the docks we stopped,
looking around irresolutely.
   Before  we could make a decision on which way to search, Janine's voice
came  again. It was neither whisper nor terrified cry. "He-he stopped when
I told him," she said unbelievingly. "And I don't think he's a Heechee. He
looks  like just an ordinary person to me-well, kind of scruffy. He's just
standing there staring at me, kind of sniffing the air."
   "Janine!"  I shouted into the radio. "We're at the docks-which way from
here?"
   Pause.  Then,  strangely,  a  kind of shocked giggle. "Just keep coming
straight," she said shakily. "Come on quick. You-you wouldn't believe what
he's doing now!"

   The trip to the outpost seemed longer than usual to Wan, because he was
troubled  in  his  mind.  He  missed the companionship of the Dead Men. He
missed  even  more  what  he had never had. A female. The notion of Wan in
love  was  a fantasy for him, but it was a fantasy he wanted to make real.
So  many  of the books helped it along, Romeo and Juliet and Anna Karenina
and the old romantic Chinese classics.
   What  drove  the fantasies out of his mind at last was the sight of the
outpost  as  he drew near. The board lighted up to signal the beginning of
docking maneuvers, the flow lines on the screen melted away, and the shape
of  the  outpost  snapped  into  vision.  But it was not the same shape as
always.  There was a new ship in one of the docking hatches, and a strange
jagged structure strapped to one side of the hull.
   What  could  such  things mean? When the docking was complete Wan poked
his head through the hatch and stared around, sniffing and listening.
   After  a  time he concluded that no one was near. He did not remove his
books  or  other  possessions  from the ship. He resolved to stay ready to
flee  at  a  moment's notice, but he decided to explore. Once before, long
ago,  some  other  person  had been at the outpost, and he believed it had
been  a female. Tiny Jim had helped him identify the garment then. Perhaps
he should ask Tiny Jim for advice now? Munching on a berryfruit, he handed
himself  easily  along  the  rails  toward  the  dreaming  room, where the
pleasure couch lay surrounded by the book machines.
   And stopped.
   Had that been a sound? A laugh or a cry, from far away?
   He  threw  the  berryfruit  away and stood for a moment, all his senses
tensely  extended.  The  sound was not repeated. But there was something-a
smell,  very  faint,  quite pleasant, quite strange. It was not unlike the
smell  in the garment he had found, and carried around for many days until
the last vestige of scent was gone from it and he put it back where it was
found.
   Had that person come back?
   Wan  began  to  shake. A person! It had been a dozen years since be had
smelled  or  touched a person! And then only his parents. But it might not
be  a  person,  it could be something else. He launched himself toward the
dock  where  that  other  person  had  been,  craftily  avoiding  the main
passages, hurling himself down narrower, less direct ways where he did not
think  any  stranger was likely to go. Wan knew every inch of the outpost,
at  least  as far within it as it was possible to travel without coming to
the  dead-end  locked  walls that he did not know how to open. It took him
only  a  few  minutes to reach the place where he had carefully rearranged
the debris left by the outpost's one visitor.
   Everything  was  there. But not, he saw, as he had left it. Some things
bad been picked up and dropped again.
   Wan  knew he had not done that. Apart from the discipline he had always
imposed  upon  himself, of leaving the outpost exactly as he had found it,
so  that  no  one  could  ever  know  he  was there, this time he had been
especially  careful  to  arrange the litter precisely as it had been left.
Someone else was on the outpost.
   and he was many minutes away from his ship.
   Cautiously  but  quickly  he  returned  to the docks on the other side,
pausing at every intersection to look and smell and listen. He reached his
ship and hovered at the hatch, indecisively. Run or explore?
   But the smell was stronger now, and irresistible.
   Step  by  step  he  ventured  down one of the long, dead-end corridors,
ready to retreat instantly.
   A  voice!  Whispering,  almost  inaudible.  But it was there. He peered
around a doorway, and his heart pounded. A person! Huddled against a wall,
with  a  metal  object  at  its lips, staring at him in terror. The person
cried out at him: "Don't you come any closer!" But he could not have if he
had  wanted to; he was frozen. It was not merely a person. It was a female
person! The diagnostic signs were clear, as Tiny Jim had explained them to
him:  two  swellings  at  the  chest,  a  swelling  around  the hips and a
narrowing  at  the  waist,  a  smooth  brow  with  no  bulges over the eye
sockets-yes,  female!  And  young.  And dressed in something that revealed
bare  legs  and, oh, bare arms; smooth hair tied behind the head in a long
tail, great eyes staring at him.
   Wan  responded  as  he  had  learned  to respond. He fell gently to his
knees,  opened  his  garment and touched his sex. It had been several days
since  he had masturbated, and with no such stimulus as this; he was erect
at once and shuddering with excitement.
   He  hardly  noticed  the  noises behind him as three other persons came
racing up. It was not until he was finished that he stood up, adjusted his
clothing  and  smiled  politely  to them where they were ranged around the
young  female, talking excitedly and almost hysterically among themselves.
"Hello,"  he  said. "I am Wan." When they did not respond, he repeated the
greeting  in  Spanish  and  Cantonese, and would have gone on to his other
languages except that the second female person stepped forward and said:
   "Hello,  Wan.  I'm  Dorema Herter-Hall-they call me 'Lurvy'. We're very
glad to see you."
   In  all  of  Wan's  fifteen  years there had never been twelve hours as
exciting,  as  frightening and as heart-stoppingly thrilling, as these. So
many  questions! So much to say and to hear. So shuddery-pleasant to touch
these  other  persons,  and to smell their smells and feel their presence.
They knew so incredibly little, and so astonishingly much-did not know how
to  get  food from the lockers, had not used the dreaming couch, had never
seen an Old One or talked with a Dead Man. And yet they knew of spaceships
and  cities,  of walking under an open sky ("sky"? it took a long time for
Wan  to  grasp  what they were talking about) and of Making Love. He could
see  that the younger female was willing to show him more of that, but the
older one did not wish her to; how strange. The older male did not seem to
make  love  with anyone; even stranger. But it was all strange, and he was
expiring  of  the  delights and terrors of so much strangeness. After they
had  talked  for  a long time, and he had shown them some of the tricks of
the  outpost,  and they had shown him some of the wonders of their ship (a
thing  like a Dead Man, but which had never been alive; pictures of people
on  Earth;  a  flush toilet) after all these wonders, the Lurvy person had
commanded  that  they all rest. He had at once started toward the dreaming
couch,  but she had invited him to stay near them and he could not say no,
though  all  through  the  sleep  he woke from time to time, trembling and
sniffing and staring around in the dim blue light.
   So  much  excitement was bad for him. When they were all awake again he
found himself still shaking, his body aching as though he had not slept at
all. no matter. The questions and the chatter began again at once:
   "And who are the Dead Men?"
   "I  don't know. Let us ask them? Perhaps-sometimes they call themselves
'prospectors'. From a place called 'Gateway'."
   "And this place they are in, is it a Heechee artifact?"
   "Heechee?"  He thought; he had heard the word, long ago, but he did not
know what it meant. "Do you mean the Old Ones?"
   "What  do  the  Old  Ones look like?" And he could not say in words, so
they  gave  him  a  sketch pad again and he tried to draw the big waggling
jaws, the frowsty beards, and as each sketch was finished they snatched it
up and held it before the machine they called "Vera".
   "This  machine  is  like a Dead Man," he offered, and they flew in with
questions again:
   "Do you mean the Dead Men are computers?"
   "What is a 'computer'?"
   And  then  the  questions  would  go the other way for a while, as they
explained  to  him  the meaning of "computer", and presidential elections,
and the 130-day fever. And all the while they were roaming the ship, as he
explained  to them what he knew of it. Wan was becoming very tired. He had
had little experience of fatigue, because in his timeless life when he was
sleepy  he  slept and did not get up until he was rested. He did not enjoy
the  feeling,  or  the scratchiness in his throat, or the headache. But he
was  too  excited  to stop, especially when they told him about the female
person  named Trish Bover. "She was here? Here in the outpost? And she did
not stay?"
   "No, Wan. She didn't know you would come. She thought if she stayed she
would  die."  What  a terrible pity! Although, Wan calculated, he had only
been  ten years old when she came, he could have been a companion for her.
And  she  for  him.  He would have fed her and cared for her and taken her
with him to see the Old Ones and the Dead Men, and been very happy.
   "Then where did she go?" he asked.
   For  some  reason,  that  question  troubled  them. They looked at each
other. Lurvy said after a moment, "She got in her ship, Wan."
   "She went back to Earth?"
   "No.  Not  yet.  It  is  a very long trip for the kind of ship she had.
Longer than she would live."
   The  younger man, Paul, the one who coupled with Lurvy, took over. "She
is still traveling, Wan. We don't know where exactly. We are not even sure
she is alive. She froze herself."
   "Then she is dead?"
   "Well-she  is probably not alive. But if she is found, maybe she can be
revived.  She's  in  the  freezing compartment of her ship, at minus-forty
degrees.  Her  body will not decay for some time, I think. She thought. At
any rate, she thought it was the best chance she had."
   "I  could  have  given  her a better one," Wan said dejectedly. Then he
brightened.  There  was  the  other  female,  Janine,  who was not frozen.
Wishing to impress her, he said, "That is a gosh number."
   "What is? What kind of a number?"
   "A  gosh  number,  Janine.  Tiny  Jim  talks  about  them. When you say
'minus-forty'  you  don't  have  to  say  whether  it  is  in  Celsius  or
Fahrenheit, because they are the same." He tittered at the joke.
   They were looking at each other again. Wan could see that something was
wrong,  but  he  was  feeling  stranger,  dizzier,  more fatigued at every
second.  He  thought perhaps they had not understood the joke, so he said,
"Let  us ask Tiny Jim. He can be reached just down this passage, where the
dreaming couch is."
   "Reached? How?" demanded the old man, Payter.
   Wan  did  not  answer;  he was not feeling well enough to trust what he
said,  and,  besides,  it was easier to show them. He turned abruptly away
and  hauled himself toward the dreaming chamber. By the time they followed
he had already keyed the book in and called for number one hundred twelve.
"Tiny  Jim?" he tried; then, over his shoulder, "Sometimes he doesn't want
to  talk.  Please  be  patient."  But he was lucky this time, and the Dead
Man's voice responded quite quickly.
   "Wan? Is that you?"
   "Of course it is me, Tiny Jim. I want to hear about gosh numbers."
   "Very well, Wan. Gosh numbers are numbers which represent more than one
quantity,  so that when you perceive the coincidence you say, 'Gosh.' Some
gosh  numbers  are trivial. Some are perhaps of transcendental importance.
Some  religious  persons count gosh numbers as a proof of the existence of
God.  As to whether or not God exists, I can give you only a broad outline
of..."
   "No, Tiny Jim. Please stick to gosh numbers now."
   "Yes,  Wan.  I  will  now give you a list of a few of the simplest gosh
numbers.  Point-five  degrees.  Minus-forty degrees. One thirty-seven. Two
thousand  and  twenty-five. Ten to the 39th. Please write one paragraph on
each  of  these,  identifying  the  characteristics  which  make them gosh
numbers and..."
   "Cancel,  cancel,"  Wan  squeaked,  his  voice rising higher because it
smarted so. "This is not a class."
   "Oh,  well," said the Dead Man gloomily, "all right. Point-five degrees
is  the  angular diameter of both the sun and the Moon as seen from Earth.
Gosh!  How  strange  that  they  should  be the same, but also how useful,
because  it is partly because of this coincidence that Earth has eclipses.
Minus-forty  degrees  is  the  temperature  which  is  the  same  in  both
Fahrenheit  and  Celsius scales. Gosh. Two thousand twenty-five is the sum
of  the  cubes  of the integers, one cubed plus two cubed plus three cubed
and  so  on up to nine cubed, all added together. It is also the square of
their  sum.  Gosh. Ten to the thirty-ninth is a measure of the weakness of
the  gravitational  force as compared with the electromagnetic. It is also
the  age  of  the universe expressed as a dimensionless number. It is also
the  square  root  of  the number of particles in the observable universe,
that  is,  that  part  of the universe relative to Earth in which Hubble's
constant  is  less than point-five. Also-well, never mind, but gosh! Gosh,
gosh,  gosh.  On these goshes P. A. M. Dirac constructed his Large Numbers
Hypothesis,  from  which  he  deduced  that  the  force of gravity must be
weakening  as  the age of the universe increased. Now, there is a gosh for
you!"
   "You left out one thirty-seven," the boy accused.
   The  Dead  Man cackled. "Good for you, Wan! I wanted to see if you were
listening.  One  thirty-seven  is  Eddington's fine structure constant, of
course, and turns up over and over in nuclear physics. But it is more than
that. Suppose you take the inverse, that is one over one thirty-seven, and
express  it  as  a decimal. The first three digits are Double Ought Seven,
James  Bond's  identification  as  a killer. There is the lethality of the
universe for you! The first eight digits are Clarke's Palindrome, point oh
seven  two  nine  nine  two  seven  oh. There is its symmetry. Deadly, and
two-faced,  that is the fine structure constant! Or," he mused, "perhaps I
should  say,  there  is  its  inverse. Which would imply that the universe
itself  is the inverse of that? Namely kind and uneven? Help me, Wan. I am
not sure how to interpret this symbol."
   "Oh,  cancel,  cancel,"  said  Wan  angrily.  "Cancel  and out." He was
feeling  irritable  and  shaky, as well as more ill than he had ever been,
even  when  the  Dead  Men had given him shots. "He goes on like that," he
apologized  to  the  others. "That's why I don't usually speak to him from
here."
   "He  doesn't  look well," said Lurvy worriedly to her husband, and then
to  Wan,  "Do  you  feel all right?" He shook his head, because he did not
know how to answer.
   Paul  said,  "You  ought  to  rest. But-what did you mean, 'from here.'
Where is, uh, Tiny Jim?"
   "Oh, he is in the main station," said Wan weakly, sneezing.
   "You mean..." Paul swallowed hard. "But you said it was forty-five days
away by ship. That must be a very long way."
   The  old  man,  Payter, cried: "Radio? Are you talking to him by radio?
Faster-than-light radio?"
   Wan shrugged. Paul had been right; he needed to rest, and there was the
couch,  which had always been the exact proper place to make him feel good
and rested.
   "Tell  me,  boy!"  shouted  the  old  man.  "If  you  have a working FU
radio...The bonus..."
   "I  am  very tired," said Wan hoarsely. "I must sleep." He felt himself
falling.  He  evaded  their  clutching arms, dove between them and plunged
into the couch, its comforting webbing closing around him.

   Essie  and  I  were  water-skiing  on the Tappan Sea when my neck radio
buzzed  to  tell  me  that a stranger had turned up on the Food Factory. I
ordered  the boat to turn immediately and take us back to the long stretch
of  waterfront property owned by Robin Broadhead, Inc. before I told Essie
what  it  was.  "A boy, Robin?" she shouted over the noise of the hydrogen
motor and the wind. "Where in hell a boy comes to Food Factory?"
   "That's  what  we have to find out," I yelled back. The boat skillfully
snaked  us  in  to shallow water and waited while we jumped out and ran up
the  grass.  When  it  recognized  that  we  were gone, it purred down the
shoreline to put itself away.
   Wet  as we were, we ran directly to the brain room. We had begun to get
opticals  already,  and  the  holo  tank  showed  a skinny, scraggly youth
wearing  a  sort  of  divided  kilt  and  a  dirty  tunic. He did not seem
threatening  in  any  way,  but  he sure as hell had no right to be there.
"Voice,"  I  ordered,  and  the  moving lips began to speak-queer, shrill,
high-pitched, but good enough English to understand:
   "From  the  main  station, yes. It is about seven seven-days...weeks, I
mean. I come here often."
   "For God's sake, how?" I could not see the speaker, but it was male and
had no accent: Paul Hall.
   "In a ship, to be sure. Do you not have a ship? The Dead Men speak only
of traveling in ships, I do not know any other way."
   "Incredible,"  said Essie over my shoulder. She backed away, not taking
her  eyes off the tank, and came back with a terrycloth robe to throw over
my shoulders and one for herself. "What do you suppose is 'main station'?"
   "I wish to God I knew. Harriet?"
   The  voices  from the tank grew fainter, and my secretary's voice said,
"Yes, Mr. Broadhead?"
   "When did he get there?"
   "About  seventeen  point  four minutes ago, Mr. Broadhead. Plus transit
time from the Food Factory, of course. He was discovered by Janine Herter.
She  did  not  appear  to  have had a camera with her, so we received only
voice until one of the other members of the party arrived." As soon as she
stopped  speaking  the  voice  from  the figure in the tank came up again;
Harriet is a very good program, one of Essie's best.
   "...sorry  if  I  behaved improperly," the boy was saying. Pause. Then,
old Peter Herter:
   "Never mind that, by God. Are there other people on this main station?"
   The  boy  pursed  his  lips.  "That,"  he  said philosophically, "would
depend,  would  it  not,  on  how  one defines 'person'? In the sense of a
living organism of our species, no. The closest is the Dead Men."
   A  woman's  voice-Dorema  Herter-Hall.  "Are  you  hungry?  Do you need
anything?"
   "No, why should I?"
   "Harriet?  What's  that  about behaving improperly?" I asked. Harriet's
voice  came  hesitantly.  "He,  uh,  he  brought  himself  to  orgasm, Mr.
Broadhead. Right in front of Janine Herter."
   I  couldn't  help it, I broke out laughing. "Essie," I said to my wife,
"I  think  you made her a little too ladylike." But that wasn't what I was
laughing   at.   It  was  the  plain  incongruity  of  the  thing.  I  had
guessed-anything.   Anything   but   this:  a  Heechee,  a  space  pirate,
Martians-God knows what, but not a horny teen-aged boy.
   There was a scrabble of steel claws from behind and something jumped on
my shoulder. "Down, Squiffy," I snapped.
   Essie said, "Just let him nuzzle neck for a minute. He'll go away."
   "He  isn't dainty in his personal habits," I snarled. "Can't we get rid
of him?"
   "Na,  na,  galubka," she said soothingly, patting the top of my head as
she  got  up.  "Want  Full  Medical,  don't you? Squiffy comes along." She
kissed  me  and  wandered  out  of the room, leaving me to think about the
thing  that,  to  my  somewhat  surprise, was making all sorts of tiny but
discomforting  stirrings  inside me. To see a Heechee! Well, we hadn't-but
what if we did?
   When  the  first  Venus explorers discovered the traces the Heechee had
left,  glowing  blue-lined  empty  tunnels, spindle-shaped caves, it was a
shock.  A  few  artifacts,  another  shock-what  were they? There were the
scrolls  of  metal somebody named "prayer fans" (but did the Heechee pray,
and  if  so  to  whom?)  There  were the glowing little beads called "fire
pearls",  but  they weren't pearls, and they weren't burning. Then someone
found  the  Gateway  asteroid, and the biggest shock of all, because on it
were  a  couple  of  hundred  working spaceships. Only you couldn't direct
them.  You could get in and go, and that was it... and what you found when
you got there was shock, shock, shock, shock.
   I  knew. I had had the shocks, on my three silly missions-No. Two silly
missions.  And  then  one  terribly  unsilly  one. It had made me rich and
deprived  me  of somebody I loved, and what is silly about either of those
things?
   And  ever since then the Heechee, dead half a million years, not even a
written  word  left to tell what they were up to, had permeated every part
of  our  world. It was all questions, and not very many answers. We didn't
even  know  what  they called themselves, certainly not "Heechee", because
that  was  just a name the explorers made up for them. We had no idea what
these  remote  and godlike creatures called themselves. But we didn't know
what  God called Himself, either. Jehovah, Jupiter, Baal, Allah-those were
names people made up. Who knew by what name He was known to His buddies?
   I  was trying to let myself feel what I might have felt if the stranger
in  the  Food  Factory  had actually been Heechee when the toilet flushed,
Essie came out and Squiffy made a dash for the bowl. There are indignities
to  having  Full  Medical  coverage, and a mobile bio-assay unit is one of
them.
   "You  are  wasting my program time!" Essie scolded, and I realized that
Harriet  had been sitting patiently in the tank, waiting to be told to get
on with her information about the other claims on my attention. The report
from the Food Factory was all being taped and stored in any case, so Essie
went  to her own office to deal with her own priorities, I told Harriet to
start the cook on lunch, and then I let her do her secretarial duties.
   "You  have  an  appointment to testify before the Senate Ways and Means
Committee tomorrow morning, Mr. Broadhead."
   "I know. I'll be there."
   "You're  due  for  your  next checkup this weekend. Shall I confirm the
appointment?"
   That's  one  of  the  penalties  of  Full  Medical,  and  besides Essie
insists-she's  twenty  years  younger  than  I, and reminds me of it. "All
right, let's get it over with."
   "You  are  being  sued by one Hanson Bover, and Morton wants to talk to
you  about  it. Your consolidated statement for the quarter came in and is
on  your  desk  file-except  for the food mine holdings, which will not be
complete  until tomorrow. And there are a number of minor messages-most of
which I have already dealt with-for your review at your convenience."
   "Thank you. That's all for now." The tank went transparent and I leaned
back in my chair to think.
   I  didn't  need to see the consolidated statement-I already pretty well
knew  what  it  would  say.  The  real  estate investments were performing
nicely;  the  little  bit  I  had  left in sea farming was moving toward a
record  profit  year. Everything was solid, except for the food mines. The
last  130-day  fever  had cost us. I couldn't blame the guys in Cody, they
weren't  any  more responsible than I was when the fever bit. But they had
somehow  let  the  thermal  drilling get out of control, and five thousand
acres  of  our  shale  were  burning  away underground. It had taken three
months  to get the mine back in operation at all, and we still didn't know
what it was going to cost. no wonder their quarterly statement was late.
   But  that  was  only  an  annoyance,  not  a  disaster.  I was too well
diversified to be killed by any one sector going bad. I wouldn't have been
in  the  food  mines  except for Morton's advice; the extraction allowance
made  it  a  really  good  thing,  tax-wise.  (But  I'd  sold  most  of my
sea-farming  holdings  to  buy  in.)  Then Morton figured out that I still
needed   a  tax  shelter,  so  we  started  The  Broadhead  Institute  for
Extra-Solar  Research. The Institute owns all my stock, but I vote it, and
I  vote  it  for what I want to do. I got us into the coownership with the
Gateway  Corporation  that  financed probes to four detected but unvisited
Heechee-metal  sources  in  or  near the solar system, and one of them had
been the Food Factory. As soon as they made contact we spun off a separate
exploitation  company  to  deal  with  it-and  now  it  was looking really
interesting.
   "Harriet?  Let me have the direct from the Food Factory again," I said.
The holo sprang up, the boy still talking excitedly in his shrill, squeaky
voice. I tried to catch the thread of what he was saying-something about a
Dead  Man  (only it wasn't a man, because its name was Henrietta) speaking
to him (so it wasn't dead?) about a Gateway mission she had been on (when?
why  hadn't  I  heard  of  her?). It was all perplexing, so I had a better
idea.  "Albert Einstein, please," I said, and the holo swirled to show the
sweet old lined face peering at me.
   "Yes,  Robin?"  said  my  science  program,  reaching  for his pipe and
tobacco as he almost always does when we talk.
   "I'd  like  some  best-guess estimates from you on the Food Factory and
the boy that turned up there."
   "Sure  thing, Robin," he said, tamping the tobacco with his thumb. "The
boy's name is Wan. He appears to be between fourteen and nineteen years of
age,  probably  toward the young end of the spread, and I would guess that
he is fully genetically human."
   "Where does he come from?"
   "Ah,  that  is  conjectural,  Robin.  He  speaks  of  a 'main station',
presumably  another  Heechee  artifact  in  some  ways resembling Gateway,
Gateway  Two  and  the  Food  Factory itself, but without any self-evident
function.  There  do  not  appear  to be any other living humans there. He
speaks  of 'Dead Men', who appear to be some sort of computer program like
myself,  although  it  is  not clear whether they may not in fact be quite
different  in  origin. He also mentions living creatures he calls 'the Old
Ones'  or 'the frog-jaws'. He has little contact with them, in fact avoids
it, and it is not clear where they come from."
   I took a deep breath. "Heechee?"
   "I  don't  know, Robin. I cannot even guess. By Occam's Razor one would
conjecture  that living non-humans occupying a Heechee artifact might well
be  Heechee-but  there is no direct evidence. We have no idea what Heechee
look like, you know."
   I did know. It was a sobering thought that we might soon find out.
   "Anything  else?  Can  you  tell  me what's happening with the tests to
bring the factory back?"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin,"  he said, striking a match to the pipe. "But I'm
afraid  there's  no  good news. The object appears to be course-programmed
and under full control. Whatever we do to it it counteracts."
   It  had  been a close decision whether to leave the Food Factory out in
the  Oort  cloud  and somehow try to ship food back to Earth, or bring the
thing  itself  in.  Now it looked as though we had no choice. "Is there-do
you think it's under Heechee control?"
   "There  is  no way to be sure as yet. Narrowly, I would conjecture not.
It  appears to be an automatic response. However," he said, puffing on his
pipe,  "there  is  something encouraging. May I show you some visuals from
the factory?"
   "Please  do,"  I  said,  but  actually  he  hadn't  waited; Albert is a
courteous  program, but also a smart one. He disappeared and I was looking
at  a  scene of the boy, Wan, showing Peter Herter how to open what seemed
to  be  a  hatch in the wall of a passage. Out of it he was pulling floppy
soft packages of something in bright red wrappings.
   "Our assumption as to the nature of the artifact seems to be validated,
Robin.  Those  are  edible  and,  according  to  Wan, they are continually
replenished.  He  has been living on them for most of his life and, as you
see,  appears  to  be  in  excellent  health,  basically-I am afraid he is
catching a cold just now."
   I looked at the clock over his shoulder-he always keeps it at the right
time  for  my  sake. "That's all for now, then. Keep me posted if anything
that affects your conclusions turns up."
   "Sure thing, Robin," he said, disappearing.
   I  started  to get up. Talking of food reminded me that lunch should be
about  ready,  and  I  was  not only hungry, I had plans for an afterlunch
break. I tied the robe around me-and then remembered the message about the
lawsuit.  Lawsuits  are  nothing  special  in  any rich man's life, but if
Morton wanted to talk to me I probably ought to listen.
   He  responded  at once, sitting at his desk, leaning forward earnestly.
"We're  being sued, Robin," he said. "The Food Factory Exploitation Corp.,
the  Gateway  Corp.,  plus Paul Hall, Dorema Herter-Hall and Peter Herter,
both  in  propria  persona  and as guardian for codefendant Janine Herter.
Plus the Foundation and you personally."
   "I seem to have a lot of company, at least. Do I have to worry?" Pause.
Thoughtfully, "I think you might, a little. The suit is from Hanson Bover.
Trish's  husband, or widower, depending on how you look at it." Morton was
shimmering a little. It's a defect in his program, and Essie keeps wanting
to  fix  it-but it doesn't affect his legal ability and I kind of like it.
"He  has  got himself declared conservator of Trish Bover's assets, and on
the basis of her first landing on the Food Factory he wants a full mission
completed share of whatever comes out of it."
   That  wasn't  too  funny. Even if we couldn't move the damn thing, with
the new developments that bonus might be quite a lot. "How can he do that?
She  signed  the  standard  contract,  didn't she? So all we have to do is
produce  the  contract.  She didn't come back, therefore she doesn't get a
share."
   "That's the way to go if we wind up in court, yes, Robin. But there are
one  or  two  rather  ambiguous  precedents.  Maybe not even ambiguous-her
lawyer  thinks  they're  good,  even  if  they  are a little old. The most
important  one was a guy who signed a fifty-thousand-dollar contract to do
a  tightrope  walk over Niagara Falls. no performance, no pay. He fell off
halfway. The courts held that he had given the performance, so they had to
pay up."
   "That's crazy, Morton!"
   "That's  the case law, Robin. But I only said you might have to worry a
little.  I  think  probably  we're  all right, I'm just not sure we're all
right.  We  have to file an appearance within two days. Then we'll see how
it goes."
   "All right. Shimmer away, Morton," I said, and got up, because by now I
was  absolutely sure it was time for lunch. In fact, Essie was just coming
through the door, and, to my disappointment, she was fully dressed.
   Essie is a beautiful woman, and one of the joys of being married to her
for  five  years  is  that every year she looks better to me than the year
before.  She  put  her  arm  around my neck as we walked toward the dining
porch  and  turned  her  head  to  look at me. "What's matter, Robin?" she
asked.
   "Nothing's  the  matter,  dear S. Ya.," I said. "Only I was planning to
invite you to shower with me after lunch."
   "You  are  randy  old goat, old man," she said severely. "What is wrong
with  showering  after dark, when we will then naturally and inevitably go
to bed?"
   "By  dark I have to be in Washington. And tomorrow you're off to Tucson
for  your  conference,  and  this  weekend I have to go for my medical. It
doesn't matter, though."
   She  sat  down  at  the  table.  "You are also pitifully bad liar," she
observed.  "Eat  quickly, old man. One cannot take too many showers, after
all."
   I  said,  "Do  you  know,  Essie,  that  you  are  a thoroughly sensual
creature? It's one of your finest traits."
   The  quarterly  statement on my food mines holdings was on my desk file
in  my  Washington  suite  before  breakfast. It was even worse than I had
expected;  at  least  two  million dollars had burned up under the Wyoming
hills, and another fifty thousand or so more was smoldering away every day
until  they  got the fire all out. If they ever did. It did not mean I was
in  trouble,  but it might mean that a certain amount of easy credit would
no  longer  be  easy. And not only did I know it, but by the time I got to
the  Senate hearing room it appeared that all of Washington knew it too. I
testified quickly, along the same lines I had testified before, and when I
was  through  Senator  Praggler  recessed  the  hearing and took me out to
brunch. "I can't figure you out, Robin," he said. "Didn't your fire change
your mind about anything?"
   "No, why should it? I'm talking about the long pull."
   He  shook  his  head. "Here's somebody with a sizeable position in food
mine  stocks-you-begging  for  higher  taxes  on  the  mines! Doesn't make
sense."
   I  explained it to him all over again. Taken as a whole, the food mines
could  easily  afford  to  allocate,  say,  ten  percent of their gross to
restoring  the  Rockies after scooping out the shale. But no company could
afford  to  do it on its own. If we did it, we'd just lose any competitive
position,  we'd be undersold by everybody else. "So if you put through the
amendment,  Tim,"  I said, "we'll all be forced to do it. Food prices will
go  up,  yes-but  not a lot. My accountants say no more than eight or nine
dollars a year, per person. And we'll have an almost unspoiled countryside
again."
   He  laughed.  "You're  a  weird one. With all your do-gooding, and with
your money, not to mention those things..." he nodded at the Out bangles I
still  wore  on  my arm, three of them, signifying three missions that had
each scared the hell out of me when I earned them as a Gateway prospector,
"why don't you run for the Senate?"
   "Don't  want  to,  Tim.  Besides, if I ran from New York I'd be running
against  you  or Sheila, and I don't want to do that. I don't spend enough
time in Hawaii to make a dent. And I'm not going to move back to Wyoming."
   He  patted me on the shoulder. "Just this once," he said, "I'm going to
use  a  little  old-fashioned  political  muscle.  I'll  try  to  get your
amendment  through  for you, Robin, though God knows what your competitors
are going to do to try to stop it."
   After  I  left him I dawdled back to the hotel. There was no particular
reason  to  hurry  back to New York, with Essie in Tucson, so I decided to
spend  the rest of the day in my hotel suite in Washington-a bad decision,
as  it  turned  out,  but  I  didn't  know that then. I was thinking about
whether  I  minded being called a "do-gooder" or not. My old psychoanalyst
had  helped  me  along  to  a  point where I didn't mind taking credit for
things I thought deserved credit, but most of what I did I did for me. The
revegetation amendment wouldn't cost me a dime; we'd make it up in raising
prices,  as  I  had explained. The money I put into space might pay off in
dollar  profits-probably  would,  I  figured-but anyway it was going there
because  space  was  where my money had come from. And besides, I had some
unfinished  business  out  there.  Somewhere.  I  sat  by my window on the
penthouse  floor  of  the hotel, forty-five stories up, looking toward the
Capitol  and  the  Washington  Monument,  and  wondered  if  my unfinished
business was still alive. I hoped so. Even if she was hating me still.
   Thinking  about  my  unfinished business made me think of Essie, by now
arriving  in Tucson, and that gave me a twinge of worry. We were about due
for another attack of the 130-day fever. I hadn't thought about that early
enough.  I  didn't  like  the  idea of her being three thousand kilometers
away,  in  case it was a bad one. And, although I am not a jealous person,
even  if it was a mild, but lecherous and orgiastic one, as they seemed to
be  becoming  more  and  more  frequently,  I really preferred that she be
lecherous and orgiastic with me.
   Why  not?  I  called  Harriet  and  had  her make me reservations on an
afternoon flight to Tucson. I could conduct my business as well from there
as  anywhere  else,  if  not  quite  as  comfortably.  And  then I started
conducting  some of it. Albert first. There was nothing significantly new,
he  said,  except  that the boy seemed to be developing a bad cold. "We've
instructed  the  Herten-Hall  party to administer standard antibiotics and
symptom-suppressants,"  he told me, "but they will not receive the message
for some weeks, of course."
   "Serious?"
   He  frowned,  puffing  at his pipe. "Wan has never been exposed to most
viruses  and  bacteria," he said, "so I can't make any definite statement.
But,  no,  I  would  hope  not.  In  any  case, the expedition has medical
supplies and equipment capable of dealing with most pathologies."
   "Do you know anything more about him?"
   "A  great  deal,  but  not anything that changes my previous estimates,
Robin."   Puff,   puff.   "His   mother   was   Hispanic  and  his  father
American-Anglo,  and  they  were  both Gateway prospectors. Or so it would
seem.  So, apparently, in some way, were the personalities he refers to as
the 'Dead Men,' although it is still unclear just what those are."
   "Albert,"  I  said,  "look  up  some old Gateway missions, at least ten
years  back.  See  if you can find one that had an American and a Hispanic
woman on it-and didn't come back."
   "Sure  thing,  Bob."  Some  day I must tell him to change to a snappier
vocabulary,  but  actually  he works very well as he is. He said almost at
once,  "There  is  no  such  mission.  However,  there  was a launch which
contained a pregnant Hispanic woman, still unreported. Shall I display the
specs?"
   "Sure  thing, Albert," I said, but he is not programmed to pick up that
sort  of nuance. The specs didn't tell much. I hadn't known the woman; she
was  before my time. But she had taken a One out after surviving a mission
in which her husband and the other three crew members had been killed in a
Five.  And  had  never  been  heard  of  again.  The  mission was a simple
go-out-and-see-what-you-get.  What  she  had  got had been a baby, in some
strange place.
   "That doesn't account for Wan's father, does it?"
   "No,  Robin,  but  perhaps he was on another mission. If we assume that
the  Dead  Men  are in some way related to unreturned missions, there must
have been several."
   I said, "Are you suggesting that the Dead Men are actual prospectors?"
   "Sure thing, Robin."
   "But how? You mean their brains might have been preserved?"
   "Doubt  it, Robin," he said, rekindling his pipe thoughtfully. "There's
insufficient  data,  but  I'd  say  whole-brain  storage is no more than a
point-one probability."
   "Then what are the other points?"
   "Perhaps  a  readout  of  the  chemical  storage  of  memory-not a high
probability,  perhaps  put  it  at point-three. Which is still the highest
probability we've got. Voluntary interface on the part of the subjects-for
instance,  if they talked all their memories onto tape somehow-really low.
Point-zero  zero  one,  tops.  Direct  mental  link-what  you  might  call
telepathy  of some sort-about the same. Means unknown, point-five plus. Of
course,  Robin,"  he  added  hurriedly,  "you  realize  that  all of these
estimates are based on insufficient data and on inadequate hypotheses."
   "I suppose you'd do better if you could talk to the Dead Men direct"
   "Sure  thing,  Bob. and I am about to request such a hookup through the
Herter-Hall   shipboard   computer,   but  it  needs  careful  programming
beforehand.  It  is  not  a very good computer, Robin." He hesitated. "Uh,
Robin? There is one other interesting thing."
   "What's that?"
   "As  you know, several large ships were docked at the Food Factory when
it  was  discovered. It has been under frequent observation since, and the
number  of  ships  remained the same-not counting the Herter-Hall ship and
the  one  in  which  Wan  arrived  two  days ago, of course. But it is not
certain they are the same ships."
   "What?"
   "It  isn't certain, Robin," he emphasized. "One Heechee ship looks very
much like another. But careful scan of the approach photos seems to show a
different  orientation  on  the  part  of  at least one of the large ones.
Possibly  all three. As though the ships that were there had left, and new
ones had docked."
   A  cold feeling went up and down my spine. "Albert," I said, finding it
hard to get the words out, "do you know what that suggests to me?"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin,"  he  said  solemnly,  "it suggests that the Food
Factory is still in operation. That it is converting the cometary gases to
CHON-food. And sending them somewhere."
   I swallowed hard, but Albert was still talking. "Also," he said, "there
is  quite a lot of ionizing radiation in the environment I have to admit I
don't know where it comes from."
   "Is that dangerous to the Herter-Halls?"
   "No,  Robin, I would say not. no more than, say, piezovision broadcasts
are to you. It is not the risk, it is that I am puzzled about the source."
   "Can't you ask the Herter-Halls to check?"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin.  I already have. But it'll take fifty days to get
the answer."
   I  dismissed him and leaned back in my chair to think about the Heechee
and their queer ways..
   And then it hit.
   My desk chairs are all built to maximum comfort and stability, but this
time  I  almost tipped it over. In a split second, I was in pain. Not just
in  pain;  I  was  dizzy, disoriented, even hallucinating. My head felt as
though it were about to burst, and my lungs seared like flame. I had never
felt  so  sick, in both mind and body, and at the same time I found myself
fantasizing incredible feats of sexual athletics.
   I  tried  to  get  up,  and  couldn't.  I  flopped  back  in the chair,
absolutely helpless. "Harriet!" I croaked. "Get a doctor!"
   It took her a full three seconds to respond, and then her image wavered
worse  than Morton. "Mr. Broadhead," she said, looking queerly worried, "I
cannot  account  for it, but the circuits are all busy. I... I... I..." It
was  not  just  her voice repeating, her head and body looked like a short
loop of video tape, over and over shaping the same beginning of a word and
snapping back to begin it again.
   I fell off the chair onto the floor, and my last coherent thought was:
   The fever.
   It was back. Worse than I had ever felt it before. Worse, perhaps, than
I   could   live  through,  and  so  bad,  so  painful,  so  terrifyingly,
psychotically strange that I was not sure I wanted to.

   The  difference  between the ages of ten and fourteen is immense. After
three  and a half years in a photon-powered spaceship en route to the Oort
cloud,  Janine  was  no longer the child who had left. She had not stopped
being  a child. She had just reached that early maturation plateau wherein
the individual recognizes that it still has a great deal of growing to do.
Janine  was  not  in a hurry to become an adult. She was simply working at
getting the job done. Every day. All the time. With whatever tools came to
hand.
   When  she  left  the  others,  on the day when she met Wan, she was not
particularly  searching  for  anything. She simply wanted to be alone. Not
for any really private purpose. Not even because, or not only because, she
was  tired  of  her  family.  What she wanted was something of her own, an
experience   not  shared,  an  evaluation  not  helped  by  always-present
grownups;  she  wanted  the look and touch and smell of the strangeness of
the Food Factory, and she wanted it to be hers.
   So  she  pushed herself at random along the passages, sucking from time
to  time  at  a squeeze bottle of coffee. Or what seemed to be "coffee" to
her.  It  was a habit Janine had learned from her father, although, if you
had asked her, she would have denied that she had learned any.
   All  of  her  senses thirsted for inputs. The Food Factory was the most
fabulously  exciting,  delightfully  scary thing that had ever happened to
her.  More than the launch from Earth when she was a mere child. More than
the  stained  shorts  that had announced she had become a woman. More than
anything.  Even the bare walls of the passages were exciting, because they
were Heechee metal, a zillion years old, and still glowing with the gentle
blue  light  their makers had built into them. (What sort of eyes had seen
by  that light when it was new?) She patted herself gently from chamber to
chamber,  only the balls of her feet ever touching the floor. In this room
were  walls  of  rubbery shelves (what had they held?), in that squatted a
huge  truncated  sphere,  top  and  bottom  sliced  off,  mirror chrome in
appearance,  queerly  powdery  to  the  touch-what was it for? Some of the
things  she  could  guess at. The thing that looked like a table certainly
was  a  table.  (The  lip around it was no doubt there to keep things from
skittering  off  it  in  the  Food  Factory's gentle gravity.) Some of the
objects  had  been  identified for them by Vera, accessing the information
stores  of  Heechee  artifacts  cataloged  by the big data sources back on
Earth. The cubicles with cobwebby green tracings on the walls were thought
to have been for sleeping accommodations; but who was to know if dumb Vera
was  right?  no  matter. The objects themselves were thrilling. So was the
presence  of  space to move around in. Even to get lost in. For until they
reached  the  Food  Factory, Janine had never, ever, not once in her life,
had  the  chance  to get lost. The idea made her itch with scary pleasure.
Especially  as  the  quite  adult  part of her fourteen-year-old brain was
always aware that, no matter how lost she got, the Food Factory simply was
not large enough for her to stay lost.
   So it was a safe thrill. Or seemed so.
   Until   she   found   herself   trapped   by   the  farside  docks,  as
something-Heechee?  Space  monster? Crazed old castaway with a knife? came
shambling out of the hidden passages toward her.
   And then it was none of those things, it was Wan.
   Of  course,  she didn't know his name. "Don't you come any closer!" she
whimpered,  heart  in mouth, radio in hand, forearms hugged across her new
breasts.  He  didn't.  He  stopped.  He stared at her, eyes popping, mouth
open,  tongue  almost  hanging  out.  He  was  tall,  skinny. His face was
triangular,  with  a  long, beaked nose. He was wearing what looked like a
skirt and what looked like a tank-top, both dirty. He smelled male. He was
shaking  as  he  sniffed the air, and he was young. Surely he was not much
older than Janine herself and the only person less than triple her age she
had  seen  in  years; and when he let himself drop gently to his knees and
began  to  do  what  Janine  had never seen any other person do she moaned
while she giggled-amusement, relief, shock, hysteria. The shock was not at
what  he was doing. The shock came from meeting a boy. In her sleep Janine
had dreamed wildly, but never of this.
   For  the  next  few  days  Janine  could not bear to let Wan out of her
sight.  She  felt herself to be his mother, his playmate, his teacher, his
wife. "No, Wan! Sip it slowly, it's hot!"
   "Wan, do you mean to say you've been all alone since you were three?"
   "You  have really beautiful eyes, Wan." She didn't mind that he was not
sophisticated  enough  to  respond  by  telling her that she had beautiful
eyes,  too,  because  she could definitely tell that she fascinated him in
all her parts.
   The  others  could  tell that, too, of course. Janine did not mind. Wan
had  plenty  of  senses-sharp,  eyes-bright,  obsessed  adoration to share
around.  He  slept  even  less  than  she. She appreciated that, at first,
because  it  meant  there was more of Wan to share, but then she could see
that  he  was  becoming  exhausted.  Even  ill. When he began to sweat and
tremble,  in  the room with the glittering silver-blue cocoon, she was the
one  who  cried,  "Lurvy!  I think he's going to be sick!" When he lurched
toward  the  couch she flew to his side, fingers stretched to test his dry
and  burning  forehead. The closing cover of the cocoon almost trapped her
arm,  gouging  a  long,  deep  slash  from  wrist to knuckles on her hand.
"Paul," she shouted, drawing back, "we've got to..."
   And then the 130-day madness hit them all. Worst of any time. Different
from any time. Between one heartbeat and the next Janine was sick.
   Janine  had never been sick. Now and then a bruise, a cramp, a sniffle.
Nothing  more.  For  most  of her life she had been under Full Medical and
sickness  simply  did not occur. She did not comprehend what was happening
to  her.  Her  body  raged with fever and pain. She hallucinated monstrous
strange  figures,  in  some of whom she recognized her caricatured family;
others  were  simply  terrifying  and strange. She even saw herself-hugely
bosomed  and grossly hipped, but herself-and in her belly rumbled a frenzy
to  thrust  and  thrust  into  all  the seen and imagined cavities of that
fantasy  something  that,  even in fantasy, she did not have. None of this
was  clear.  Nothing  was  clear.  The  agonies and the insanities came in
waves. Between them, for a second or two now and then, she caught glimpses
of  reality.  The  steely  blue  glow  from the walls. Lurvy, crouched and
whimpering beside her. Her father, vomiting in the passage. The chrome and
blue  cocoon,  with  Wan writhing and babbling inside the mesh. It was not
reason  or  will  that  made her claw at the lid and, on the hundredth, or
thousandth,  try  to get it open; but she did it, at last, and dragged him
whimpering and shaking out.
   The hallucinations stopped at once.
   Not  quite  as  quickly,  the pain, the nausea and the terror. But they
stopped.  They were all shuddering and reeling still, all but the boy, who
was  unconscious  and  breathing  in  a  way that terrified Janine, great,
hoarse,  snoring  gasps.  "Help,  Lurvy!"  she screamed. "He's dying!" Her
sister  was already beside her, thumb on the boy's pulse, shaking her head
to clear it as she peered dizzily at his eyes.
   "Dehydrated.  Fever.  Come  on," she cried, struggling with Wan's arms.
"Help  me  get  him  back  to  the  ship.  He needs saline, antibiotics, a
febrifuge, maybe some gamma globulin..."
   It  took  them nearly twenty minutes to tow Wan to the ship, and Janine
was in terror that he would die at every bounding, slow-motion step. Lurvy
raced  ahead  the last hundred meters, and by the time Paul and Janine had
struggled  him  through the airlock she had already unsealed the medic kit
and  was  shouting  orders.  "Put  him down. Make him swallow this. Take a
blood sample and check virus and antibody titers. Send a priority to base,
tell  them  we  need  medical  instructions-if he lives long enough to get
them!"
   Paul  helped  them  get Wan's clothes off and the boy wrapped in one of
the  Payter's  blankets.  Then  he sent the message. But he knew, they all
knew,  that  the  problem of whether Wan lived or died would not be solved
from  Earth.  Not  with a round-trip time of seven weeks before they could
get  an  answer. Payter was swearing over the bio-assay mobile unit. Lurvy
and Janine were working on the boy. Paul, without saying a word to anyone,
struggled  into  his  EVA  suit and exited into - space, where he spent an
exhausting hour and a half redirecting the transmitter dishes-the main one
to  the  bright  double star that was the planet Neptune and its moon, the
other  to  the  point  in  space  occupied  by  the Garfeld mission. Then,
clinging to the hull, he radio-commanded Vera to repeat the SOS to each of
them  at  max  power.  They  might be monitoring. They might not When Vera
signaled  that the messages were sent he reoriented the big dish to Earth.
It  took them three hours, first to last, and whether either of them would
receive  his  message  was  doubtful.  It was no less doubtful that either
would  have much help to offer. The Garfeld ship was smaller and less well
equipped  than  their  own,  and  the  people  at  the  Triton  base  were
short-timers. But if either did they could hope for a message of aid-or at
least sympathy, a lot faster than from Earth.
   In  an  hour  Wan's fever began to recede. In twelve the twitchings and
babblings diminished and he slept normally. But he was still very sick.
   Mother  and  playmate,  teacher  and  at-least-fantasy wife, now Janine
became Wan's nurse as well. After the first round of medication, she would
not  even  let  Lurvy give him his shots. She went without sleep to sponge
his brow. When he soiled himself in his coma she cleaned him fastidiously.
She  had  no concentration left for anything else. The amused or concerned
looks  and  words  from  her  family left her untouched, until she brushed
Wan's  unkempt  hair  off  his  face, and Paul made a patronizing comment.
Janine heard the jealousy in the tone and flared, "Paul, you're sickening!
Wan needs me to take care of him!"
   "And  you  do enjoy it, don't you?" he snapped. He was really angry. Of
course,  that  sparked more anger in Janine; but her father put in, gently
enough,  "Let  the girl be a girl, Paul. Were you not yourself once young?
Come, let us examine this Trdumeplatz again..."
   Janine surprised herself by letting the peacemaker succeed; it had been
a marvelous chance of a furious spat, but that was not where her interests
lay.  She took time for a tight, small grin about Paul's jealousy, because
that was a new service stripe to sew on her sleeve, and then back to Wan.
   As  he  mended  he  became  even more interesting. From time to time he
woke,  and spoke to her. When he was asleep she studied him. Face so dark,
body  olive;  but from waist to thigh he bad the palest skin, the color of
bread  dough, taut over his sharp bones. Scant body hair. None on his face
except  a  soft,  almost  invisible  strand  or  two-more  lip-lashes than
mustache.
   Janine knew that Lurvy and her father made a joke of her, and that Paul
was  actually  jealous of the attentions he had avoided so long. It made a
nice  change. She had status. For the first time in her life, what she was
doing  was  the most significant activity of the group. The others came to
her  to  sue  for  permission to question Wan, and when she thought he was
tiring they accepted her command to stop.
   Besides,  Wan  fascinated  her. She mapped him against all her previous
experience  of  Men,  to his advantage. Even against her pen-pals, Wan was
better  looking  than  the  ice-skater, smarter than the actors, almost as
tall as the basketball player. And against all of them, especially against
the  only  two males she had been within tens of millions of kilometers of
in  years, Wan was so marvelously young. And Paul and her father, not. The
backs  of  old  Peter's  hands  bore irregular blotches of caramel-colored
pigment, which was gross. But at least the old man kept himself neat. Even
dainty, in the continental way-even clipped the hairs that grew inside his
ears with tiny silver scissors, because Janine had caught him at it. While
Paul-In one of her skirmishes with Lurvy, Janine had snarled, "That's what
you go to bed With? An ape with hairy ears? I'd puke."
   So  she  fed Wan, and read to him, and drowsed over him while he slept.
She  shampooed his hair, and trimmed it to a soup-bowl mop, allowing Lurvy
to  help her get it even, and blow-dried it smooth. She washed his clothes
and,  spurning  Lurvy  for  this,  patched  them and even cut down some of
Paul's  to  fit him. He accepted it all, every bit, and enjoyed it as much
as she.
   As  he grew stronger, he no longer needed her as much, and she was less
able  to  protect  him  from  the  questions  of the others. But they were
protective,  too.  Even  old  Peter. The computer, Vera, burrowed into its
medical  programs and prepared a long list of tests to be performed on the
boy.  "Assassin!" raged Peter. "Has it no understanding of a young man who
has  been  so  close  to  death  that  it wishes to finish it?" It was not
entirely  consideration.  Peter  had questions of his own, and he had been
asking  them  when  Janine  would allow it, sulking and fidgeting when she
would  not.  "That bed of yours, Wan, tell me again what you feel when you
are  in  it?  As  though you are somehow a part of millions of people? And
also  they  of  you,  isn't  that  so?"  But  when  Janine  accused him of
interfering  with  Wan's  recovery, the old man desisted. Though never for
long.
   Then  Wan  was  well  enough for Janine to allow herself a full night's
sleep  in  her  own  private,  and  when she woke her sister was at Vera's
console.  Wan  was holding to the back of her chair, grinning and frowning
at  the  unfamiliar  machine, and Lurvy was reading off to him his medical
report.  "Your  vital  signs  are  normal, your weight is picking up, your
antibody  levels  are  in  the normal range-I think you're going to be all
right now, Wan."
   "So  now,"  cried  her  father,  "at  last  we  can  talk?  About  this
faster-than-light  radio,  the  machines,  the  place  he  comes from, the
dreaming room?" Janine hurled herself into the group.
   "Leave him alone!" she snarled. But Wan shook his head.
   "Let  them  ask what they like, Janine," he said in his shrill, breathy
voice.
   "Now?"
   "Yes,  now!" stormed her father. "Now, this minute! Paul, come you here
and tell this boy what we must know."
   They  had planned this, Janine realized, the three of them; but Wan did
not  object,  and  she  could not pretend he was unfit for questioning any
longer. She marched over and sat beside him. If she could not prevent this
interrogation, at least she would be there to protect him. She gave formal
permission,  coldly:  "Go ahead, Paul. Say what you want to say, but don't
tire him out."
   Paul looked at her ironically, but spoke to Wan. "For more than a dozen
years," he said, "every hundred and thirty days or so, the whole Earth has
gone crazy. It looks like it's your fault,
   The  boy  frowned, but said nothing. His public defender spoke for him.
"Why are you picking on him?" she demanded.
   "No one is 'picking', Janine. But what we experienced was the fever. It
can't  be a coincidence. When Wan gets into that contraption he broadcasts
to the world." Paul shook his head. "Dear lad, do you have any idea of how
much  trouble you've caused? Ever since you began coming here, your dreams
have  been  shared  by  millions  of  people. Billions! Sometimes you were
peaceful, and your dreams were peaceful, and that wasn't so bad. Sometimes
you  weren't.  I  don't  want  you  to  blame  yourself," he added kindly,
forestalling Janine, "but thousands and thousands of people have died. And
the property damage-Wan, you just can't imagine."
   Wan  shrilled  defensively, "I have never harmed anyone!" he was unable
to take in just what he was accused of, but there was no doubt in his mind
that Paul was accusing. Lurvy put her hand on his arm.
   "I  wish  it  were  so,  Wan,"  she  said. "The important thing is, you
mustn't do that again."
   "No more dreaming in the couch?"
   "No,  Wan."  He looked to Janine for guidance, then shrugged. "But that
is  not  all,"  Paul  put in. "You have to help us. Tell us everything you
know.  About  the  couch.  About the Dead Men. About the faster-than-light
radio, the food..."
   "Why should I?" Wan demanded.
   Patiently,  Paul  coaxed:  "Because in that way you can make up for the
fever.  I  don't  think  you  understand  how  important you are, Wan. The
knowledge  in your head might mean saving people from starvation. Millions
of lives, Wan."
   Wan  frowned  over  that  concept  for  a  moment,  but  "millions" was
meaningless  to him as applying to human beings-he had not yet adjusted to
"five". "You make me angry," he scolded.
   "I don't mean to, Wan."
   "It  is  not what you mean to, it is what you do. You have just told me
that," the boy grumbled spitefully. "All right. What do you want?"
   "We  want you to tell us everything you know," Paul said promptly. "Oh,
not  all  at once. But as you remember. And we want you to go through this
whole Food Factory with us and explain everything in it-as far as you can,
I mean."
   "This place? There is nothing here but the dreaming room, and you won't
let me use that!"
   "It is all new to us, Wan."
   "It  is  nothing! The water does not run, there is no library, the Dead
Men  are  hard  to  talk to, nothing grows! At home I have everything, and
much of it is working, so you can see for yourself."
   "You make it sound like heaven, Wan."
   "See for yourself! If I can't dream, there is no reason to stay here!"
   Paul looked at the others, perplexed. "Could we do that?"
   "Of  course!  My  ship  will  take  us  there-not  all of you, no," Wan
corrected  himself.  "But some. We can leave the old man here. There is no
woman  for  him,  anyway,  so there is no pairing to destroy. Or even," he
added  cunningly,  "only Janine and I can go. Then there will be more room
in the ship. We can bring you back machines, books, treasures..."
   "Forget that, Wan," Janine said wisely. "They'll never let us do that."
   "Not  so  fast,  my  girl,"  her  father  said. "That is not for you to
decide. What the boy is saying is interesting. If he can open the gates of
heaven for us, who are we to stand outside in the cold?"
   Janine  studied  her  father,  but his expression was bland. "You don't
mean you'd let Wan and me go there alone?"
   "That," he said, "is not the question. The question is, how can we most
rapidly complete this God-bedamned mission and return to our reward. There
is no other."
   "Well,"  said Lurvy after a moment, "we don't have to decide that right
now. Heaven will wait for us, for all our lives."
   Her father said, "That is true, yes. But, expressed concretely, some of
us have less lives to wait than others."
   Every day new messages came in from Earth. Infuriatingly, these related
only  to  a  remote  past,  before Wan, irrelevant to everything they were
doing  or  planning  now:  Submit  chemical  analyses of this. X-ray that.
Measure  these  other  things.  By  now  the  slow packets of photons that
transmitted  the  word  of  their reaching the Food Factory had arrived at
Downlink-Vera on Earth, and perhaps replies were already on their way. But
they would not arrive for weeks. The base at Triton had a smarter computer
than Vera, and Paul and Lurvy argued for transmitting all their data there
for  interpretation  and  advice.  Old  Peter rejected the idea with fury.
"Those  wanderers,  gypsies? Why should we give them what costs us so much
to get!"
   "But  nobody's  questioning  us, Pa," Lurvy coaxed. "It's all ours. The
contracts spell it all out."
   "No!"
   So  they  fed  all  that  Wan told them into Shipboard-Vera, and Vera's
small,  slow  intelligence  painfully  sorted the bits into patterns. Even
into  graphics.  The external appearance of the place Wan had come from-it
was  probably  not  a very good likeness, because it was apparent that Wan
had  not  had  the  curiosity to study it very closely. The corridors. The
machines. The Heechee themselves; and each time Wan offered corrections:
   "Ah,  no.  They both have beards, males and females. Even when they are
quite  young.  And the breasts on the females are:" He held his hands just
below  his rib cage, to show how low they swung. "And you do not give them
the right smell."
   "Holos don't smell at all, Wan," said Paul.
   "Yes, exactly! But they do, you see. In rut, they smell very much."
   And  Vera mumbled and whined over the new data, and shakily drew in the
new  revisions.  After  hours of this, what had been a game for Wan turned
into  drudgery. When he began saying, "Yes, it is perfect, that is exactly
how  the  Dead  Men's  room looks," they all understood that he was merely
agreeing  with  anything that would stop the boredom for a while, and gave
him a rest. Then Janine would take him for a wander through the corridors,
sound  and  vision  pickups  strapped  to  her  shoulder,  in case he said
something  of  value  or  pointed  out a treasure, and they spoke of other
things.  His  knowledge  was  as  astonishing  as his ignorance. Both were
unpredictable.
   It  was  not  only Wan that needed study. Every hour Lurvy or old Peter
would  come  up  with  a  new idea for diverting the Food Factory from its
programmed  drive,  so  that  they  could try to accomplish their original
purpose.  None  worked.  Every  day more messages came in from Earth. They
were still not relevant. They were not even very interesting; Janine let a
score of letters from her pen-pals stay in Vera's memory without bothering
to  retrieve  them, since the messages she was getting from Wan filled her
needs.  Sometimes the communications were odd. For Lurvy, the announcement
that  her  college  had  named her its Woman of the Year. For old Peter, a
formal  petition  from  the city he had been born in. He read it and burst
into  laughter.  "Dortmund  still wishes me to run for Burgermeister! What
nonsense!"
   "Why,  that's  really  nice,"  Lurvy  said  agreeably.  "It's  quite  a
compliment."
   "It  is quite nothing," he corrected her severely. "Burgermeister! With
what  we  have  I  could  be elected president of the Federal Republic, or
even..."  He  fell silent, and then said gloomily, "If, to be sure, I ever
see  the Federal Republic again." He paused, looking over their heads. His
lips worked silently for a moment, and then he said: "Perhaps we should go
back now."
   "Aw, Pop," Janine began. And stopped, because the old man turned on her
the look of an alpha wolf on a cub. There was a sudden tension among them,
until Paul cleared his throat and said:
   "Well,  that's certainly one of our options. Of course, there's a legal
question of contract..."
   Peter  shook  his  head.  "I  have thought of that. They owe us so much
already! Simply for stopping the fever, if they pay us only one percent of
the  damage we save it is millions. Billions. And if they won't pay..." He
hesitated,  and  then said, "No, there is no question that they won't pay.
We  simply must speak to them. Report that we have stopped the fever, that
we  cannot  move  the Food Factory, that we are coming home. By the time a
return message can arrive we will be weeks on our way."
   "And what about Wan?" Janine demanded.
   "He will come with us, to he sure. He will be among his own kind again,
and that is surely what is best for him."
   "Don't  you think we ought to let Wan decide that? And what happened to
sending a bunch of us to investigate his heaven?"
   "That  was a dream," her father said coldly. "Reality is that we cannot
do  everything.  Let  someone else explore his heaven, there is plenty for
all; and we will be back in our homes, enjoying riches and fame. It is not
just  a  matter  of  the contract," he went on, almost pleadingly. "We are
saviors! There will be lecture tours and endorsements for the advertising!
We will be persons of great power!"
   "No,  Pop,"  Janine  said, "listen to me. You've all been talking about
our  duty  to  help  the  world-feed people, bring them new things to make
their lives better. Well, aren't we going to do our duty?"
   He  turned on her furiously. "Little minx, what do you know about duty?
Without me you would be in some gutter in Chicago, waiting for the welfare
check! We must think of ourselves as well!"
   She  would have replied, but Wan's wide-eyed, frightened stare made her
stop.  "I hate this!" she announced. "Wan and I are going to go for a walk
to get away from the lot of you!"
   "He  is  not  really a bad person," she told Wan, once they were beyond
the  sound of the others. Quarreling voices had followed them and Wan, who
had little experience of disagreements, was obviously upset.
   Wan  did  not reply directly. He pointed to a bulge in the glowing blue
wall.  "This  is a place for water," he said, "but it is a dead one. There
are dozens of them, but almost all dead."
   Out  of duty, Janine inspected it, pointing her shoulder-held camera at
it  as she slid the rounded cover back and forth. There was a protuberance
like  a  nose at the top of it, and what must be a drain at the bottom; it
was  almost  large enough to get into, but bone dry. "You said one of them
still works, but the water isn't drinkable?"
   "Yes, Janine. Would you like me to show it to you?"
   "Well, I guess so." She added, "Really, don't let them get to you. They
just get excited."
   "Yes, Janine." But he was not in a talkative mood.
   She  said,  "When  I was little he used to tell me stories. Mostly they
were  scary,  but  sometimes not. He told me about Schwarze Peter, who, as
far  as I can figure out, was something like Santa Claus. He said if I was
a  good little girl Schwarze Peter would bring me a doll at Christmas, but
if  I wasn't he'd bring me a lump of coal. Or worse. That's what I used to
call  him,  Schwarze  Peter.  But he never gave me a lump of coal." He was
listening intently as they moved down the glowing corridor, but he did not
respond.  "Then my mother died," she said, "and Paul and Lurvy got married
and  I  went to live with them for a while. But Pop wasn't so bad, really.
He  came  to  see  me as often as he could-I guess. Wan! Do you understand
what I'm saying to you?"
   "No," he said. "What's Santa Claus?"
   "Oh, Wan!"
   So  she  explained  Santa  Claus to him, and Christmas, and then had to
explain  winter  and snow and gift-giving. His face smoothed, and he began
to  smile;  and  curiously,  as  Wan's  mood improved Janine's grew worse.
Trying to make Wan understand the world she lived in made her confront the
world  ahead.  Almost,  she  thought,  it would be better to do what Peter
proposed,  pack  it  all  in,  go  back  to  their  real  lives.  All  the
alternatives were frightening. Where they were was frightening, if she let
herself  feel it-in some kind of an artifact that was doggedly plowing its
way  through  space  to some unknown destination. What if it arrived? What
would  they  confront? Or if they went back with Wan, what would be there?
Heechee? Heechee! There was fear! Janine had lived all her young life with
the  Heechee  just outside it-terrifying if real, less real than mythical.
Like  Schwarze  Peter  or Santa Claus. Like God. All myths and deities are
tolerable enough to believe in; but what if they become real?
   She  knew  that her family were as fearful as she, though she could not
tell  that from anything they said-they were setting an example of courage
to  her.  She  could only guess. She guessed that Paul and her sister were
afraid  but  had  made  up their minds to gamble against that fear for the
sake  of  what  might  come  of  it.  Her  own  fear was of a very special
kind-less  fear  of  what  might happen than of how badly she might behave
while  it  was  happening  to  her.  What  her  father felt was obvious to
everyone.  He  was  angry  and afraid, and what he was afraid of was dying
before he cashed in on his courage.
   And  what  did  Wan  feel?  He seemed so uncomplicated as he showed her
about  his  domain,  like one child guiding another through his toy chest.
Janine  knew better. If she had learned anything in her fourteen years, it
was that nobody was uncomplicated. Wan's complications were merely not the
same  as  her own, as she saw at once when he showed her the water fixture
that  worked.  He had not been able to drink the water, but he had used it
for  a  toilet.  Janine, brought up in the great conspiracy of the Western
world  to pretend that excretion does not happen, would never have brought
Wan   to  see  this  place  of  stains  and  smells,  but  he  was  wholly
unembarrassed.  She  could  not  even  make  him embarrassed. "I had to go
somewhere,"  he  said  sullenly, when she reproached him for not using the
ship's sanitary like everybody else.
   "Yes,  but  if  you did it the right way Vera would have known you were
sick, don't you see? She's always analyzing our, uh, the bathroom stuff."
   "There ought to be some other way."
   "Well,  there  is." There was the mobile bioassay unit, which took tiny
samples  from  each  of  them-which had, in fact, been put to work on Wan,
once  the necessity was perceived. But Vera was not a very smart computer,
and had not thought to program her mobile unit to sample Wan until told to
do so, a little late. "What's the matter?"
   He was acting uncomfortable. "When the Dead Men give me a medical check
they stick things in me. I don't like that."
   "It's for your own good, Wan," she said severely. "Hey! That's an idea.
Let's go talk to the Dead Men."
   And  there  was Janine's own complicatedness. She didn't really want to
talk  to  the  Dead Men. She just wanted to get away from the embarrassing
place  they  were in; but by the time they had propelled themselves to the
place  where  the  Dead  Men  were,  which  was also the place where Wan's
dreaming  couch was, Janine had decided to want something else. "Wan," she
said, "I want to try the couch."
   He  tilted his head back and narrowed his eyes, appraising her over his
long nose. "Lurvy told me not to do that any more," he stated.
   "I know she did. How do I get in?"
   "First  you  tell  me I must do what you all say," he complained, "then
you all tell me to do different things. It is very confusing."
   She  had  already stepped into the cocoon and stretched out. "Do I just
pull the top down over me?"
   "Oh,"  he  said,  shrugging, "if you've made up your mind-yes. It snaps
shut,  there,  where  your hand is, but when you want to come out you just
push."
   She  reached  for the webby top and pulled it toward her, looking up at
his petulant, concerned face. "Does it-hurt?"
   "Hurt? No! What an idea!"
   "Well, what does it feel like?"
   "Janine,"  he  said  severely,  "you  are very childish. Why do you ask
questions  when  you  can  see  for  yourself?"  And he pushed down on the
shimmery  wire  covering,  and  the catch midway down the side rustled and
locked.  "It  is  best if you go to sleep," he called down to her, through
the shining blue network of wire.
   "But  I'm  not  sleepy,"  she objected reasonably. "I'm not anything. I
don't feel a thing..."
   And then she did.
   It  was  not  what  she  had  expected out of her own experience of the
fever;  there  was  no obsessive interference with her own personality, no
point  source  of feelings. There was only a warm and saturating glow. She
was  surrounded.  She  was an atom in a soup of sensation. The other atoms
had  no  shape or individuality. They were not tangible or hard-edged. She
could  still  see Wan, peering worriedly down at her through the wire when
she  opened her eyes, and these other-souls? were not at all as real or as
immediate.  But  she  could  feel  them,  as  she  had  never felt another
presence.  Around  her.  Beside her. Within her. They were warm. They were
comforting.
   When  Wan  at  last wrenched open the metal wire and pulled at her arm,
she  lay  there  staring at him. She did not have the strength to rise, or
the  desire. He had to help her up, and she leaned on his shoulder as they
started back.
   They were less than halfway back to the Herter-Hall ship when the other
members  of  the  family  interrupted them, and they were furious. "Stupid
little  brat!"  Paul raged. "You ever do anything like that again and I'll
paddle your pink little ass for you!"
   "She  won't!"  her  father said grimly. "I will see to that, right now;
and as to you, little miss, I will see to you later."
   They  had all become so quarrelsome! no one paddled Janine's bottom for
trying  out  the  dreaming  couch.  no  one  punished her at all. They all
punished  each other, instead, and did it all the time. The truce that had
held  for  three  and  a  half years, because each of them enforced it for
himself,  the alternative being mutual murder, dissolved. Paul and the old
man  did  not  speak  for two days, because Peter had dismantled the couch
without  consultation. Lurvy and her father spat and shouted at each other
because  she  had  programmed too much salt in their meal, and then again,
when  it  was  his  turn,  because he had programmed too little. And as to
Lurvy  and  Paul-they  no  longer  slept together; they hardly spoke; they
would  surely  not  have stayed married, if there had been a divorce court
within 5,000 A. U.
   But if there had been a source of authority of any kind within 5,000 A.
U.,  at  least  the  disputes could have been resolved. Someone could have
made their decisions. Should they return? Should they try to overpower the
Food  Factory's  guidance?  Should  they  go with Wan to explore the other
place-and  if  so,  who should go and who should remain behind? They could
not  agree  on  grand plans. They could not even agree on the decisions of
every  hour, to take a machine apart and risk its destruction, or to leave
it  alone  and  give  up  the  hope of some wonderful discovery that could
change everything. They could not agree on who should talk to the Dead Men
by  radio,  or what to ask them. Wan showed them, willingly enough, how to
try  to  tempt  the  Dead Men into conversation, and they put Vera's sound
system  in  linkage  with the "radio". But Vera could not handle much give
and  take;  and when the Dead Men did not understand her questions, or did
not  want to participate, or were simply too insane to be of any use, Vera
was beaten.
   All  this  was  awful for Janine, but worst of all was Wan himself. The
squabbling  made  him  confused  and  indignant.  He stopped following her
around. And after one sleep, when she sat up and looked around for him, he
was gone.
   Fortunately  for  Janine's  pride, everyone else was gone, too-Paul and
Lurvy  outside  the  ship  to reorient the antennae; her father asleep, so
that  she  had  time  to  deal  with  her  jealousy. Let him be a pig! she
thought.  It  was  stupid of him not to realize that she had many friends,
while  he  had  only her; but he would find out! She was busy writing long
letters to her neglected correspondents when she heard Paul and her sister
returning;  and  when she told them that Wan had been gone for at least an
hour she was unprepared for their reaction. "Pa!" Lurvy cried, rattling at
the curtain of her father's private. "Wake up! Wan's gone!"
   As  the  old  man  came  blinking  out, Janine said disagreeably, "Now,
what's the matter with all of you?"
   "You  don't understand, do you?" Paul asked coldly. "What if he's taken
the ship?"
   It was a possibility that had never occurred to Janine, and it was like
a blow in the face. "He wouldn't!"
   "Would  he  not?" snarled her father. "And how do you know that, little
minx?  And  if  he does, what of us?" He finished zipping his coverall and
stood up, glowering at them. "I have told you all," he said-but looking at
Lurvy  and  Paul,  so  that  Janine understood she was not a part of their
"all"-"I have told you that we must find a definite solution. If we are to
go  with  him  in his ship, we must do it. If not, we cannot take the risk
that  he  will  take  it  into  his foolish little mind to go back without
warning. That is assuredly certain."
   "And  how  do we do that?" Lurvy demanded. "You're preposterous, Pa. We
can't guard the ship day and night."
   "And your sister cannot guard the boy, yes," the old man nodded. "So we
must either immobilize the ship, or immobilize the boy."
   Janine  flew  at him. "You monsters!" she choked. "You've been planning
this all out when we weren't around!" Her sister caught and held her.
   "Calm  down,  Janine,"  she ordered. "Yes, it's true we've talked about
it-we had to! But nothing's settled, certainly not that we will hurt Wan."
   "Then settle it!" Janine flared. "I vote we go with Wan!"
   "If he hasn't gone already, by himself," Paul put in.
   "He hasn't!"
   Lurvy said practically, "If he has, it's too late for us to do anything
about it. Outside of that, I'm with Janine. We go! What do you say, Paul?"
   He hesitated. "I-guess so," he conceded. "Peter?"
   The  old  man said with dignity, "If you are all agreed, then what does
it  matter  how  I vote? There is only the question remaining who is to go
and who is to stay. I propose..."
   Lurvy  stopped  him. "Pa," she said, "I know what you are going to say,
but  it  won't work. We need to leave at least one person here, to keep in
contact  with  Earth.  Janine's too young. It can't be me, because I'm the
best  pilot  and  this  is  a  chance  to learn something about piloting a
Heechee ship. I don't want to go without Paul, and that leaves you."
   They  took  Vera  apart,  component by component, and redistributed her
around  the  Food Factory. Fast memory, inputs, and displays went into the
dreaming  chamber, slow memory lining the passageway outside, transmission
still in their old ship. Peter helped, silent and taciturn; the meaning of
what  they  were  doing  was that further communications of interest would
come from the exploring party, via the radio system of the Dead Men. Peter
was helping to write himself off, and knew it. There was plenty of food in
the  ship,  Wan  told  them;  but  Paul  would  not  be satisfied with the
automatic  replenishment of God knew what product of the Food Factory, and
he  made  them  carry  aboard  rations of their own, as much as they could
stow.  Whereupon  Wan  insisted that they stock up with water, and so they
depleted  the  recycling  stocks  in the ship to fill his plastic bags and
loaded  them,  too.  Wan's ship had no beds, None were needed, Wan pointed
out,  because  the acceleration cocoons were enough to protect them during
maneuvers,  and  to keep them from floating around while they slept in the
rest  of  the  voyage-suggestion  vetoed  by  both  Lurvy  and  Paul,  who
dismantled the sleeping pouches from their private and reinstalled them in
the  ship. Personal possessions: Janine wanted her secret stash of perfume
and books, Lurvy her personal locked bag, Paul his cards for solitaire. It
was  long  and  hard  work,  though  they discovered they could ease it by
sailing  the  plastic waterbags and the softer, solider other stores along
the  corridors  in  a  game of slow-motion catch; but at last it was done.
Peter sat sourly propped against a corridor wall, watching the others mill
about,  and tried to think of what had been forgotten. To Janine it seemed
as  though they were already treating him as though he were absent, if not
dead, and she said, "Pop? Don't take it so hard. We'll all be back as soon
as we can."
   He nodded. "Which comes to," he said, "let me see, forty-nine days each
way, plus as long as you decide to stay in this place." But then he pushed
himself  up,  and allowed Lurvy and Janine to kiss him. Almost cheerfully,
he said, "Bon voyage. Are you sure you have forgotten nothing?"
   Lurvy  looked  around,  considering.  "I  think not-unless you think we
should tell your friends we are coming, Wan?"
   "The  Dead  Men?"  he shrilled, grinning. "They will not know. They are
not alive, you know, they have no sense of time."
   "Then why do you like them so much?" Janine demanded.
   Wan  caught  the  note  of  jealousy  and  scowled at her. "They are my
friends,"  he said. "They cannot be taken seriously all the time, and they
often lie. But they do not ever make me feel afraid of them."
   Lurvy  caught her breath. "Oh, Wan," she said, touching him. "I know we
haven't  been  as  nice  as we might. We've all been under a great strain.
We're really better people than we must seem to you."
   Old Peter had had enough. "Go you now," he snarled. "Prove this to him,
do not stand talking forever. And then come back and prove it to me!"

   Less  than  two hours-the fever had never been so short before. Nor had
it  ever  been  as  intense.  The  most  susceptible  one  percent  of the
population  had  simply been out of it for four hours, and nearly everyone
had been severely affected.
   I  was  one of the lucky ones, because after the fever I was only stuck
in my room, with nothing more than a bump on the head from falling over. I
wasn't  trapped  in a wrecked bus, crashed out of a jet-liner, struck by a
runaway car, or bleeding to death on an operating table while surgeons and
nurses  writhed helplessly on the floor. All I had was one hour, fifty-one
minutes  and  forty-four  seconds  of  delirious  misery, and that diluted
because it was shared with eleven billion other people.
   Of  course,  everybody in all those eleven billion was trying to get in
touch  with everybody else, all at once, and so communications were jammed
for  fair.  Harriet  formed  herself  in the tank to tell me that at least
twenty-five  calls  were  coming  in  for  me-my science program, my legal
program,  three or four accountancy programs from my holdings, and quite a
few  real,  live  people.  None of them, she told me apologetically when I
asked,  was Essie; the circuits to Tucson were out entirely at the moment,
and  I  couldn't place a call from my end either. None of the machines had
been  affected  by  the  madness. They never were. The only time something
went  wrong  with them was when some live person had injected himself into
the  circuit,  for maintenance or redesign. But, as statistically that was
happening  a  million  times  a  minute, somewhere in the world, with some
machine  or  another, it was not surprising that some things took a little
while to get going again.
   First  order  of  business was business; I had to pick up the pieces. I
gave  Harriet a hierarchy of priorities, and she began feeding me reports.
Quick  bulletin  from  the food mines: no significant damage. Real estate:
some  minor incidents of fire and flooding, nothing that mattered. Someone
had  left  a  barrier  open  in the fish factories and six hundred million
fingerlings  swam out to lose themselves in the open sea; but I was only a
minority  stockholder  in them anyway. Taken all in all, I had come out of
the  fever smelling of roses, I thought, or anyway a lot better than a lot
of  others. The fever had struck the Indian subcontinent after midnight of
a  day that already had seen one of the worst hurricanes the Bay of Bengal
had  produced  in  fifty years. The death toll was immense. Rescue efforts
had  simply  stopped for two hours. Tens, maybe even hundreds, of millions
of  people  had  been simply unable to drag themselves to high ground, and
southern Bangladesh was a swamp of corpses. Add in a refinery explosion in
California,  a  train  wreck  in  Wales,  and  a  few  as yet uncatalogued
disasters-the  computers  did  not yet have an estimate of deaths, but the
news reports were calling it the worst ever.
   By  the time I had taken all the urgent-urgent calls the elevators were
running  again.  I  wasn't  a  captive any more. Looking out the window, I
could see the Washington streets were normal enough. My trip to Tucson, on
the other hand, was well bollixed. Since half the jets in the air had been
on automatic pilot for two hours, seriously depleting their fuel, they had
been landing where they could, and the lines had equipment in all sorts of
wrong places. The schedules were scrambled. Harriet booked me the best she
could,  but  the first space she could confirm was not until noon the next
day.  I  couldn't even call Essie, because the circuits were still jammed.
That  was  only  an  annoyance,  not  a problem. If I really wanted to get
through,  there  were priorities at my disposal-the rich have their perks.
But  the  rich have their pleasures, too, and I decided it would be fun to
surprise Essie by dropping in on her.
   And meanwhile I had time to spare.
   And  all  this time my science program had been bursting with things to
tell  me.  That  was the dessert after the spinach and liver. I had put it
off  until  I  had  a  chance  for  a good, long natter; and that time had
arrived, "Harriet," I said, "put him on." And Albert Einstein took form in
the tank, leaning forward and twitching with excitement. "What is it, Al,"
I asked, "something good?"
   "Sure thing, Robin! We've found out where the fever comes from-it's the
Food Factory!"
   It  was  my own fault. If I had let Albert tell me what was on his mind
at  once, I wouldn't have been just about the last person on Earth to find
out  that  I owned the place all the trouble came from. That was the first
thing  that  hit  me,  and  I  was  thinking  about possible liability and
sniffing for advantages all the time he was explaining the evidence to me.
First  and conclusive, of course, was the on-the-spot pickup from the Food
Factory  itself.  But we should have known all along. "If I had only timed
the  Onsets carefully," Albert berated himself, "we could have located the
source  years  ago.  And there were plenty of other clues, consistent with
their photonic nature."
   "Their what nature?"
   "They are electromagnetic, Robin," he explained. He tamped tobacco into
his  pipe  and  reached for a match. "You realize, of course, that this is
established  by  transmission  time-we received whatever signal caused the
madness at the same time as the transmission showing it happening."
   "Wait  a minute. If the Heechee have faster-than-light radio, why isn't
this the same?"
   "Ah,  Robin!  If we only knew that!" he twinkled, lighting his pipe. "I
can  only  conjecture..."  puff, puff, "that this particular effect is not
compatible with their other mode of transmission, but the reasons for that
I  cannot  even  speculate  on  at this time. And, of course," he went on,
"there are certain questions raised at once to which we do not as yet have
any answers."
   "Of  course," I said, but I didn't ask him what they were. I was on the
track  of something else. "Albert? Display the ships and stations you drew
information from in space."
   "Sure  thing,  Robin."  The  flyaway hair and the seamed, cheerful face
melted away, and at once the holographic tank filled with a representation
of circumsolar space. Nine planets. A girdle of dust that was the asteroid
belt, and a powdery shell far out that was the Oort cloud. And about forty
points  of  colored light. The representation was in logarithmic scale, to
get  it  all  in,  and  the  size  of  the planets and artifacts immensely
enlarged. Albert's voice explained, "The four green ships are ours, Robin.
The eleven blue objects are Heechee installations; the round ones are only
detected,  the  star-shaped  ones have been visited and are mostly manned.
All  the others are ships that belong to other commercial interests, or to
governments."
   I  studied the plot. Not very many of the sparks were anywhere near the
green  ship  and  blue  star  that  marked  the  Food Factory. "Albert? If
somebody  had to get another ship out to the Food Factory, which one could
get there fastest?"
   He appeared in the lower corner of the projection, frowning and sucking
his  pipe  stem.  A golden point near Saturn's rings began to flash on and
off. "There's a Brazilian cruiser just departing Tethys that could make it
in  eighteen  months," he said. "I have displayed only the ships that were
involved  in  my  radiolocation.  There  are several others..." new lights
winked  on  in  a scatter around the tank, "that could do better, provided
they have adequate fuel and supplies. But none in less than a year."
   I  sighed.  "Turn  it  off,  Albert," I said. "The thing is, we're into
something I didn't expect."
   "What's  that, Robin?" he asked, filling the tank again and folding his
hands over his belly in a comfortable way.
   "That cocoon. I don't know how to handle it. I don't even see the point
of it. What's it for, Albert? Have you got any conjectures?"
   "Sure  thing, Robin," he said, nodding cheerfully. "My best conjectures
are  a  pretty low order of probability, but that's just because there are
so   many   unknowns.   Let's   put  it  this  way.  Suppose  you  were  a
Heechee-something like an anthropologist, say-interested in keeping an eye
on  a  developing  civilization. Evolution takes a long time, so you don't
want  to  just  sit  there and watch. What you'd like to do is get a quick
estimate,  maybe  every  thousand years or so, sort of a spot check. Well,
given  something like the cocoon, you could just send somebody over to the
Food  Factory  every  once in a while, maybe every thousand years or more;
climb  in  the couch, get an instant feel for what was happening. It would
take only minutes." He paused consideringly for a moment, before going on.
"Then-but  this  is  a speculation on top of a conjecture; I wouldn't even
assign  a  probability  rating  to  it  at all-then, if you found anything
interesting,  you could explore further. You could even do something else.
This  is  really far out, Robin. You might even suggest things. The cocoon
transmits  as  well as receives, that's what the fevers came from. Perhaps
it  can  also transmit concepts. We know that in human history many of the
great  inventions  sprang up all over the world, apparently independently,
maybe simultaneously. Are they Heechee suggestions, via the couch?"
   He sat there, puffing his pipe and smiling at me, while I thought about
that.
   All  the  thinking  in  the  world  didn't  make  it  good,  clean fun.
Thrilling, maybe. But nothing you could relax to. The world had changed in
fundamental ways since the first astronauts discovered Heechee diggings on
Venus,  and  the  more we explored the bigger the changes got. A lost kid,
playing  with  something he didn't understand, had plunged the whole human
race  into recurring madness for more than a decade. If we kept on playing
with  things  we didn't understand, what were the Heechee going to give us
for an encore?
   To  say  nothing  of  the  queasiness of Albert's suggestion that these
creatures  had  been spying on us for hundreds of thousands of years-maybe
even throwing us a crumb, now and then, to see what we would make of it.
   I  told  Albert to bring me up to date on everything else he knew about
what  was  going  on in the Food Factory, and while he was running through
the  physical facts I called up Harriet. She appeared in one corner of the
tank,  looking questioning, and took my order for dinner while Albert kept
right  on  with  his show and tell. He was continuously monitoring all the
transmissions  even as he was reporting on them, and be showed me selected
scenes  of  the boy, the Herter-Hall party, the interiors of the artifact.
The  damn  thing  was  still  determined  to  go  its own way. Best course
estimates  suggested  that  it  was moving toward a new cluster of comets,
several  million  miles away-at present rates, it would get there in a few
months. "Then what?" I demanded.
   Albert  shrugged  apologetically.  "Presumably  it will then stay there
until it has mined them of all the CHON ingredients, Robin."
   "Then can we move it?"
   "No  evidence,  Robin.  But  it's possible. Speaking of which, I have a
theory  about  the controls of the Heechee ships. When one of them reaches
an  operating  artifact-the  Food  Factory, Gateway, whatever-its controls
unlock  and  it  can  then be redirected. At any rate, I think that may be
what  happened  to  Ms.  Patricia Bover-and that, too, has certain obvious
implications," he twinkled.
   I  don't  like  to let a computer program think it's smarter than I am.
"You  mean that there may be a lot of stranded Gateway astronauts all over
the  Galaxy,  because  their controls unlocked and they didn't know how to
get back?"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin,"  he said approvingly. "That may account for what
Wan  calls the 'Dead Men'. We've received some conversations with them, by
the  way.  Their  responses are sometimes quite nonrational, and of course
we're  handicapped  by not being able to interact. But it does appear that
they are, or were, human beings."
   "Are you telling me they were alive?"
   "Sure thing, Robin, or at least in the sense that Enrico Caruso's voice
on  a  tape  was once the voice of a living Neapolitan tenor. Whether they
are  'alive'  now  is  a  matter  of  definition.  You  might ask the same
question..." puff, pull, "about me."
   "Huh." I thought for a minute. "Why are they so crazy?"
   "Imperfect  transcription,  I  would say. But that is not the important
thing."  I  waited  until  he drew on his pipe to get ready to tell me the
important  thing.  "It  seems  rather  sure, Robin, that the transcription
occurred  by  some  sort  of  chemical readout of the actual brains of the
prospectors."
   "You  mean  the  Heechee  killed  them  and  poured their brains into a
bottle?"
   "Certainly  not,  Robin!  First,  I  would  hazard the opinion that the
prospectors  died  naturally  rather than being killed. That would degrade
the  chemistry  of  brain storage and contribute to the degradation of the
information.  And  certainly not into a bottle! Into some sort of chemical
analogs, perhaps. But the point is, how did this happen to be?"
   I groaned. "Do you want me to abolish your program, Al? I could get all
this quicker from straight visual synoptics."
   "Sure  thing  you  could,  Robin,  but  not," he twinkled, "perhaps, as
entertainingly.  At  any rate, the question is, how did the Heechee happen
to  have  equipment  to  read out a human brain? Think about it, Robin. It
seems  very improbable that the chemistry of the Heechee would be the same
as  the  chemistry of a human being. Close, yes. We know that from general
considerations,  e.  g.,  what  they breathed and ate. Fundamentally their
chemistry  was  not unlike ours. But peptides are quite complex molecules.
It  seems  most  unlikely  that  a  compound  which represents, e. g., the
ability to play a Stradivarius well, or even toilet-training, would be the
same  in their chemistry as in ours." He started to relight his pipe, then
caught  my  eye  and  added  hurriedly,  "So I conclude, Robin, that these
machines were designed not for Heechee brains."
   He  startled  me.  "For  humans, then? But why? How? How did they know?
When..."
   "Please,  Robin.  At  your instructions, your wife has programmed me to
make  large deductions from small data. Therefore I cannot defend all that
I say. But," he added, nodding sagely, "I have this opinion, yes."
   "Jesus,"  I said. He did not seem to want to add anything to that, so I
tucked  it  away  and went on to the next worry. "What about the Old Ones?
Are they human, do you think?"
   He  tapped his pipe out and reached for the tobacco pouch. "I would say
not," he said at last.
   I didn't ask him what the alternative was. I didn't want to hear it.
   When  Albert  had run himself dry for the moment, I told Harriet to put
my  legal  program  on. I couldn't talk to him right away, though, because
right  then  my dinner came up and the waiter was a human being. He wanted
to ask me how I had got through the fever, so that he could tell me how he
had, and that took time. But at last I sat down in front of the holo tank,
sliced  into  my chicken steak and said, "Go ahead, Morton, what's the bad
news?"
   He said apologetically, "You know that Bover suit?"
   "What Bover suit?"
   "Trish Bover's husband. Or widower, depending on how you look at it. We
filed the appearance, only unfortunately the judge had a bad attack of the
fever  and...  Well.  He  is  wrong  in  the law, Robin, but he denied our
request  for  time  to  set  a  hearing  date and entered summary judgment
against."
   I  stopped  chewing.  "Can he do that?" I roared through my mouthful of
prime rare chicken.
   "Well,  yes,  or  at least he did it. But we'll get him on appeal, only
that makes it a little more complicated. Her lawyer got a chance to argue,
and  he  pointed out that Trish did file a mission report. So there's some
question   whether  she  actually  completed  the  mission,  do  you  see?
Meanwhile..."
   Sometimes I think Morton is too humanly programmed; he does know how to
draw out a discussion so. "Meanwhile what, Morton?"
   "Well,  since  the  recent,  ah,  episode,  there  seems  to be another
complication.  Gateway  Corp  wants  to go slow until they figure out just
where they are with this fever business, so they've accepted service of an
injunction.  Neither you nor Food Factory Inc. is supposed to proceed with
exploitation of the factory."
   I  blew up. "Shit, Mort! You mean we can't use it after we bring it all
the way in from orbit?"
   "I'm  afraid I mean more than that," he apologized. "You're enjoined to
stop  moving  it.  You're  enjoined  to  refrain from interfering with its
normal  activities  in  any  way,  pending  a declarative judgment. That's
Bover's  action, on the grounds that if you prevent it from producing food
by  moving to a new comet cluster you're endangering his interest. Now, we
can  get  that  vacated, I'm sure. But by then Gateway Corp will have some
sort  of  action  to  stop doing everything until they get a handle on the
fever."
   "Oh, God." I put down my fork. I wasn't hungry any more. "The only good
thing," I said, "is that's an order they can't enforce."
   "Because  it  will  take  so  long  to get a message to the Herter-Hall
party, yes, Robin," he nodded. "On the..."
   He  disappeared,  zit.  He  slid  diagonally  away out of the tank, and
Harriet  appeared.  She  looked  terrible.  I  have  good  programs for my
computer  help. But they don't always bring good news. "Robin!" she cried.
"There's a message from Mesa General Hospital in Arizona-it's your wife!"
   "Essie? Essie? Is she sick?"
   "Oh, worse than that, Robin. Total somatic cessation. She was killed in
a car crash. They've got her on life support, but... There's no prognosis,
Robin. She isn't responding."
   I  didn't  use  my  priorities.  I didn't want to take the time. I went
straight  to  the  Washington  office of the Gateway Corp. who went to the
Secretary  of  Defense,  who squeezed space for me out of a hospital plane
leaving Boiling in twenty-five minutes, and I made it.
   The  flight  was  three hours, and I was in suspended animation all the
way.  There  were no comm facilities for passengers in the plane. I didn't
even  want  them. I just wanted to get there. When my mother died and left
me it hurt, but I was poor and confused and used to hurting. When the love
of  my life, or at any rate the woman who seemed to come to be the love of
my  life  after  she  was  safely  gone, also left me-without quite dying,
because  she  was stuck in some awful astrophysical anomaly and far out of
reach  forever-that  also  hurt. But I was hurting all over anyway then. I
wasn't used to happiness, hadn't formed the habit of it. There is a Carnot
law  to  pain.  It is measured not by absolutes but the difference between
source and ambience, and my ambience had been too safe and too pleasurable
for too long to equip me for this. I was in shock.
   Mesa  General  was  a low-rise, dug into the desert outside Tucson. All
you  could  see  as  we  came up to it were the solar installations on the
"roof,"  but  under  them  were six subterranean floors of hospital rooms,
labs,  and  operating  theaters. They were all full. Tucson is a commuting
city, and the madness had struck at drive time.
   When  I finally got a floor nurse to stop and answer a question, what I
heard  was  that Essie was still on the heart-lung, but might be taken off
at  any  moment. It was a question of triage. The machines might better be
used for other patients, whose chances were better than hers.
   I am shamed to say how fast conceptions of fairness went out the window
when  it  was my own wife who was on the machines. I hunted out a doctor's
office-he  wouldn't  be  using  it  for some time-kicked out the insurance
adjustor  who  had  borrowed  his  desk  and  got  on the wires. I had two
senators  on  the  line at once before Harriet broke in with a report from
our medical program.
   Essie's  pulse  had begun to respond. They now thought her chances were
good  enough to justify giving her the additional chance of staying on the
machines for a while.
   Of  course,  Full  Medical helped. But the waiting room outside had all
its benches full of people waiting for treatment, and I could see from the
neck-bands  that  some  of  them  were  Full Medical too; the hospital was
simply swamped.
   I  could  not get in to see her. Intensive Care was no Visitors, and no
visitors meant not even me; there was a Tucson city policeman at the door,
forcing  himself  to  stay  awake  after a very long, hard day and feeling
mean.  I  fiddled  with  the  absent  doctor's  desk  set  until I found a
closed-circuit  line  that  looked into Intensive Care, and I just left it
on. I couldn't see how well Essie was doing. I couldn't even tell for sure
which mummy she was. But I kept looking at it. Harriet called in from time
to  time  to pass on little news items. She didn't bother with messages of
sympathy and concern; there were plenty of those, but Essie had written me
a  Robinette  Broadhead  program  to  deal  with  social time-wasters, and
Harriet  gave callers an image and a worried smile and a thank you without
bothering  to  cut  me in to the circuit. Essie had been very good at that
kind  of  programming.  Past  tense.  When  I realized I was thinking of a
past-tense Essie is when I felt really bad.
   After  an  hour a Gray Lady found me and gave me bouillon and crackers,
and a little later I spent forty-five minutes in line for the public men's
room;  and  that  was  about all the diversion I had on the third floor of
Mesa General until, at last, a candystriper poked her head in the door and
said,  "Senor  Broad'ead?  Por  favor."  The  cop was still at the door of
Intensive Care, fanning himself with his sweaty Stetson to stay awake, but
with the candy-striper leading me firmly by the hand he did not interfere.
   Essie  was  under  a  positive-pressure bubble. There was a transparent
patch  just  at  her  face,  so  that I could see a tube coming out of her
nostril  and  a  wad of bandaging over the left side of her face. Her eyes
were  closed. They had bundled her dirty-gold hair into a net. She was not
conscious.
   Two  minutes  was  all  they  allowed,  and that wasn't enough time for
anything.  Not enough even to figure out what all the lumpy, bulky objects
under the translucent part of her bubble were all about. Not enough at all
for  Essie  to  sit  up and talk to me or to change expression. Or even to
have one.
   In  the hall outside, her doctor gave me sixty seconds. He was a short,
pot-bellied  old black man wearing blue-eyed contact lenses, and he looked
at  a  piece  of  paper to see who it was he was talking to. "Oh, yes, Mr.
Blackhead,"  he  said.  "Your  wife  is receiving the best of care, she is
responding  to treatment, there is some chance she will be conscious for a
short time toward evening."
   I  didn't bother to correct him about the name and picked the three top
questions  on  the  list:  "Will  she be in pain? What happened to her? Is
there anything she needs? -I mean anything."
   He  sighed  and rubbed his eyes. Evidently the contacts had been in too
long.  "Pain  we  can  take  care of, and she's already on Full Medical. I
understand  you  are  an important man, Mr. Brackett. But there is nothing
for  you  to  do.  Tomorrow  or  the next day, maybe there'll be something
she'll  need.  Today,  no.  Her  whole  left side was crushed when the bus
folded  in  on her. She was bent almost double and stayed that way for six
or seven hours, until somebody got to her."
   I  didn't  know  I  had made a sound, but the doctor heard something. A
little  sympathy  came  through  the contact lenses as he peered up at me.
"That was actually to her advantage, you know. It probably saved her life.
Being  squeezed  was as good as compression pads, otherwise she would have
bled  to  death."  He blinked down at the scrap of paper in his hand. "Um.
She's  going  to need, let me see, a new hip joint. Splints to replace two
ribs.  Eight,  ten,  fourteen-maybe  twenty square inches of new skin, and
there's  considerable tissue loss to the left kidney. I think we'll want a
transplant."
   "If there's anything at all..."
   "Nothing  at all, Mr. Blackeu," he said, folding up the paper. "Nothing
now.  Go  away, please. Come back after six if you want to, and you may be
able  to  talk to her for a minute. But right now we need the space you're
taking up."
   Harriet  had  already arranged for the hotel to move Essie's things out
of  her  room and into a penthouse suite, and she had even ordered and had
delivered  toilet  stuff  and  a couple of changes of clothing. I holed up
there.  I  didn't  want  to  go  out.  I  didn't enjoy seeing the cheerful
tipplers  in  the  lobby  bar,  or  the streets full of people who had got
safely  through the fever and wanted to tell each other what a close thing
it had been for them.
   I  made myself eat. Then I made myself sleep. I succeeded in that much,
but  not  in  staying asleep very long. I took a long, hot whirly bath and
played  some music for background; it was actually quite a nice hotel. But
when  they  went  from  Stravinsky to Carl Orff that lusty, horny Catullus
poetry  made  me  think about the last time I had played it with my lusty,
horny, and, at the moment, seriously broken-up wife.
   "Turn  it  off,"  I  snapped  and  ever-vigilant  Harriet stopped it in
midshriek.
   "Do  you  want to receive messages, Robin?" she inquired froth the same
audio speaker.
   I  dried  myself  carefully,  and  then  said: "In a minute. I might as
well."  Dried,  brushed,  in  clean  clothes,  I  sat down in front of the
hotel's  comm  system. They weren't quite nice enough to give their guests
full holo, but Harriet looked familiar enough as she peered at me out of a
flat-plate  display.  She  reassured  me about Essie. She was continuously
monitoring,  and  everything  was  going  well  enough-not  far enough, of
course.  But not badly. Essie's own real flesh-and-blood doctor was in the
picture,  and  Harriet  gave me a taped message from her. It translated to
don't  worry, Robin. Or, more accurately, don't worry quite as much as you
think you ought to.
   Harriet  had  a  batch  of  action  messages  for  me  to  deal with. I
authorized  another  half-million  dollars  for  fire-fighting in the food
mines,  instructed  Morton to get a hearing time with the Gateway Corp for
our  man in Brasilia, told my broker what to sell to give me a little more
liquidity  as a hedge against unreported fever losses. Then I let the most
interesting  programs  report  in, finishing with Albert's latest synoptic
from  the Food Factory. I did all this, you understand, with great clarity
and  efficiency.  I had accepted the fact that Essie's chances of survival
were  measurably  improving  all  the  time, so I didn't need to spare any
energy  for  grief.  And I had not, entirely, allowed myself to understand
how many gobbets of flesh and bone had been gouged out of my love's lovely
body,  and that saved me all sorts of expenditures, for emotions I did not
want to explore.
   There  was  a time when I went through several long years of shrinkery,
in  the  course of which I found out a lot of places inside my head that I
didn't  much  like  having  there. That's okay. Once you take them out and
look  at them-well, they're pretty bad, but at least they're outside, now,
not  still  inside  and poisoning your system. My old psychiatric program,
Sigfrid von Shrink, said it was like moving your bowels.
   He was right, far as he went-one of the things I found unlikeable about
Sigfrid  was that he was infuriatingly reliably right, all too much of the
time.  What  he  didn't  say  was  that you never got finished moving your
bowels.  I  kept  coming up with new excreta, and, you know, no matter how
much of it you encounter, you never get to liking it.
   I  turned  Harriet off, except for standby in case of something urgent,
and  watched  some piezovision comedies for a while. I made myself a drink
out  of  the  suite's  adequate wet bar, and then I made another. I wasn't
watching  the  PV,  and  I wasn't enjoying the drink. What I was doing was
encountering  another great glob of fecal matter coming out of my head. My
dearest  beloved  wife  was lying all beaten and broken in Intensive Care,
and I was thinking about somebody else.
   I  turned off the tap-dancers and called for Albert Einstein. He popped
onto  the plate, his white hair flying and his old pipe in his hand. "What
can I do for you, Robin?" he beamed.
   "I want you to talk to me about black holes," I said.
   "Sure  thing,  Robin.  But  we've been over this a goad many times, you
know..."
   "Fuck  off, Albert! Just do it. And I don't mean in mathematics, I just
want  you to explain them as simply as you can." One of these days I would
have   to   get   Essie   to   rewrite  Albert's  program  a  little  less
idiosyncratically.
   "Sure  thing,  Robin,"  he  said,  cheerfully  ignoring  my  temper. He
wrinkled his furry eyebrows. "Ah-ha," he said. "Uh-huh. Well, let's see."
   "Is  that  a  hard  question  for  you?"  I  asked, more surprised than
sarcastic.
   "Of course not, Robin. I was just thinking how far back I should start.
Well,  let's start with light. You know that light is made up of particles
called photons. It has mass, and it exerts pressure..."
   "Not that far back, Albert, please."
   "All  right.  But  the way a black hole begins starts with a failure of
light  pressure. Take a big star-a blue Class-O, say. Ten times as massive
as  the  sun. Burns up its nuclear fuel so fast that it only lives about a
billion   years.   What   keeps   it  from  collapsing  is  the  radiation
pressure-call  it  the  'light  pressure'  from  the  nuclear  reaction of
hydrogen  fusing  into helium inside it. But then it runs out of hydrogen.
Pressure  stops. It collapses. It does so very, very fast, Robin, maybe in
only  a matter of hours. And a star that used to be millions of kilometers
in  diameter  is all of a sudden only thirty kilometers. Have you got that
part, Robin?"
   "I think so. Get on with it."
   "Well," he said, lighting his pipe and taking a couple of puffs-I can't
help  wondering  if he enjoys it! -"that's one of the ways black holes get
started.  The classical way, you might call it. Keep that in mind, and now
go on to the next part: escape velocity."
   "I know what escape velocity is."
   "Sure  thing,  Robin,"  he nodded, "an old Gateway prospector like you.
Well.  When you were on Gateway, suppose you threw a rock straight up from
the  surface.  It  would  probably come back, because even an asteroid has
some  gravity.  But if you could throw it fast enough-maybe forty or fifty
kilometers  an  hour-it wouldn't come back. It would reach escape velocity
and  just  fly  away  forever.  On  the Moon, you'd have to throw it a lot
faster  still,  say two or three kilometers a second. On the Earth, faster
than that-better than eleven kilometers a second.
   "Now," he said, reaching forward to tap coals out of his pipe and light
it again, "if you..." tap, tap, "if you were on the surface of some object
that  has a very, very high surface gravity, the condition would be worse.
Suppose  the gravity were such that the escape velocity were up real high,
say  around  three  hundred  and  ten  thousand  kilometers  a second. You
couldn't throw a rock that fast. Even light doesn't quite go that fast! So
even  light..."  puff,  puff,  "can't  escape, because its velocity is ten
thousand  kilometers  a  second  too slow. And, as we know, if light can't
escape,  then nothing can escape; that's Einstein. If I may be excused the
vanity."  He actually winked at me over his pipe. "So that's a black hole.
It's black because it can't radiate at all."
   I said, "What about a Heechee spaceship? They go faster than light."
   Albert  grinned  ruefully.  "Got me there, Robin, but we don't know how
they  go  faster  than light. Maybe a Heechee can get out of a black hole,
who knows? But we don't have any evidence of one of them ever doing it."
   I thought that over for a moment. "Yet," I said.
   "Well,  yes,  Robin,"  he  agreed.  "The  problem, of going faster than
light,  and the problem of escaping from a black hole, are essentially the
same  problem."  He  paused.  A long pause. Then, apologetically, "I guess
that's about all we can profitably say on that subject, right now."
   I  got  up and refreshed my drink, leaving him sitting there, patiently
puffing  his pipe. Sometimes it was hard to remember that there was really
nothing  there,  nothing  but  a  few  interference patterns of collimated
light,  backed  up  by  some  tons of metal and plastic. "Albert," I said,
"tell  me  something. You computers are supposed to be lightning-fast. Why
is it that you take so long to answer sometimes? Just dramatic effect?"
   "Well,  Bob, sometimes it is," he said after a moment, "like that time.
But  I am not sure you understand how difficult it is for me to 'chat.' If
you  want information about, say, black holes, I have no trouble producing
it for you. Six million bits a second, if you like. But to put it in terms
you  can  understand,  above  all  to  put it in the form of conversation,
involves  more  than  accessing  the  storage.  I have to do word-searches
through  literature  and  taped conversations. I have to map analogies and
metaphors  against  your  own mind-sets. I have to meet such strictures as
are  imposed  by your defined normatives for my behavior, and by relevance
to the tone of the particular chat. "'Tain't easy, Robin."
   "You're smarter than you look, Albert," I said.
   He  tapped his pipe out and looked up at me under his shaggy white mop.
"Would you mind, Bob, if I said so are you?"
   I  let him go, saying, "You're a good old machine, Albert." I stretched
out on the jelly-bed couch, half asleep with my drink in my hand. At least
he  had  taken  my  mind  off  Essie  for a while, but there was a nagging
question  in  my  mind.  Somewhere, sometime, I had said the same thing to
some other program, and I couldn't remember when.
   Harriet  woke  me  up  to say that there was an in-person call from our
doctor-not the program, but the real live Wilma Liederman, M. D., who came
to see us to make sure the machines were doing things right, every once in
a while. "Robin," she said, "I think Essie's out of danger."
   "That's-marvelous!"  I said, wishing I had saved words like "marvelous"
for  when I really meant them, because they didn't do justice to the way I
felt.  Our  program  had  already  accessed  the Mesa General circuits, of
course.  Wilma  knew as much about her condition as the little black man I
had  talked  to-and,  of course, had pumped all of Essie's medical history
back  into  the Mesa General store. Wilma offered to fly out herself if we
wanted her to. I told her she was the doctor, not me, and she told me that
she  would  get a Columbia classmate of hers in Tucson to look in on Essie
instead.
   "But don't go to see her tonight, Robin," she said. "Talk to her on the
phone   if  you  want  to-I  prescribe  it-but  don't  tire  her  out.  By
tomorrow-well, I think she'll be stronger."
   So  I called Essie, and talked to her for three minutes-she was groggy,
but  she  knew what was happening. And then I let myself go back to sleep,
and  just  as  I  was  dropping off I remembered that Albert had called me
"Bob".
   There  was  another  program  that I had been on friendly terms with, a
long  time  ago,  that sometimes called me "Robin" and sometimes "Bob" and
even "Bobby". I hadn't talked to that particular program in quite a while,
because I hadn't felt the need of it; but maybe I was beginning to.
   Full  Medical is-well, it's full medical. It's everything. If there's a
way  to keep you healthy, and especially to keep you alive, you've got it.
And  there are lots of ways. Full Medical runs to hundreds of thousands of
dollars  a  year.  Not  too  many people can afford it-something under one
tenth  of  one percent even in the developed countries. But it buys a lot.
Right after lunch the next day, it bought me Essie.
   Wilma  said  it  was  all right, and so did everybody else. The city of
Tucson  had recovered enough for that sort of thing. The city had got over
the  emergency  aspects of the fever. Its structures were back to business
as  usual,  meaning  that  they once again had time to deliver what people
paid  for.  So  at  noon  a  private  ambulance trucked in bed, heart-lung
machine, dialysis pack, and peripherals. At twelve-thirty a team of nurses
moved into the suite across the hail, and at a quarter after two I rode up
in the freight elevator with six cubic meters of hardware, in the heart of
which was the heart of me, namely my wife.
   Among   the  other  things  Full  Medical  bought  were  a  trickle  of
pain-killers  and  mood-mediators,  corticosteroids  to  speed healing and
moderators  to  keep  the  corticosteroids  from  spoiling her cells, four
hundred  kilograms  of  plumbing under the framework of the bed to monitor
all  of  what  Essie  did,  and  to  intervene  to help her do it when she
couldn't.  Just transferring her from the travel machine to the one in the
master bedroom took an hour and a half, with Wilma's classmate supervising
a  team  of  interns and orderlies. They threw me out while that was going
on,  and  I  drank  a  couple  of  cups of coffee down in the hotel lobby,
watching  the  teardrop-shaped  elevators  climb  up and down the interior
walls.  When  I  figured  I  was  allowed  back  I met the doctor from the
hospital  in  the  hail.  He  had managed to get a little sleep and he was
wearing  granny  glasses instead of the contacts. "Don't tire her out," he
said.
   "I'm getting tired of hearing that."
   He  grinned and invited himself to share a third cup of coffee with me.
He turned out to be quite a nice guy, as well as the best short basketball
center  Tempe  had  ever  had, when he was an Arizona State undergraduate.
There  is  something I like about a man of a hundred and sixty centimeters
who  goes out for the basketball team, and we parted friends. That was the
most  reassuring  thing  of  all.  He  wouldn't have let that happen if he
hadn't been pretty sure Essie was going to make it.
   I did not then appreciate how much "making it" she was going to have to
do.
   She  was  still  under the positive-pressure bubble, and that spared me
from  seeing  quite how used up she looked. The dayduty nurse retreated to
the  sitting  room,  after  telling  me not to get Essie too tired, and we
talked  for  a  while.  We didn't say anything, really. S. Ya. is not your
talkative  type  person.  She  asked  me  what  the news was from the Food
Factory,  and  when  I  had given her a thirty-second synoptic on that she
asked  what the news was about the fever. By the time I had given her four
or  five  thousand-word  answers to her one-sentence questions it began to
dawn  on  me  that  talking was really quite a strain and that I shouldn't
tire her out.
   But  she  was  talking,  and  even talking coherently, and did not seem
worried; and so I went back to my console and to work.
   There  was  the  usual  raft of reports to get through and decisions to
make.  When  that  was done I listened to Albert's latest reports from the
Food  Factory  for  a  while and then realized it was time for me to go to
sleep.
   I  lay in bed for quite a while. I wasn't restless. I wasn't exhausted.
I  was  just  letting  the tensions drain out of me. In the sitting room I
could  hear the night nurse moving around. On the other side, from Essie's
room, came the constant faint sigh and hum and gurgle of the machines that
were  keeping my wife alive. The world had got well ahead of me. I was not
taking  it  all  in. I had not yet quite understood that forty-eight hours
before,  Essie  had  been  dead. Kaput. Xed. no longer alive. If it hadn't
been  for  Full  Medical,  and a lot of luck, I would along about now have
been selecting the clothes to wear to her funeral.
   And  inside  my  head  there was a small minority of cells of the brain
that understood that fact and was thinking, well, you know, maybe, it just
might have been tidier all around if she hadn't been brought back to life.
   This  had  nothing  to do with the fact that I loved Essie, loved her a
lot, wished her nothing but well, had gone into shock when I heard she was
hurt. The minority party in my brain spoke only for itself. Every time the
question  came  up  a thundering majority voted for loving Essie, whenever
polled, however asked.
   I  have never been entirely sure what the word "love" means. Especially
when  applied  to myself. Just before I fell asleep I thought for a moment
of  dialing  Albert  up and asking him to explain it. But I didn't. Albert
was the wrong program to ask, and I didn't want to start up with the right
one.
   The  synoptics kept coming in, and I watched the unfolding story of the
Food  Factory,  and  I felt like an anachronism. A couple of centuries ago
the world-girdlers of England and Spain operated at a remove of a month or
two from the action fronts. no cable, no satellites. Their orders went out
on  sailing ships, and replies came back when they could. I wished I could
share  their  skills. The fifty days of round-trip time between us and the
Herter-Halls  seemed  like  forever.  Here  was I at Ghent, and there were
they,  Andy  Jackson  pounding  the  pee out of the British at New Orleans
weeks  after the war was over. Of course, I had sent out instant orders on
how  they  were  to conduct themselves. What questions they were to ask of
the  boy,  Wan. What attempts they were to make to divert the Food Factory
from  its  course.  And  five  thousand astronomical units away, they were
doing  what  occurred to them to do, and by the time my orders arrived all
the questions would be moot.
   As  Essie  mended,  so  did my spirits. Her heart pumped by itself. Her
lungs  kept her in air. They took the positive-pressure bubble off her and
I  could  touch  her and kiss her cheek, and she was taking an interest in
what  went on. Had been all along; when I said it was too bad she'd missed
her  conference  she  grinned up at me. "AU on tape, dear Robin; have been
playing it back when you were busy."
   "But you couldn't give your own paper..."
   "You think? Why not? I wrote 'Robinette Broadhead' program for you, did
you  not  know  I  also  wrote  one  for  me?  Conference  moved  in  full
holographics and S. Ya. Lavorovna-Broadhead projection gave complete text.
To  considerable  approval.  Even  handled  questions,"  she  boasted, "by
borrowing your Albert program in drag."
   Well,  she's an astonishing person, as I have always known. The trouble
is that I expect her to be astonishing, and when I talked to her doctor he
brought  me  down.  He was on the hop, between the suite and Mesa General,
and  I asked him if I could bring her home. He hesitated, peering up at me
through the blue contacts. "Yes, probably," he said. "But I'm not sure you
understand  how  serious  her  injuries  are,  Mr.  Broadhead.  All that's
happening  now  is that she's building up some reserves of strength. She's
going to need them."
   "Well, I know that, Doe. There'll have to be another operation..."
   "No.  Not  one, Mr. Broadhead. I think your wife will spend most of the
next  couple  of months in surgery and convalescence. And I don't want you
assuming  that  the  results  are  a  foregone  conclusion,"  he lectured.
"There's  a risk to every procedure, and she's up against some hairy ones.
Cherish  her, Mr. Broadhead. We reanimated her after one cardiac arrest. I
don't guarantee it'll happen every time."
   So I went in to see Essie in somewhat chastened mood to get on with the
cherishing.
   The  nurse  was  standing  by  her  bed, and both of them were watching
Essie's  tapes  of  the computer conference on her flatplate viewer. Since
Essie's  plate was slaved to the big fullholographic interactive one I had
had  moved  into my room, there was a little yellow attention light in the
come;  meant for me. Harriet had something she wanted to tell me about. It
could wait; when the light began to pulse and brighten and turn to red was
when  it  got  important,  and  at  the  moment Essie was at the top of my
priorities.  "You  can  leave us for a while, Alma," Essie said. The nurse
looked at me and shrugged why-not, so I took the chair next to the bed and
reached for Essie's hand.
   "It's nice to be able to touch you again," I said.
   Essie has a coarse, deep chuckle. I was glad to hear it. "Touch more in
a couple weeks," she said. "Meanwhile, no rule against kissing."
   So,  of  course,  I  kissed her-hard enough so that something must have
registered  on her telltales, because the day nurse popped her head in the
door  to  see  what  was  going on. She didn't stop us, though. We stopped
ourselves.  Essie reached up with her right hand-the left was still in its
cast,  covering God knew what-and pushed her streaky dark-blonde hair away
from  her  eyes. "Very nice," she judged. "Do you want to see what Harriet
has to say?"
   "Not particularly."
   "Untrue,"  she  said.  "You have been talking to Dr. Ben, I see, and he
has  told  you  to  be  sweet  to  me. But you always are, Robin, only not
everybody  would  notice."  She  grinned  at me and turned her head to the
plate. "Harriet!" she called. "Robin is here."
   I  had  not  until  that  moment  known that my secretary program would
respond  to  my  wife's commands as well as my own. But I hadn't known she
could  borrow  my  science  program, either. Especially without my knowing
about  it.  When Harriet's cheerful and concerned face filled the screen I
told her, "If it's business I'll take it later-unless it can't wait?"
   "Oh,  no,  nothing like that," Harriet said. "But Albert's desperate to
talk to you. He's got some good stuff from the Food Factory."
   "I'll  take  it  in  the other room," I started, but Essie put her free
hand on mine.
   "No. Here, Robin. I'm interested, too."
   So  I  told  Harriet  to  go ahead, and Albert's voice came on. But not
Albert's  face.  "Take a look at this," Albert said, and the screen filled
with  a  sort  of  American  Gothic  family portrait A man and a woman-not
really-a male and a female, standing side by side. They had faces and arms
and legs, and the female had breasts. Both had skungy beards and long hair
pulled into braids, and they were wearing wrap-around garments like saris,
with dots of color brightening the drab cloth.
   I caught my breath. The pictures had taken me by surprise.
   Albert  appeared  in  the  lower  corner  of  the plate. "These are not
'real,'  Robin,"  he  said. "They are simply compositions generated by the
shipboard  computer  from Wan's, description. The boy says they are pretty
accurate, though."
   I  swallowed and glanced at Essie. I had to control my breathing before
I could ask, "Are these-are these what the Heechee look like?"
   He  frowned  and  chewed  on  his  pipe stem. The figures on the screen
rotated  solemnly,  as though they were doing a slow folkdance, so that we
could  see all sides. "There are some anomalies, Robin. For example, there
is the famous question of the Heechee ass. We have some Heechee furniture,
e.  g.,  the seats before the control panels in their ships. From these it
was  deduced  that the Heechee bottom was not as the human bottom, because
there  seems to be room for a large pendulant structure, perhaps a divided
body  like  a wasp's, hanging below the pelvis and between the legs. There
is  nothing  of  this  sort  in  the computer-generated image. But-Occam's
Razor, Robin."
   "If I just give you time, you'll explain that," I commented.
   "Sure  thing,  Robin, but it's a law of logic that I think you know. In
the  absence  of evidence, it is best to take the simplest theory. We know
of only two intelligent races in the history of the universe. These people
do not seem to belong to ours-the shape of the skull, and particularly the
jaw, is different; there is a triangular arcade, more like an ape's than a
human being's, and the teeth are quite anomalous. Therefore it is probable
that they belong to the other."
   "Is  somewhat  scary,"  Essie offered softly. And it was. Especially to
me,  since  you might say that it was my responsibility. I was the one who
had  ordered  the Herter-Hall bunch to go out and look around, and if they
found the Heechee in the process..
   I was not ready to think of what that might mean.
   "What about the Dead Men? Do you have anything on them?"
   "Sure thing, Robin," he said, nodding his dustmop head. "Look at this."
   The pictures winked away, and text rolled up the screen:
   |      MISSION REPORT
   |
   |      Vessel 5-2, Voyage 081D31. Crew A. Meacham, D.
   |  Filgren, H. Meacham.
   |      Mission  was  science experiment, crew limited
   |  to   allow   instrumentation   and   computational
   |  equipment.  Maximum lifesupport time estimated 800
   |  days.  Vessel  still unreported day 1200, presumed
   |  lost.
   "It  was only a fifty thousand dollar bonus-not much, but it was one of
the earliest from Gateway," Albert said over the text. "The one called 'H.
Meacham'  appears to be the 'Dead Man' Wan calls Henrietta. She was a sort
of  A.  B.  D. astrophysicist-you know, Robin, 'All But Dissertation'. She
blew  that.  When  she tried to defend it they said it was more psychology
than  physics,  so  she went to Gateway. The pilot's first name was Doris,
which checks, and the other person was Henrietta's husband, Arnold."
   "So you've identified one of them? They were really real?"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin-point  nine  nine sure, anyway. These Dead Men are
sometimes  nonrational,"  he complained, reappearing on the plate. "And of
course  we have had no opportunity for direct interrogation. The shipboard
computer  is  not  really  up  to  this  kind of task. But, apart from the
confirmation   of   names,  the  mission  seems  appropriate.  It  was  an
astrophysical   investigation,   and   Henrietta's  conversation  includes
repeated  references  to  astrophysical  subjects.  Once  you subtract the
sexual ones, I mean," he twinkled, scratching his cheek with his pipestem.
"For  example.  'Sagittarius  A  West'-a radio source at the center of the
Galaxy.  'NGC  nag'.  A  giant elliptical galaxy, part of a large cluster.
'Average  radial  velocity  of  globular clusters'-in our own galaxy, that
comes to about 50 kilometers per second. 'High-redshift OSOs'..."
   "You  don't  have  to list them all," I said hastily. "Do you know what
they  all  mean?  I mean, if you were talking about all those things, what
would you be talking about?"
   Pause-but  a  short one; he was not accessing all the literature on the
subject,  he  had already done that "Cosmology," he said. "Specifically, I
think  I  would  be talking about the classic HoyleOpik-Gamow controversy;
that  is,  whether  the  universe  is  closed, or open ended, or cyclical.
Whether it is in a steady state, or began with a big bang."
   He  paused  again, but this time it was to let me think. I did, but not
to  much  effect  "There  doesn't  seem to be much nourishment in that," I
said.
   "Perhaps  not,  Rabin. It does sort of tie in with your questions about
black holes, though."
   Well,  damn  your  calculating  heart,  I  thought, but did not say. He
looked innocent as a lamb, puffing away on his old pipe, calm and serious.
"That'll  be all for now," I ordered, and kept my eyes on the blank screen
long after he had disappeared, in case Essie was going to ask me about why
I had been inquiring about black holes.
   Well,  she  didn't.  She  just  lay back, looking at the mirrors on the
ceiling. After a while she said, "Dear Robin, know what I wish?"
   I was ready for it. "What, Essie?"
   "Wish I could scratch."
   All  I could manage to say was, "Oh." I felt deflated-no; plugged up. I
was all ready to defend myself-with all gentle care, of course, because of
Essie's  condition.  And  I  didn't  have to. I picked up her hand. "I was
worried about you," I offered.
   "Yes,  so  was  I," she said practically. "Tell me, Robin. Is true that
the fevers are from some sort of Heechee mind-ray?"
   "Something  like that, I suppose. Albert says it's electromagnetic, but
that's  all  I know." I stroked the veins on the back of her hand, and she
moved restlessly. But only from the neck up.
   "I am apprehensive about Heechee, Robin," she said.
   "That's  very  sensible. Even temperate. Me, I'm scared shitless." And,
as  a  matter  of  fact I was; in fact, I was trembling. The little yellow
light winked on at the corner of the screen.
   "Somebody wants to talk to you, Robin."
   "They can wait. I'm talking to the woman I love right now."
   "Thank you. Robin? If you are scared of Heechee as I am, how is it that
you go right ahead?"
   "Well,  honey,  what choice do I have? There's fifty days of dead time.
What  we  just  heard  is ancient history, twenty-five days old. If I told
them  to  break  off  and  go home right now, it would be twenty-five days
before they heard it."
   "Surely, yes. But if you could stop, would you?" I didn't answer. I was
feeling  very  strange-a  little frightened, a lot unlike myself. "What if
Heechee don't like us, Robin?" she asked.
   And  what a good question that was! I had been asking it of myself ever
since  the  first day I considered getting into a Gateway prospecting ship
and  setting  out  to  explore for myself. What if we meet the Heechee and
they don't like us? What if they squash us like flies, torture us, enslave
us,  experiment  on  us-what if they simply ignore us? With my eyes on the
yellow  dot,  which  was beginning to pulse slowly, I said, mothering her,
"Well, there's not much chance that they will actually do us any harm..."
   "I do not need soothing, Robin!" She was distinctly edgy, and so was I.
Something must have been showing up on her monitors, because the day nurse
looked in again, hovered indecisively in the doorway, and went away.
   I  said,  "Essie,  the  stakes  are  too  big.  Remember  last  year in
Calcutta?"  We  had  gone  to  one  of  her seminars, and had cut it short
because  we  couldn't  bear  the  sight  of the abject city of two hundred
million paupers.
   Her  eyes  were  on me, and she was frowning. "Yes, I know, starvation.
There has always been starvation, Robin."
   "Not like this! Not like what it will be before very long, if something
doesn't  happen  to prevent it! The world is bursting at the seams. Albert
says..." I hesitated. I didn't actually want to tell her what Albert said.
Siberia  was already out of food production, its fragile land looking like
the  Gobi because of overpressure. The topsoil in the American Midwest was
down  to  scant  inches, and even the food mines were straining to keep up
with demand. What Albert said was that we had maybe ten years.
   The  signal light had gone to red and was winking rapidly, but I didn't
want  to  interrupt  myself.  "Essie,"  I  said,  "if we can make the Food
Factory  work, we can bring CHON-food to all the starving people, and that
means no more starvation ever. That's only the beginning. If we can figure
out  how  to  build Heechee ships for ourselves, and make them go where we
like-then  we can colonize new planets. Lots of them. More than that. With
Heechee  technology  we can take all the asteroids in the solar system and
turn  them  into Gateways. Build space habitats. Terraform planets. We can
make  a  paradise for a million times the population of the Earth, for the
next million years!"
   I stopped, because I realized I was babbling. I felt sad and delirious,
worried  and-lustful;  and  from  the  expression  on Essie's face she was
feeling  something  strange too. "Those are very good reasons, Robin," she
began, and that was as far as she got The signal light was bright ruby red
and vibrating like a pulsar; and then it winked away and Albert Einstein's
worried  face  appeared  on  the  screen.  I had never known him to appear
without being invited before.
   "Robin," he cried, "there is another emanation of the fever!"
   I stood up shaking. "But it isn't time," I objected stupidly.
   "It  has  happened,  Robin, and it is rather strange. It peaked, let me
see,  just  under  one  hundred  seconds  ago.  I believe-Yes," he nodded,
seeming to listen to an inaudible voice, "it is dying away."
   And, as a matter of fact, I was already feeling less strange. no attack
had  ever  been so short, and no other had quite felt like that Apparently
somebody else was experimenting with the couch.
   "Albert,"  I said, "send a priority message to the Food Factory. Desist
immediately, repeat immediately, from any further use of the couch for any
purpose.  Dismantle  it  if possible without irreversible damage. You will
forfeit  all  pay  and  bonuses  if  there  is  any further breach of this
directive. Got it?"
   "It's already on its way, Robin," he said, and disappeared.
   Essie  and  I  looked at each other for a moment. "But you did not tell
them to abandon the expedition and come back," she said at last.
   I shrugged. "It doesn't change anything," I said.
   "No," she agreed. "And you have given me some really very good reasons,
Robin. But are they your reasons?"
   I didn't answer.
   I  knew  what  Essie  thought  were  my reasons for pushing on into the
exploration  of Heechee space, regardless of fevers or costs or risks. She
thought my reasons had a name, and the name was Gelle-Kiara Moynlin. And I
sometimes was not sure she was wrong.

   Wherever  Lurvy  moved  in  the  ship,  she was always conscious of the
mottled  gray  pattern  in  the  viewplate.  It  showed  nothing she could
recognize, but it was a nothing she had seen before, for months on end.
   While  they  were  traveling  faster  than  light on the way to Heechee
Heaven  they  were  alone.  The universe was empty around them, except for
that pebbly, shifting gray. They were the universe. Even on the long climb
to  the  Food  Factory  it had not been this solitary. At least there were
stars. Even planets. In tau space, or whatever crazy kind of space Heechee
ships  drove  through  or  tunneled under or sidestepped around, there was
nothing.  Last times Lurvy had been in that much emptiness had been in her
Gateway missions, and they were not sweet memories at all.
   This ship was far the biggest she had ever seen. Gateway's largest held
five  people.  This  could  have housed twenty or more. It contained eight
separate   compartments.  Three  were  cargo,  filled  automatically  (Wan
explained)  with  the output of the Food Factory while the ship was docked
there.  Two  seemed  to  be  staterooms,  but not for human beings. If the
"bunks"  that  rolled  out from the walls were bunks indeed, they were too
tiny  for  human adults. One of the rooms Wan identified as his own, which
he  invited  Janine  to  share.  When  Lurvy  vetoed the notion he gave in
sulkily,  and  so  they  roomed  in segregated style, boys in one chamber,
girls  in  the other. The largest room, located in the mathematical center
of  the ship, was shaped like a cylinder with tapered ends. It had neither
floor  nor  ceiling,  except  that  three  seats were fixed to the surface
facing  the  controls.  As the surface was curved, the seats leaned toward
each  other.  They  were simple enough, of the design Lurvy had lived with
for  months at a time: Two flat metal slabs, joined together in a Vee. "On
Gateway ships we stretched webbing across them," Lurvy offered.
   "What is 'webbing'?" asked Wan; and, when it was explained, said, "What
a  good idea. I will do that next trip. I can steal some material from the
Old Ones."
   As in all Heechee ships, the controls themselves were nearly automatic.
There  were  a dozen knurled wheels in a row, with colored lights for each
wheel.  As  the  wheels  were turned (not that anyone would ever turn them
while  in  flight;  that was well established suicide), the lights changed
color  and  intensity, and developed bands of light and dark like spectrum
lines.  They  represented  course  settings. Not even Wan could read them,
much less Lurvy or the others. But since Lurvy's time on Gateway, at great
expense   in   prospectors'  lives,  the  big  brains  had  accumulated  a
considerable  store  of data. Some colors meant a good chance of something
worthwhile.  Some  referred  to the length of the trip the course director
was  set for. Some-many were filed away as no-nos, because every ship that
had  entered faster-than-light space with those settings had stayed there.
Or  somewhere.  Had, at least, never returned to Gateway. Out of habit and
orders,  Lurvy  photographed  every  fluctuation  of  control  lights  and
viewscreen,  even  when  the  screen showed nothing she could recognize as
worth  photographing.  An  hour after the group left the Food Factory, the
star  patterns  began to shrink together to a winking point of brightness.
They had reached the speed of light. And then even the point was gone. The
screen  took  on  the appearance of gray mud that raindrops had spattered,
and stayed that way.
   To  Wan,  of course, the ship was only his familiar schoolbus, used for
commuting  back  and  forth  since he was old enough to squeeze the launch
teat.  Paul  had never been in a real Heechee ship before, and was subdued
for  days.  Neither had Janine, but one more marvel was nothing unusual in
her  fourteen-year-old  life.  For  Lurvy, something else. It was a bigger
version  of the ships in which she had earned her Out bangles-and precious
little else-and therefore frightening.
   She  could  not help it. She could not convince herself that this trip,
at  least,  was  a  regular  shuttle  run.  She  had learned too much fear
blundering  into the unknown as a Gateway pilot. She pushed herself around
its  vast-comparatively  vast-space  (nearly  a  hundred  and  fifty cubic
meters!),  and worried. It was not only the muddy viewscreen that kept her
attention. There was the shiny golden lozenge, bigger than a man, that was
thought  to  contain  the  FTL  drive  machinery  and was known to explode
totally  if  opened. There was the crystal, glassy spiral that got hot (no
one had ever known why) from time to time, and lit up with tiny hot flecks
of  radiance  at the beginning and end of each trip, and at one other very
important time.
   It  was  that  time  that  Lurvy  was  watching  for. And when, exactly
twenty-four  days,  five  hours  and fifty-six minutes after they left the
Food  Factory, the golden coil flickered and began to light, she could not
help a great sigh of relief.
   "What's the matter?" Wan shrilled suspiciously.
   "Just  that  we're  halfway now," she said, noting the time in her log.
"That's  the turnaround point. That's what you look for in a Gateway ship.
If  you  reach  the halfway point with only a quarter of your life-support
gone you know you won't run out and starve on the way home."
   Wan pouted. "Don't you trust me, Lurvy? We will not starve."
   "It  feels good to know for sure," she grinned, and then lost the grin,
because she was thinking about what was at the end of the trip.
   So they rubbed along together, the best way they could, getting on each
other's  nerves  a  thousand  times  apiece a day. Paul taught Wan to play
chess,   to   keep   his   mind   off  Janine.  Wan  patiently-more  often
impatiently-rehearsed  again and again everything he could tell them about
Heechee Heaven and its occupants.
   They  slept as much as they could. In the restraining net next to Paul,
Wan's  teen-aged  juices  bubbled  and flowed. He tossed and turned in the
random,  tiny  accelerations of the ship, wishing he were alone so that he
could  do  those  things  that  appeared to be prohibited when one was not
alone-or  wishing  he were not alone, but with Janine, so that he could do
those  even  better things Tiny Jim and Henrietta had described to him. He
had  asked  Henrietta any number of times what the female role was in this
conjugation.  To  this  she always responded, even when she would not talk
about  anything  else;  but almost never in a way that was helpful to Wan.
However  her  sentences  began,  they  almost  always  ended  by returning
tearfully to the subject of her terrible betrayals by her husband and that
floozy, Doris.
   He  did  not know, even, in just what physical ways the female departed
from  the  male.  Pictures  and words did not do it. Toward the end of the
trip  curiosity  overpowered acculturation, and he begged Janine or Lurvy,
either  one,  to let him see for himself. Even without touching. "Why, you
filthy  beast,"  said  Janine  diagnostically.  She was not angry. She was
smiling. "Bide your time, boy, you'll get your chances."
   But Lurvy was not amused, and when Wan had gone disconsolately away she
and  her  sister  had,  for  them,  a  long  talk. As long as Janine would
tolerate.  "Lurvy,  dear,"  she  said  at  last,  "I know. I know I'm only
fifteen-well, almost-and Wan's not much older. I know that I don't want to
get  pregnant  four years away from a doctor, and with all kinds of things
coming  up  that  we  don't  know how we'll deal with-I know all that. You
think  I'm  just  your  snotty  kid sister. Well, I am. But I'm your smart
snotty  kid sister. When you say something worth listening to I listen. So
piss  off, dear Lurvy." Smiling comfortably, she pushed herself away after
Wan, and then stopped and returned to kiss Lurvy. "You and Pop," she said.
"You  both  drive  me  straight up the wall. But I love you both a lot-and
Paul, too."
   It  was  not altogether Wan's fault, Lurvy knew. They were all smelling
extremely  high.  Among  all  their  sweats and secretions were pheromones
enough  to  make a monk horny, much less an impressionable virgin kid. And
that  was  not  at all Wan's fault, in fact exactly the reverse. If he had
not insisted, they would not have lugged so much water aboard; if they had
not,  they  would be even filthier and sweatier than their rationed sponge
baths  left  them. They had, when you came right down to it, left the Food
Factory far too impulsively. Payter had been right.
   Astonishingly,  Lurvy realized that she actually missed the old man. In
the ship they were wholly cut off from communication of any kind. What was
he  doing?  Was  he  still well? They had had to take the mobile bio-assay
unit-they  had only one, and four people needed it more than one. But that
was  not  really true, either, because away from the shipboard computer it
was  balled  into  a shiny, motionless mass, and would stay that way until
they   established   radio  contact  with  Vera  from  Heechee  Heaven-and
meanwhile, what was happening to her father?
   The curious thing was that Lurvy loved the old man, and thought that he
loved  her back. He had given every sign of it but verbal ones. It was his
money and ambition that had put them all on the flight to the Food Factory
in  the  first  place,  buying  them  participants' shares by scraping the
bottom  of  the  money, if not of the ambition. It had been his money that
had  paid for her going to Gateway in the first place, and when the gamble
went sour he had not reproached her. Or not directly, and not much.
   After  six weeks in Wan's ship, Lurvy began to feel adjusted to it. She
even  felt fairly comfortable, not counting the smells and irritations and
worries;  at  least,  as long as she didn't think too much about the trips
that  had  earned  her  her  five Out bangles from Gateway. There was very
little good to remember in any of them.
   Lurvy's  first  trip  had been a washout. Fourteen months of round-trip
travel  to come out circling a planet that had been flamed clean in a nova
eruption.  Maybe  something  had  been  there once. Nothing was there when
Lurvy  arrived,  stark  solitary  and  already  talking  to herself in her
one-person ship. That had cured her of single flights, and the next was in
a Three. no better. None of them any better. She became famous in Gateway,
an  object  of  curiosity-strong  contender for the record of most flights
taken  and  fewest profits returned. It was not an honor she liked, but it
was never as bad until the last flight of all.
   That was disaster.
   Before  they  even reached their destination she had awakened out of an
edgy,  restless sleep to horror. The woman she had made her special friend
was floating bloodily next to her, the other woman also dead not far away,
and  the  two  men  who  made  up  the  rest of the Five's crew engaged in
screaming, mutilating hand-to-hand battle.
   The  rules  of  the  Gateway  Corporation  provided  that  any payments
resulting  from  a  voyage were to be divided equally among the survivors.
Her  shipmate  Stratos  Kristianides  had  made up his mind to be the only
survivor.
   In  actuality,  he  didn't  survive.  He  lost  the battle to her other
shipmate,  and lover, Hector Possanbee. The winner, with Lurvy, went on to
find-again-nothing.  Smoldering  red  gas  giant.  Pitiful  little  binary
Class-M companion star. And no way of reaching the only detectable planet,
a huge methane-covered Jupiter of a thing, without dying in the attempt.
   Lurvy had come back to Earth after that with her tail between her legs,
and  no second chance in sight. Payter had given her that opportunity, and
she  did  not  think there would be another. The hundred and some thousand
dollars  it had cost him to pay her way to Gateway had put a very big dent
in the money he had accumulated over his sixty or seventy years-she didn't
really  know how many years-of life. She had failed him. Not just him. And
she  accepted,  out  of his kindness and forbearance to hate her, the fact
that  he  really  did love his daughter-and kind, pointless Paul and silly
young Janine, too. In some way, Payter loved them all.
   And was getting very little out of it, Lurvy judged.
   She  rubbed  her  Out  bangles moodily. They had been very expensive to
obtain.
   She was not easy in her mind about her father, or about what lay ahead.
   Making  love  to  Paul  helped  pass  the time-when they could convince
themselves  that  they  didn't  have  to  supervise the younger ones for a
quarter  of an hour or so. It was not the same for Lurvy as making love to
Hector, the man who had survived the last Gateway flight with her, the man
who had asked her to marry him. The man who asked her to ship out with him
again  and  to  build a life together. Short, broad, always active, always
alert, a dynamo in bed, kind and patient when she was sick or irritable or
scared-there  were  a  hundred reasons why she should have married Hector.
And  only  one, really, why she did not. When she was wrenched out of that
terrible  sleep  she  had  found  Hector  and  Stratos battling. While she
watched, Stratos died.
   Hector had explained to her that Stratos had gone out of control to try
to  slay them all; but she had been asleep when the slaughter started. One
of the men had obviously tried to murder his shipmates.
   But she had never known for sure which one.
   He proposed to her when things were bleakest and grimiest, a day before
they  reached  Gateway  on  the  sorry  return  trip.  "We are really most
delightfully good together, Dorema," he said, arms about her, consolingly.
"Just  us  and  no  one else. I think I could not have borne this with the
others  around. Next time we will be more fortunate! So let's get married,
please?"
   She  burrowed  her  chin  into  his hard, warm, cocoa-colored shoulder.
"I'll  have  to  think,  dear," she said, feeling the hand that had killed
Stratos kneading the back of her neck.
   So  Lurvy  was not unhappy when the trip was over and Janine called her
out of her private room, all thrilled and excited; the great glassy spiral
was filling with hot specks of darting golden light, the ship was lurching
tentatively  in  one  direction and another; the mottled gray mud was gone
from  the  viewscreen  and there were stars. More than stars. There was an
object  that  glowed  blue  in  patches  amid  featureless  gray.  It  was
lemonshaped  and  spun  slowly,  and  Lurvy could form no idea of its size
until  she  perceived  that the surface of the object was not featureless.
There were tiny projections jutting out here and there, and she recognized
the  tiniest  of  them as Gateway-type ships, Ones and Threes, and there a
Five;  the  lemon had to be more than a kilometer long! Wan, grinning with
pride, settled himself in the central pilot seat (they had stuffed it with
extra  clothing, a device that had never occurred to Wan), and grasped the
lander  control  levers.  It was all Lurvy could do to keep her hands off.
But  Wan  had  been performing this particular maneuver all his life. With
coarse  competence  he  banged and slammed the ship into a downward spiral
that  matched the slow spin of the blueeyed gray lemon, intersected one of
the waiting pits, docked, locked, and looked up for applause. They were on
Heechee Heaven.
   The  Food  Factory  had  been  the size of a skyscraper, but this was a
world. Perhaps, like Gateway, it had once been an asteroid; but, if so, it
had  been  so  tooled  and  sculpted  that  there was no trace of original
structure. It was cubic kilometers of mass. It was a rotating mountain. So
much to explore! So much to learn!
   And  so much to fear. They skulked, or strutted, through the old halls,
and  Lurvy  realized  she was clinging to her husband's hand. And Paul was
clinging back. She forced herself to observe and comment. The sides of the
walls  were  veined with luminous tracing of scarlet; the overhead was the
familiar  blue  Heecheemetal glow. On the floor-and it was really a floor;
they  had  weight  here,  though  not  more  than  a tenth of Earth-normal
diamond-shaped  mounds  contained  what  looked like soil and grew plants.
"Berryfruit,"  said  Wan  proudly  over  his  shoulder, shrugging toward a
waist-high  bush with fuzzed objects hanging among its emerald leaves. "We
can stop and eat some if you like."
   "Not  right  now," said Lurvy. A dozen paces farther along the corridor
was  another planted lozenge, this one with slate-green tendrils and soft,
squashed cauliflower-shaped buds. "What's that?"
   He  paused  and  looked  at her. It was clear he thought it was a silly
question.  "They  are  not  good to eat," he shrilled scornfully. "Try the
berryfruit. They are quite tasty."
   So the party paused, where two of the red-lined corridors came together
and  one of them changed to blue. They peeled brown-green furry skins from
the  berryfruit  and  nibbled at the juicy insides-first tentatively, then
with  pleasure-while  Wan explained the geography of Heechee Heaven. These
were  the  red  sections,  and they were the best to be in. There was food
here,  and  good  places to sleep; and the ship was here, and here the Old
Ones  never  came.  But  didn't  they  sometimes wander out of their usual
places  to  pick  the  berryfruit? Yes, of course they did! But never (his
voice  rising  half an octave) here. It had never happened. Over there the
blue.  His voice sank, in volume as well as pitch. The Old Ones came there
quite often, or to some parts of the blue. But it was all dead. If it were
not  that the Dead Men's room was in the blue he would never go there. And
Lurvy, peering down the corridor he pointed to, felt a chill of incredible
age.  It  had  the  look  of a Stonehenge or Gizeh or Angkor Wat. Even the
ceilings  were  dimmer,  and the plantings there were sparse and puny. The
green, he went on, was all very well, but it was not working properly. The
water jets did not function. The plantings died. And the gold-
   His  pleasure  faded  when he talked about the gold. That was where the
Old  Ones  lived. If it were not for needing books, and sometimes clothes,
he  would never go to the gold, though the Dead Men were always urging him
to. He did not want to see the Old Ones.
   Paul cleared his throat to say: "But I think we have to do that, Wan."
   "Why?" the boy shrilled. "They are not interesting!"
   Lurvy  put  her  hand  on  his arm. "What's the matter, Wan?" she asked
kindly, observing his expression. What Wan felt always showed on his face.
He had never had the need to develop the skills of dissembling.
   "He looks scared," Paul commented.
   "He is not scared!" Wan retorted. "You do not understand this place! it
is not interesting to go to the gold!"
   "Wan,  dear,"  Lurvy  said, "the thing is, it's worth taking chances to
find  out  more  about  the Heechee. I don't know if I can explain what it
means to us, but the least part of it is that we would get money for it. A
lot of money."
   "He  doesn't  know  what money is," Paul interrupted impatiently. "Wan.
Pay  attention.  We  are  going to do this. Tell us how the four of us can
safely explore the gold corridors."
   "The  four  of  us  can not! One person can. I can," he boasted. He was
angry  now,  and showed it. Paul! Wan's feelings about him were mixed, but
most  of  the  mixture  were unfavorable. Speaking to Wan, Paul shaped his
words  so carefully-so contemptuously. As though he did not think Wan were
smart  enough  to  understand. When Wan and Janine were together, Paul was
always  near. If Paul was a sample of human males, Wan was not proud to be
one.  "I have gone to the gold many times," he boasted, "for books, or for
berryfruit,  or just to watch the silly things they do. They are so funny!
But  they  are  not  entirely stupid, you know. I can go there safely. One
person  can. Perhaps two people can, but if we all go they will surely see
us."
   "And then?" Lurvy asked.
   Wan  shrugged  defensively.  He  didn't really know the answer to that,
only  that  it  had  frightened his father. "They are not interesting," he
repeated, contradicting himself.
   Janine  licked her fingers and tossed the empty berryfruit skins to the
base  of  the  bush.  "You people," she sighed, "are unreal. Wan? Where do
these Old Ones come?"
   "To the edge of the gold, always. Sometimes into the blue or the green."
   "Well,  if  they  like these berryfruits, and if you know a place where
they come to pick them, why don't we just leave a camera there? We can see
them. They can't see us."
   Wan  shrilled  triumphantly,  "Of  course!  You  see,  Lurvy, it is not
necessary  to  go  there!  Janine is right, only..." he hesitated "Janine?
What is a camera?"
   As  they  went,  Lurvy had to nerve herself to pass every intersection,
could not help staring down each corridor. But they heard nothing, and saw
nothing  that  moved.  It was as quiet as the Food Factory when they first
set  foot  in  it,  and  just as queer. Queerer. The traceries of light on
every  wall,  the  patches  of  growing  things-above  all, the terrifying
thought  that  there  were  Heechee  alive  somewhere  near. When they had
dropped  off  a  camera by a berryfruit bush in a space where green, blue,
and  gold came together, Wan bustled them away, directly to the room where
the  Dead  Men  lived.  That  was first priority: to get to the radio that
would once again put them in touch with the rest of the world. Even if the
rest  of  the  world was only old Payter, fidgeting resentfully around the
Food  Factory. If they could not do that much, Lurvy reasoned, they had no
business  being  here  at all, and they should return to the ship and head
for  home;  it  was  no  good exploring if they could not report what they
found!
   So  Wan,  courage  returning  in  direct  proportion  to his increasing
distance  from  the  Old Ones, marched them through a stretch of green, up
several  levels in blue, to a wide blue door. "Let us see if it is working
right,"  he  said  importantly, and stepped on a ridge of metal before the
door.  The  door hesitated, sighed and then creakily opened for them, and,
satisfied, Wan led them inside.
   This place at least seemed human. If strange. It even smelled human, no
doubt  because Wan had spent so much time there over his short life. Lurvy
took  one of the minicameras from Paul and settled it on her shoulder. The
little  machine  hissed tape past its lens, recording an octagonal chamber
with  three of the forked Heechee seats, two of them broken, and a stained
wall  bearing  the  Heechee  version  of instrumentation-ridges of colored
lights.  There  was  a  tiny sound of clicks and hums, barely perceptible,
behind  the  wall. Wan waved at it "In there," he said, "is where the Dead
Men live. If 'live' is the right word for what they do." He tittered.
   Lurvy  pointed  the  camera  at  the seats and the knurled knobs before
them,  then  at  a  domed,  clawed object under the smeared wall. It stood
chest  high,  and  it  was mounted on soft, squashed cylinders to roll on.
"What's that, Wan?"
   "It  is  what the Dead Men catch me with sometimes," he muttered. "They
don't  use it very often. it is very old. When it breaks, it takes forever
to mend itself."
   Paul  eyed  the  machine  warily, and moved away from it. "Turn on your
friends, Wan," he ordered.
   "Of  course.  It  is  not  very  difficult,"  Wan  boasted.  "Watch  me
carefully,  and  you  will see how to do it." He sat himself with careless
ease  on the one unbroken seat, and frowned at the controls. "I will bring
you Tiny Jim," he decided, and thumbed the controls before him. The lights
on  the  stained  wall  flickered and flowed, and Wan said, "Wake up, Tiny
Jim. There is someone here for you to meet."
   Silence.
   Wan  scowled, glanced over his shoulder at the others and then ordered:
"Tiny  Jim!  Speak to me at once!" He pursed his lips and spat a gobbet at
the wall. Lurvy recognized the source of the stains, but said nothing.
   A weary voice over their heads said, "Hello, Wan."
   "That is better," Wan shrilled, grinning at the others. "Now, Tiny Jim!
Tell my friends something interesting, or I will spit on you again."
   "I  wish  you  would  be  more respectful," sighed the voice, "but very
well.  Let  me  see. On the ninth planet of the star Saiph there is an old
civilization.  Their  rulers  are  a  class of shit-handlers, who exercise
power  by removing the excrement only from the homes of those citizens who
are  honest,  industrious,  clever,  and unfailing in the payment of their
taxes.  On  their  principal  holiday,  which  they  call the Feast of St.
Gautama,  the  youngest  maiden in each family bathes herself in sunflower
oil, takes a hazelnut between her teeth, and ritually..."
   "Tiny Jim," Wan interrupted, "is this a true story?"
   Pause. "Metaphorically it is," Tiny Jim said sullenly.
   "You  are  very  foolish,"  Wan reproved the Dead Man, "and I am shamed
before  my  friends.  Pay  attention. Here are Dorema Herter-Hall, who you
will  call  Lurvy,  and  her  sister Janine Herter. And Paul. Say hello to
them."
   Long pause. "Are there other living human beings here?" the voice asked
doubtfully.
   "I have just told you there are!"
   Another  long  pause.  Then, "Good-bye, Wan," the voice said sadly, and
would not speak again, no matter how loudly Wan commanded or how furiously
he spat at the wall.
   "Christ," grumbled Paul. "Is he always like that?"
   "No, not always," Wan shrilled. "But sometimes he is worse. Shall I try
one of the others for you?"
   "Are they any better?"
   "Well, no," Wan admitted. "Tiny Jim is the best."
   Paul  closed  his  eyes  in  despair, and opened them again to glare at
Lurvy.  "How  simply  bloody  wonderful,"  he  said. "Do you know what I'm
beginning  to  think?  I'm  beginning  to  think your father was right. We
should have stayed on the Food Factory."
   Lurvy  took  a  deep breath. "Well, we didn't," she pointed out. "We're
here.  Let's give it forty-eight hours, and then... And then we'll make up
our minds."
   Long  before the forty-eight hours were up they had made up their minds
to stay. At least for a while. There was simply too much in Heechee Heaven
to abandon it.
   The big factor in the decision was reaching Payter on the FTL radio. no
one  had thought to ask Wan if his ability to call Heechee Heaven from the
Food  Factory implied that he could call in the other direction. It turned
out  he  could  not.  He  had never had a reason to try, because there had
never  been anyone there to answer the phone. Lurvy drafted Janine to help
her  carry  food and a few essentials out of the ship, fighting depression
and  worry  all the way, and returned to find Paul proud and Wan jubilant.
They had made contact. "How is he?" Lurvy demanded at once.
   "Oh,  you  mean  your  father?  He's all right," Paul said. "He sounded
grouchy,  come  to  think of it-cabin fever, I suppose. There were about a
million messages. He patched them through as a burst transmission and I've
got  them  on tape-but it'll take us a week to play them all." He rummaged
through the stuff Janine and Lurvy had brought until he found the tools he
had  demanded. He was patching together a digitalized picture transmitter,
to  make  use of the voice-only FTL circuits. "We can only transmit single
frames," he said, eyes on the picture-tape machine. "But if we're going to
be  here  for  very long, maybe I can work out a burst-transmission system
from  here.  Meanwhile,  we've got voice and-oh, yeah. The old man said to
kiss you for him."
   "Then I guess we're going to stay for a while," said Janine.
   "Then I guess we'd better bring more stuff out of the ship," her sister
agreed. "Wan? Where should we sleep?"
   So  while  Paul  worked  on  the  communications, Wan and the two women
hustled the necessities of life to a cluster of chambers in the red-walled
corridors.  Wan  was  proud to show them off. There were wall bunks larger
than  the  ones the ship had offered-large enough, actually, for even Paul
to  sleep  in,  if he didn't mind bending his knees. There was a place for
toilet  facilities, not quite of human design. Or not of very recent human
design. The facilities were simply lustrous metal slits in the floor, like
the  squat-toilets  of Eastern Europe. There was even a place to bathe. It
was  something  between  a wading pool and a tub, with something between a
shower  head  and a small waterfall coming out of the wall behind it. When
you  got inside tepid water poured out. After that they all began to smell
much  better.  Wan,  in particular, bathed ostentatiously often, sometimes
beginning  to  undress  to  bathe  again before the last drops of unsopped
water had dried on the back of his neck from the bath before. Tiny Jim had
told  him  that  bathing was a custom among polite people. Besides, he had
perceived   that  Janine  did  it  regularly.  Lurvy  watched  them  both,
remembered how much trouble it had been to get Janine to bathe on the long
flight up from Earth, and did not comment.
   As  pilot,  therefore  captain,  Lurvy  constituted herself head of the
expedition. She assigned Paul to establish and maintain communication with
her  father  on the Food Factory, with Wan's help in dealing with the Dead
Men.  She  assigned  Janine,  with her own help and Wan's, to housekeeping
tasks  like washing their clothes in the tepid tub. She assigned Wan, with
anyone  who  could  be  spared,  to roam the safe parts of Heechee Heaven,
photographing  and recording for transmission to Payter and Earth. Usually
Wan's  compaanion  was  Janine. When someone else could be spared, the two
young people were chaperoned, but that was seldom.
   Janine  did  not seem to mind either way. She had not finished with the
preliminary thrill of Wan's companionship and was in no hurry to move to a
further  stage-except when they touched. Or when she caught him staring at
her.  Or when she saw the knotted bulge in his ragged kilt. Even then, her
fantasies  and  reveries  were almost as good as that next stage, at least
for  now.  She  played  with  the  Dead  Men,  and  munched on berryfruit,
brown-skinned and green-fleshed, and did her chores, and waited to grow up
a little more.
   There  were  not  many  objections to Lurvy's rule, since she had taken
care  to  assign  tasks that the draftees were willing to do anyhow, which
left  for  herself  such drudgery as going through the backed-up cormuands
and persuasions from Payter, and faroff Earth.
   The  communication  was  a  long  way  from satisfactory. Lurvy had not
appreciated  Shipboard-Vera  until  she  had to get along without her. She
could  not command priority messages first, or have the computer sort them
out  by  theme.  There was no computer she could use, except the overtaxed
one  in her own head. The messages came in higgledy-piggledy, and when she
replied,  or  transmitted  reports for downlink relay to Earth, she had no
confidence at all that they were getting where they were supposed to go.
   The Dead Men seemed to be basically read-only memories, interactive but
limited.  And  their  circuits had been further scrambled in the makeshift
attempt  to  use  them  for  communication to the Food Factory, a task for
which  they  had  never  been  designed.  (But  what  had they really been
designed  for?  And  by  whom?)  Wan blustered and bluffed, in his pose as
expert,  and  then  miserably confessed that they were not doing what they
were  supposed  to  do  any more. Sometimes he would dial Tiny Jim and get
Henrietta, and sometimes a former-English Lit professor named Willard; and
once  he  got a voice he had never heard before, shaking and whispering on
the  near  side of inaudibility, muttering on the far side of madness. "Go
to the gold," whimpered Henrietta, fretful as ever, and without pause Tiny
Jim's  thick  tenor  would  override:  "They'll  kill you! They don't like
castaways!"
   That  was frightening. Especially as Wan assured them that Tiny Jim had
always  been  the most sensible of the Dead Men. It puzzled Lurvy that she
was not more terrified than she was, but there had been so many alarms and
terrors  that  she  had  become used to them. Her circuits were scrambled,
too.
   And  the  messages! In one five-minute burst of clear transmission Paul
had  recorded  fourteen hours of them. Commands from downlink: "Report all
control  settings  shuttle ship. Attempt secure tissue samples Heechee/Old
Ones.  Freeze and store berryfruit leaves, fruits, stems. Exercise extreme
caution."  Half  a  dozen  separate communications from her father; he was
lonesome;  he  didn't  feel  well;  he  was  not  receiving proper medical
attention  because  they  had taken the mobile bio-assay unit away; he was
being  barraged by peremptory orders from Earth. Information messages from
Earth: their first reports had been received, analyzed and interpreted for
them,  and  now  there  were  suggestions  for  follow-up  programs beyond
counting.  They  should  interrogate  Henrietta  about  her  references to
cosmological  phenomena-Shipboard-Vera  was  making  a  hash  of  it,  and
Downlink-Vera  could  not communicate in real time, and old Payter did not
know enough astrophysics to ask the right questions, so it was up to them.
They  should interrogate all the Dead Men on their memories of Gateway and
their  missions-assuming  they remembered anything. They should attempt to
find  out  how  living  prospectors  became stored computer programs. They
should...  They  should  do everything. All at once. And almost none of it
was  possible; tissue samples of the Heechee, forsooth! When an occasional
message was clear and personal and undemanding, Lurvy treasured it.
   And some of those were surprises. Besides the fan letters from Janine's
pen-pals  and  the  continuing  plea  for  any information they might come
across from Trish Bover's relict, there was one for Lurvy personally, from
Robinette Broadhead:
   "Dorema,  I know you're being swamped. Your whole mission was important
and  hazardous  to  begin with, and now it turns out about a million times
more  so.  All  I expect from you is that you do the best you can. I don't
have  the  authority  to override Gateway Corp orders. I can't change your
assigned objectives. But I want you to know I'm on your side. Find out all
you  can.  Try  not to get into a spot you can't retreat from. And I'll do
everything I can to see that you get rewarded as fully and lavishly as you
can hope for. I mean it, Lurvy. I give you my word."
   It was a strange message, and oddly touching. It was also a surprise to
Lurvy  that  Broadhead  even  knew her nickname. They had not exactly been
intimates.  When she and her family were interviewing for the Food Factory
assignment  they had met Broadhead several times. But the relationship had
been  of suppliant and monarch, and there was not much close interpersonal
friendship involved. Nor had she particularly liked him. He was candid and
amiable  enough-high-rolling  multimillionaire  with an easy-going manner,
but sharply on top of every dollar he spent and every development in every
project  he  was  involved  in.  She  did  not  like  being  a client to a
capricious Titan of finance.
   And, to be fair, she had come to their meetings with a faint prejudice.
She  had heard about Robinette Broadhead long before he played any part in
her  own  life.  In  Lurvy's  own  time on the Gateway asteroid and in its
ships,  she had once gone out in a three-person ship with an elderly woman
who  had once been shipmate with Gelle-Kiara Moynlim. From the woman Lurvy
had  heard  the story of Broadhead's last mission, the one that made him a
multimillionaire.  There  was something questionable about it. Nine people
had  died on that mission. Broadhead was the only survivor. And one of the
casualties  had  been  Kiara  Moynlin,  with  whom  (the  old  woman said)
Broadhead  had  been  in  love. Maybe it was Lurvy's own experience with a
mission  in which most of the crew had died that colored her feelings. But
they were there.
   The curious thing about the Broadhead mission was that maybe "died" was
not  the  right  word for the casualties. This Kiara and the rest had been
trapped  in  a  black hole, and perhaps they were still there, and perhaps
still  alive-prisoners of slowed-down time, maybe no more than a few hours
older after all the years.
   So  what  was the hidden agenda in Broadhead's message to Lurvy? Was he
urging  them  on  to  try to find a way to penetrate Gelle-Kiara Moynlin's
prison?  Did he know himself? Lurvy could not tell, but for the first time
she  thought of their employer as a human being. The thought was touching.
It  did  not make Lurvy feel less afraid, but perhaps a little less alone.
When  she  brought  her  latest  batch of tapes to Paul, in the Dead Men's
room,  to  record at high speed and transmit when he could, she tarried to
put her arms around him and cling, which surprised him very much.
   When  Janine  returned  to the Dead Men's room from an exploration with
Wan,  something  told  her  to  move  quietly. She looked in without being
heard, and saw her sister and brother-in-law sitting comfortably against a
wall,  half listening to the maniac chatter of the Dead Men, half chatting
desultorily  with  each  other. She turned, put her finger to her lips and
led Wan away. "I think they want to be alone," she explained. "Anyway, I'm
tired. Let's take a break."
   Wan  shrugged.  They  found  a  convenient  spot  at an intersection of
corridors  a few dozen meters away and he settled himself pensively beside
the girl. "Are they conjugating?" he asked.
   "Cripes, Wan. You've only got the one thing on your mind all the time."
But  she  was  not  annoyed, and let him move close to her, until one hand
approached her breast. "Knock it off," she said mildly.
   He  withdrew his hand. "You are being very disturbed, Janine," he said,
pouting.
   "Oh,  get  off  my  back."  But when he moved millimeters away, she let
herself move a little closer again. She was quite content to have him want
her  and  quite  serene  in  believing  that  when  anything  happened, as
"anything" sooner or later surely would, it would be when she wanted it to
happen.  Nearly  two months with Wan had made her like him, and even trust
him, and the rest could wait. She enjoyed his presence.
   Even  when  he  was  grouchy.  "You  are  not  competing  properly," he
complained.
   "Competing at what, for the Lord's sake?"
   "You  should  talk  to  Tiny Jim," he said severely. "He will teach you
better  strategies  in  the  reproduction race. He has fully explained the
male  role to me, so that I am sure I can compete successfully. Of course,
yours  is  different.  Basically, your best choice would be to allow me to
copulate with you."
   "Yes, you've said that. You know what, Wan? You talk too much."
   He  was  silent  for  a  moment, perplexed. He could not defend himself
against  that charge. He did not even know why it was a charge. In most of
his  life  the  only mode of interaction he had had was talk. He rehearsed
all  of Tiny Jim's teachings in his mind, and then his expression cleared.
"I see. You want to kiss first," he said.
   "No! I don't want to kiss 'first', and get your knee off my bladder."
   He  released her unwillingly. "Janine," he explained, "close contact is
essential  to  'love'.  This is true of the lower orders as well as of us.
Dogs  sniff.  Primates  groom.  Reptiles coil around each other. Even rose
shoots  nestle  close to the mature plant, Tiny Jim says, although he does
not  believe  that  is  a  sexual  manifestation.  But  you  will lose the
reproductive race if you are not careful, Janine."
   She giggled. "To what? Old dead Henrietta?" But he was scowling and she
took  pity  on  him.  She sat up and announced, kindly enough, "You've got
some  really wrong ideas, do you know that? The last thing I want, even if
we  ever  do  get around to your goddam conjugation, is to get caught in a
place like this."
   "Caught'?"
   "Pregnant,"  she  explained.  "Winning  the  goddam  reproductive race.
Knocked  up.  Oh,  Wan," she said, nuzzling the top of his head, "you just
don't  know  where it's all at. I bet you and I are going to conjugate the
hell  out  of  each  other,  some  time or other, and maybe we'll even get
married,  or  something,  and  we'll just win that old reproductive race a
whole  bunch.  But  right now you're just a snotty-nosed kid, and so am I.
You don't want to reproduce. You just want to make love."
   "Well, that is true, yes, but Tiny Jim..."
   "Will  you shut up about Tiny Jim?" She stood up and regarded him for a
moment,  and  said  affectionately,  "Tell you what. I'm going back to the
Dead Men's room. Why don't you go read a book for a while to cool off?"
   "You are silly!" he scolded. "I have no book here, or reader."
   "Oh,  for  the  Lord's  sake! Then go somewhere and whack off until you
feel better."
   Wan looked up at her, then down at his freshly laundered kilt. No bulge
was  visible, but there was a pale, spreading spot of damp. He grinned. "I
guess I don't need to any more," he said.
   By  the  time  they  got  back,  Paul  and  Lurvy were no longer cozily
nestling  each other, but Janine could detect that they were more at peace
than  usual.  What  Lurvy  could  detect  about  Wan  and  Janine was less
tangible. She looked at them thoughtfully, considered asking what they had
been up to, decided against it. Paul was, in any event, more interested in
what  they  had  just discovered. He said, "Hey, kids, listen to this." He
dialed  Henrietta's  number, waited until her weepy voice said a tentative
hello and then asked: "Who are you?"
   The voice strengthened. "I am a computer analog," it said firmly. "When
I  was  alive I was Mrs. Arnold Meacham of mission Orbit Seventy-four, Day
Nineteen.  I  have  a bachelor of science and master's from Tulane and the
Ph.  D.  from the University of Pennsylvania, and my special discipline is
astrophysics.  After  twenty-two  days  we  docked at an artifact and were
subsequently  captured  by  its  occupants.  At the time of my death I was
thirty-eight  years  old,  two years younger than..." the voice hesitated,
"than  Doris  Filgren,  our pilot, who..." it hesitated again, "who-who my
husband  seemed to-who had an affair with... who..." The voice was sobbing
now, and Paul turned it off.
   "Well,  it doesn't last," he said, "but there it is. Poor dumb old Vera
has  sorted  out  some  kind of a connection with reality for her. And not
just for her. Do you want to know your mother's name, Wan?"
   The boy was staring at him, pop-eyed. "My mother's name?" he shrilled.
   "Or  anybody else's. Tiny Jim, for instance. He was actually an airbody
pilot  from  Venus  who  got  to Gateway, and then here. His name is James
Cornwell.  Willard  was  an  English  teacher. He embezzled money from the
students'  fund  to  pay  his way to Gateway-didn't get much out of it, of
course. His first flight brought him here. The downlink computers wrote an
interrogation  program  for  Vera, and she's been working at it all along,
and-what's the matter, Wan?"
   The boy licked his lips. "My mother's name?" he repeated.
   "Oh.  Sorry," Paul apologized, reminded to be kind. It had not occurred
to  him  that  Wan's  emotions  would  be  involved.  "Her name was Elfega
Zamorra. But she doesn't seem to be one of the Dead Men, Wan. I don't know
why. And your father-well, that's a funny thing. Your real father was dead
before she came here. The man you talk about must have been somebody else,
but  I  don't  know who. Any idea why that is?" Wan shrugged. "I mean, why
your  mother  or, I guess you'd call him, your step-father doesn't seem to
be stored?" Wan spread his hands.
   Lurvy  moved  closer  to him. The poor kid! Responding to his distress,
she put her arm around him and said, "I guess this is a shock to you, Wan.
I'm  sure  we'll  find out a lot more." She gestured at the mare's nest of
recorders,  encoders  and  processors  that  littered  the once bare room.
"Everything  we  find  out  gets  transmitted back to Earth," she said. He
looked  up at her politely, but not entirely comprehendingly, as she tired
to  explain  the  vast complex of information-handling machinery on Earth,
and  how  it  systematically analyzed, compared, collated, and interpreted
every  scrap from Heechee Heaven and the Food Factory-not to mention every
other bit of data, wherever derived. Until Janine intervened.
   "Oh,  leave  him  alone. He understands enough," she said wisely. "Just
let  him  live  with  it  for  a  while." She rummaged through the case of
rations  for  one of the slate-green packages, and then said casually, "By
the way. Why is that thing beeping at us?"
   Paul  listened,  then  sprang  to  his  clutter of gadgets. The monitor
slaved to their portable cameras was emitting a faint Queep. Queep. Queep.
He spun it around so they could all see, swearing to himself.
   It  was  the camera they had left by the berryfruit bush, set patiently
to  record the unchanging scene and to sound an alarm whenever it detected
movement.
   It had. There was a face scowling out at them.
   Lurvy felt a thrill of terror. "Heechee," she breathed.
   But  if so, the face showed no evidence of concealing a mind that could
colonize a galaxy. It seemed to be down on all fours, peering worriedly at
the  camera,  and behind it were four or five others like it. The face had
no  chin. The brow slanted down from a fuzzy scalp; there was more hair on
the  face  than  on  the head. If the skull had had an occipital ridge, it
would  have  looked  like a gorilla. Taken all in all, it was not far from
the  shipboard  computer's  reconstruction  of Wan's description, but on a
cruder,  more  animal design. Yet they were not animals. As the face moved
to  one  side  Lurvy  saw that the others, clustered around the berryfruit
bush,  wore what no animal had ever spontaneously worn. They were clothed.
There  were  even evidences of fashion in what they wore, patches of color
sewn  to  their  tunics,  what looked like tattoos on exposed skin, even a
string  of  sharp-edged  beads  around  the  neck  of one of the males. "I
suppose,"  Lurvy  said shakily, "that even the Heechee might degenerate in
time. And they've had lots of time."
   The  view  in  the camera spun dizzily. "Damn him," Paul snapped. "He's
not so degenerate he doesn't notice the camera. He's picked the damn thing
up. Wan! Do you suppose they know we're here?"
   The boy shrugged disinterestedly. "Of course they do. They always have,
you know. They simply do not care."
   Lurvy's  heart  caught.  "What  do  you mean, Wan? How do you know they
won't come after us?"
   The  view  in the camera steadied; the Old One who had picked it up was
handing  it to another. Wan glanced at it and said, "I have told you, they
almost  never  come into this part of the blue. Or ever, into the red; and
there is no reason to go into the green. Nothing works there, not even the
food  chutes  or the readers. Almost always, they stay in the gold. Unless
they have eaten all the berryfruit there, and want more."
   There  was  a mewling cry from the sound system of the monitor, and the
view  whirled again. It stopped momentarily on one of the female Old Ones,
sucking  a  finger; then she reached out balefully for the camera. It spun
and then went blank. "Paul! What did they do?" Lurvy demanded.
   "Broke  it,  I suppose," he said, failing to get the picture back after
manipulating  the  controls.  "Question  is, what do we do? Haven't we got
enough here? Shouldn't we think about going back?"
   And  think about it Lurvy did. They all did. But however carefully they
questioned Wan, the boy stubbornly insisted there was nothing to fear. The
Old Ones had never troubled him in the corridors walled with red skeins of
light.  He  had never seen them in the green-though, to be sure, he seldom
went  there  himself.  Rarely  in  the blue. And, yes, of course they knew
there  were people here-the Dead Men assured him the Old Ones had machines
that  listened,  and  sometimes  watched,  everywhere  when  they were not
broken,  of  course.  They  simply did not care very much. "If we don't go
into  the  gold they will not trouble us," he said positively. "Except, of
course, if they come out."
   "Wan," Paul snarled, "I can't tell you how confident you make me feel."
   But  it  developed  that that was only the boy's way of saying that the
odds  were very good. "I go to the gold for excitement often," he boasted.
"Also for books. I have never been caught, you know."
   "And  what  if  the  Heechee  come here for excitement, or books?" Paul
demanded.
   "Books! What would they do with books? For berryfruit, maybe. Sometimes
they go with the machines-Tiny Jim says they are for repairing things that
break.  But  not  always.  And the machines do not work very well, or very
often. Besides, you can hear them far away!"
   They  all  sat  silent  for a moment, looking at each other. Then Lurvy
said,  "Here's  what  I think. Let's give ourselves one week here. I don't
think  that's  stretching  our  luck  too much. We have, what is it, Paul?
-five  cameras  left.  We'll  plant them around, slave them to the monitor
here  and  leave  them.  If we take care, maybe we can conceal them so the
Heechee  won't  find  them.  We'll  explore all the red corridors, because
they're  safe,  and  as  many  of  the  blue  and green as we can. Collect
samples.  Take pictures-I want to get a look at those repair machines. And
when  we've  done as much of that as we can, we'll-we'll see how much time
we have. And then we'll make a decision about going into the gold."
   "But  no  more  than  one  week.  From  now," Paul repeated. He was not
insisting. He was only making sure he understood.
   "No more," Lurvy agreed, and Janine and Wan nodded.
   But  forty-eight  hours later they were in the gold, all the same. They
had  decided  to  replace  the  broken  camera,  and  so, all four of them
together,  they  retraced  their steps to the three-way intersection where
the  berryfruit bush rose, bare of ripe fruit. Wan was first, hand in hand
with  Janine,  and  she detached herself to swoop down on the wreck of the
camera.  "They  really  bashed it," she marveled. "You didn't tell us they
were so strong, Wan. Look, is that blood?"
   Paul  snatched it from her hand, turning it over, frowning at the crust
of  black along one edge. "It looks like they were trying to get it open,"
he  said.  "I don't think I could do that with my bare hands. He must have
slipped and cut himself."
   "Oh,  yes,"  shrilled  Wan  absently,  "they  are  quite  strong."  His
attention  was  not  on  the  camera.  He  was  peering down the long gold
corridor,  sniffing the air, listening more for distant sounds than to the
others.
   "You're making me nervous," Lurvy said. "Do you hear anything?"
   He  shrugged irritably. "You smell them before you hear them but, no, I
do not smell anything. They are not very near. And I am not afraid! I come
here often, to get books or to watch the funny things they do."
   "I bet," said Janine, taking the old camera from Paul while he hunted a
place  to  conceal  the new one. There were not many places. Heechee decor
was stark.
   Wan  bristled.  "I have gone down that corridor as far as you can see!"
he  boasted.  "Even  the  place where the books is is far down-do you see?
Some of them are in the corridor."
   Lurvy  looked, but was not sure what Wan meant. A few dozen meters away
was  a  heap  of glittering trash, but no books. Paul, peeling tape from a
sticky bracket to mount it as high as he could on the wall, said, "The way
you  carry  on  about those books of yours. I've seen them, you know, Moby
Dick  and  The  Adventures of Don Quixote. What would the Heechee be doing
with them?"
   Wan  shrilled  with dignity, "You are stupid, Paul. Those are only what
the  Dead  Men  gave  me,  they are not the real books. Those are the real
books."
   Janine  looked  at  him  curiously,  then  moved  a  few  step down the
corridor. "They're not books," she called over her shoulder.
   "Of course they are! I have told you they are!"
   "No,  they  aren't.  Come and look." Lurvy opened her mouth to call her
back,  hesitated,  then  followed. The corridor was empty, and Wan did not
seem  more  than  usually agitated. When she was halfway to the glittering
scatter  she recognized what she was looking at, and quickly joined Janine
to pick one up.
   "Wan,"  she said, "I've seen these before. They're Heechee prayer fans.
There are hundreds of them on Earth."
   "No, no!" He was getting angry. "Why do you say that I lie?"
   "I'm  not saying you lie, Wan." She unrolled the thing in her hands. It
was  like  a tapering scroll of plastic; it opened easily in her hand, but
as  soon as she released it it closed again. It was the commonest artifact
of Heechee culture, found by the scores in the abandoned tunnels on Venus,
brought  back by Gateway prospectors from every successful mission. no one
had  ever  found what the Heechee did with them, and whether the name that
they had been given was appropriate only the Heechee knew. "They're called
'prayer fans', Wan."
   "No,  no,"  he  shrilled  crossly, taking it away from her and marching
into  the  chamber. "You do not pray with them. You read them. Like this."
He  started to put the scroll into one of the tulip-shaped fixtures on the
wall,  glanced  at  it,  threw it down. "That is not a good one," he said,
rummaging in the heaps of fans on the floor. "Wait. Yes. This is not good,
either,  but  it  is  at least something one can recognize." He slipped it
into the tulip. There was a quick tiny flutter of electronic whispers, and
then  the  tulip  and  scroll  disappeared.  A lemon-shaped cloud of color
enveloped them, and shaped itself to display a sewn book, opened at a page
of  vertical  lines  of ideographs. A tinny voice-a human voice! -began to
declaim something in a staccato, highly tonal language.
   Lurvy could not understand the words, but two years on Gateway had made
her  cosmopolitan.  She gasped, "I-I think that's Japanese! And those look
like haiku! Wan, what are the Heechee doing with books in Japanese?"
   He  said in a superior tone, "These are not really the Old Ones, Lurvy,
they are only copies of other books. The good ones are all like that. Tiny
Jim  says  that all the tapes and books of the Dead Men, all the Dead Men,
even  the  ones  that are no longer here, are stored in these. I read them
all the time."
   "My God," said Lurvy. "And how many times have I had one of those in my
hands and not known what it was for?"
   Paul  shook his head wonderingly. He reached into the glowing image and
pulled the fan out of its tulip. It came away easily; the picture vanished
and  voice  stopped  in mid-syllable, and he turned the scroll over in his
hands.  "That  beats me," he said. "Every scientist in the world has had a
go at these things. How come nobody ever figured out what they were?"
   Wan  shrugged.  He  was no longer angry; he was enjoying the triumph of
showing  these  people  how much more than they he knew. "Perhaps they are
stupid  too,"  he shrilled. Then, charitably, "Or perhaps they merely have
only  the  ones that no one can understand-except perhaps the Old Ones, If
they ever bothered to read them."
   "Have you got one of those handy, Wan?" Lurvy asked.
   He  shrugged  petulantly.  "I  never  bother with those," he explained.
"Still,  if you do not believe me..." He rummaged around in the heaps, his
expression  making it clear that they were wasting time with things he had
already  explored and found without interest. "Yes. I think this is one of
the worthless ones."
   When  he  slipped  it  into  the tulip, the hologram that sprang up was
bright-and  baffling.  It was as hard to read as the play of colors on the
controls  of a Heechee spacecraft. Harder. Strange, oscillating lines that
twined  around each other, leaped apart in a spray of color, and then drew
together  again.  If  it  was  written language, it was as remote from any
Western  alphabet  as  cuneiform.  More  so.  All  Earthly  languages  had
characteristics  in  common, if only that they were almost all represented
by  symbols on a plane surface. This seemed meant to be perceived in three
dimensions.  And  with  it  came  a  sort of interrupted mosquito-whine of
sound,  like  telemetry  which, by mistake, was being received on a pocket
radio. All in all, it was unnerving.
   "I did not think you would enjoy it," Wan observed spitefully. "Turn it
off,  Wan,"  Lurvy said; and then, energetically, "We want to take as many
of  these  things as we can. Paul, take off your shirt. Load up as many as
you  can  and  take  them  back  to the Dead Men's room. And take that old
camera,  too;  give  it  to  the  bio-assay  unit,  and see if it can make
anything out of the Heechee blood."
   "And  what are you going to do?" Paul asked. But he had already slipped
off his blouse and was filling it with the glittery "books".
   "We'll  be  right  along.  Go  ahead, Paul. Wan? Can you tell which are
which-I mean, which are the ones you don't bother with?"
   "Of  course  I can, Lurvy. They are very much older, sometimes a little
chipped-you can see."
   "All  right. You two, take off your top clothes too-as much as you need
to make a carrying-bag out of. Go ahead. We'll be modest some other time,"
she  said,  slipping  out  of  her coverall. She stood in bra and panties,
tying  knots  in  the arms and legs of the garment. She could fit at least
fifty  or  sixty  of the fans in that, she calculated-with Wan's tunic and
Janine's  dress  they  could  carry at least half of the objects away. And
that  would  be enough. She would not be greedy. There were plenty more on
the  Food  Factory,  anyway-although  probably  they were the ones Wan had
brought  there,  and  thus only the ones he had found he could understand.
"Are there readers on the Food Factory, Wan?"
   "Of  course,"  he  said.  "Why  else would I bring books there?" He was
sorting  irritably through the fans, muttering to himself as he tossed the
oldest, "useless" ones to Janine and Lurvy. "I am cold," he complained.
   "We  all  are.  I wish you'd worn a bra, Janine," she said, frowning at
her sister.
   Janine  said  indignantly,  "I  wasn't planning to take my clothes off.
Wan's right. I'm cold, too."
   "It's only for a little while. Hurry it up, Wan. You too, Janine, let's
see  how  fast  we  can  pick out the Heechee ones." They had her coverall
nearly full, and Wan, scowling and dignified in his kilt, was beginning to
stuff the fans into his. It would be possible, Lurvy calculated, to wrap a
few  dozen more in the kilt. After all, he had a breechcloth under it. But
they  were  really doing very well. Paul had already taken at least thirty
or  forty.  Her  coverall seemed able to hold nearly seventy-five. And, in
any  event, they could always come back another time for the rest, if they
chose,
   Lurvy  did  not  think  she would choose to do that. Enough was enough.
Whatever  else  they might do in Heechee Heaven, they had already acquired
one  priceless  fact. The prayer fans were books! Knowing that that was so
was  half  the  battle;  with that certainty before them, scientists would
surely  be able to unlock the secret of reading them. If they could not do
it from scratch, there were the readers on the Food Factory; if worst came
to  worst  they  could read every fan before one of Vera's remotes, encode
sound and image, and transmit the whole thing to Earth. Perhaps they could
wrench  a  reading  machine loose and bring it back with them.... And back
they  would  go,  Lurvy was suddenly sure. If they could not find a way to
move  the  Food  Factory,  they would abandon it. no one could fault them.
They  had  done  enough. If there was a need for more, other parties could
follow  them,  but  meanwhile...  Meanwhile  they  would have brought back
richer  gifts  than  any  other  human  beings  since the discovery of the
Gateway  asteroid itself! They would be rewarded accordingly, there was no
question  of  that-she  even had Robinette Broadhead's word. For the first
time  since  they had left the Moon on the searing chemical flame of their
takeoff rockets, Lurvy let herself think of herself not as someone who was
striving for a prize, but as someone who had won. And how happy her father
would be...
   "That's  enough,"  she  said,  helping Janine grip the spilling sack of
prayer fans. "Let's take them right to the ship."
   Janine  hugged  the  clumsy bundle to her small breasts and picked up a
few more with a free hand. "You sound as if we're going home," she said.
   "Maybe  so," Lurvy grinned. "Of course, we'll have to have a conference
and decide. Wan? What's the matter?"
   He  was  at  the door, his shirtful of fans under an arm. And he looked
stricken.  "We  waited too long," he whispered, peering down the corridor.
"There are Old Ones by the berryfruit."
   "Oh,  no."  But  it  was  true.  Lurvy  peered  cautiously out into the
corridor  and  there they were, staring up at the camera Paul had fixed to
the  wall.  One  reached  up  and  effortlessly  pulled it loose while she
watched. "Wan? Is there another way home?"
   "Yes,  through  the  gold, but..." His nose was working. "I think there
are some there, too. I can smell them and, yes, I can hear them!" And that
was  true, too; Lurvy could hear a faint sound of mellow, chirrupy grunts,
from where the corridor bent.
   "We  don't  have  a choice," she said. "There are only two of them back
the  way  we  came.  We'll  take  them  by  surprise and just push our way
through.  Come on!" Still carrying the tapes, she hustled the others ahead
of her. The Heechee might be strong, but Wan had said they were slow. With
any  luck at all. They had no luck at all. As they reached the opening she
saw  that there were more than two, half a dozen more, standing around and
looking  toward  them in the entrances to the other corridors. "Paul!" she
shouted at the camera. "We're caught! Get in the ship, and if we don't get
away..."  And she could say no more, because they were upon her; and, yes,
they were strong!
   They  were hustled up through half a dozen levels, their captors one to
each  arm,  stolidly  chirping at each other, ignoring their struggles and
their  words.  Wan  did not speak. He let them pull him as they would, all
the  way  up to a great open spindleshaped volume, where another dozen Old
Ones  waited  and  a huge blue-lit machine sat silent behind them. Did the
Heechee  believe  in  sacrifice? Or perform experiments on captives? Would
they  wind up as Dead Men themselves, rambling and obsessed, ready for the
next  batch  of  visitors?  Lurvy  looked upon all of these as interesting
questions, and had no answers for any of them. She was not yet afraid. Her
feelings  had  not  caught up with the facts; it was too recently that she
had  allowed herself to feel triumph. The realization of defeat would have
to wait.
   The  Old  Ones  chirruped  to  each  other,  gesticulating  toward  the
prisoners,  the  corridors,  the  great silent machine, like a battle tank
without guns. Like a nightmare. Lurvy could not understand any of it, even
though  the  situation was clear enough. After minutes of jabber they were
pushed  into  a  cubicle,  and  found in it-astonishingly! -quite familiar
objects.  Behind  the  closed door Lurvy shuffled through them-clothing; a
chess  set;  long  desiccated  rations. In the toe of one shoe was a thick
roll  of  Brazilian  currency, more than a quarter of a million dollars of
it, she guessed. They had not been the first captives here! But in none of
the rubble was anything like a weapon. She turned to Wan, who was pale and
shaking. "What will happen?" she demanded.
   He  waggled  his  head like an Old One. It was the only answer he could
give.  "My  father..." he began, and had to swallow before he could go on.
"They  captured my father once and, yes, truly, they let him go again. But
I  do  not  think that is a rule, since my father told me I must never let
myself be caught."
   Janine  said,  "At  least  Paul  got  away.  Maybe-maybe  he  can bring
help...." But she stopped there, and did not expect an answer. Any hopeful
answer  would  have  been fantasy, defined by the four years it would take
another  vessel  like  theirs  to reach the Food Factory. If help came, it
would  not  be soon. She began to sort through the old clothing. "At least
we can get something on," she said. "Come on, Wan. Get yourself dressed."
   Lurvy  followed  her  example, and then stopped at a strange sound from
her sister. It was almost a laugh! "What's so funny?" she snapped.
   Janine  pulled  a sweater over her head before she answered. It was too
big,  but  it was warm. "I was just thinking about the orders we got," she
said.  "To  get  Heechee tissue samples, you know? Well, the way it worked
out-they got ours instead. All of them."

   When  the  shipboard computer's mail bell rang, Payter woke quickly and
completely.  It  was an advantage of age that one slept shallowly and woke
at  once.  There  were  not  many advantages. He got up, rinsed his mouth,
urinated  into  the  sanitary, washed his hands, and took two food packets
with  him to the terminal. "Display the mail now," he ordered, munching on
something  that  tasted  like  sour  rye bread but was meant to be a sweet
roll.
   When  he  saw  what  the mail was, his good mood passed. Most of it was
interminable mission orders. Six letters for Janine, one each for Paul and
Dorema,  and  for  himself only a petition addressed to Schwarze Peter and
signed  by  eight  hundred and thirty school-children of Dortmund, begging
him  to return and become their Burgermeister. "Dumb head!" he scolded the
computer.  "Why  do  you  wake  me  for  this trash?" Vera did not answer,
because  he  did not give her time to identify him and rummage through her
slow magnetic bubbles to locate his name.
   Long  before  then,  he was complaining, "Also this food is not fit for
pigs! Attend to it at once!"
   Poor  Vera  erased  the  attempt  to  interpret  his first question and
patiently  attended  to the second. "The recycling system is below optimal
mass  levels,"  she  said,"...  Mr.  Herter.  In  addition,  my processing
routines  have  been subject to overload for some time. Many programs have
been deferred."
   "Do  not  defer  the  food question any more," he snarled, "or you will
kill  me,  and there's an end to it." He gloomily commanded display of the
mission  orders  while  he  forced  himself  to  chew the remainder of his
breakfast.  The  orders rolled for ten solid minutes. What marvelous ideas
they  had for him, back on Earth! And if only there were a hundred of him,
perhaps  they could do one one-hundredth of the tasks proposed. He allowed
the  end  of  it  to run unwatched, while he carefully shaved his pink old
face  and  brushed  his  sparse  hair.  And  why  was the recycling system
depleted,  so  that  it could not function properly? Because his daughters
and   their   consorts  had  removed  themselves  and  thus  their  useful
by-products,  as  well  as  all  the water Wan had stolen from the system.
Stolen!  Yes,  there  was  no  other  word for it. Also they had taken the
mobile  bio-assay unit, so that there was only the sampler in the sanitary
to  monitor  his  health,  and what could that tell of fever or arrhythmic
heart,  if  he  should have either? Also they had taken all but one of the
cameras,  so  that  he must carry that one with him wherever he went. Also
they  had  taken.  They  had taken themselves, and Schwarze Peter, for the
first time in his life, was wholly alone.
   He was not only alone, he was powerless to change it. Family came back,
they  would do so in their own good time and not before. Until then he was
a  reserve  unit,  a  pillbox  soldier,  a  standby  program. He was given
excessive tasks to do, but the real center of action was somewhere else.
   In  his  long  life Payter had taught himself to be patient, but he had
never  taught  himself to enjoy it. It was maddening to be forced to wait!
To  wait  fifty  days for an answer from Earth to his perfectly reasonable
proposals  and  questions.  To wait almost as long for his family and that
hooligan boy to get to where they were going (if they ever did) and report
to him (if they should happen to choose to). Waiting was not so bad if one
had enough of a life left to wait in. But how much, realistically, had he?
Suppose  he  had a stroke. Suppose he developed a cancer. Suppose any part
of the complicated interactions that kept, his heart beating and his blood
flowing  and  his  bowels  moving and his brain thinking broke down in any
place. What then?
   And  some  day  they  surely would, because Payter was old. He had lied
about his age so many times that he was no longer sure of what it was. Not
even  his children knew; the stories he told about his grandfather's youth
were  really  about  his  own.  Age in itself did not matter. Full Medical
could  deal  with  anything,  repair or replace, as long as it was not the
brain itself that was damaged-and Payter's brain was in the best of shape,
because had it not schemed and contrived to get him here?
   But  "here"  there was no Full Medical, and age began to matter a great
deal.
   He  was  no  longer  a  boy! But once he had been, and even then he had
known  that somehow, some day, he would possess exactly what he owned now:
the  key  to  heart's desire. Burgermeister of Dortmund? That was nothing!
Skinny  young Peter, shortest and youngest in his unit of the Hitler Youth
but  their  leader  all  the same, had promised himself he would have much
more.  He had even known that it would turn out to be something like this,
some  grand futuristic pattern would emerge, and he alone would be able to
find the handle to wield it, like a weapon, like an axe, like a scythe, to
punish  or  reap  or  remake the world. Well, here it was! And what was he
doing  with  it? He was waiting. It had not been like that, in the boyhood
stories  by Juve and Gail and Dominik and the Frenchman, Verne. The people
in them did not waste themselves so spinelessly.
   But what, after all, was one to do?
   So  while  he waited for that question to answer itself, he kept up his
daily rounds. He ate four light meals a day, every other one of CHON-food,
methodically  dictating  to Vera his impressions of taste and consistency.
He ordered Vera to design a new mobile bio-assay out of what odds and ends
of  sensor  instrumentation  could be spared, and worked at building it as
she  found time to complete parts of the design. He worked out ten minutes
each  morning  with the weights, half an hour every afternoon with bending
and  stretching. He methodically walked every pathway in the Food Factory,
with  his  hand-held  camera  pointed  into every cranny. He composed long
letters of complaint to his masters on Earth, cagily arguing the merits of
aborting the mission and returning to Earth as soon as he could summon the
family  back, and actually transmitted one or two of them. He wrote fierce
and peremptory directives to his lawyer in Stuttgart, in code, arguing his
position,  demanding  a  revision  to  the  contract.  And most of all, he
schemed. And about the Traumeplatz most of all.
   It  was  seldom  out  of  his  thoughts,  this  dreaming place with its
startling  potential.  When  he  was depressed and fretful, he thought how
rightly  it would serve Earth if he were to repair it and call Wan back to
give  them  their  fevers  once  again. When he was charged with force and
determination  he  went  to  look  at  it,  lid hanging from an ornamental
projection  on  one  wall, the joints and fasteners always with him in his
coverall  pouch.  How easy it would be to bring in a cutting torch and lop
it free, cram the ship full of that, and the communications system for the
Dead  Men,  and whatever other goods and treasures he could find; and then
cast  loose  in the rocket for Earth, start the long, slow downward spiral
that would bring him-what would it bring him? God in heaven, what would it
not!  Fame!  Power!  Prosperity! All the things that were his due-yes, and
his rightful property, too, if he only got back in time to enjoy them.
   It  made him ill to think about it. All the time the clock was ticking,
ticking.  Every  minute  he  was one minute closer to the end of his life.
Every  second  spent  waiting  was  a second stolen from the happy time of
greatness and luxury that he had earned. He forced himself to eat, sitting
on  the  edge of his private and looking longingly at the ship's controls.
"The food has not improved, Vera!" he called accusingly.
   The confounded thing did not answer. "Vera! You must do something about
the food!" It still did not answer, not for several seconds.
   And  then  only,  "One  moment, please... Mr. Herter." It was enough to
make  one  sick. In fact, he did feel somewhat sick, he realized. He gazed
with  hostility at the dish he had been doggedly forcing down, supposed to
be  a  sort  of schnitzel, or as close to it as Vera's limited recombinant
capacities  would  allow,  but tasting of whisky or sauerkraut, or both at
once. He set it on the floor.
   "I do not feel well," he announced.
   Pause.  Then,  "One moment, please... Mr. Hester." Poor stupid Vera had
just  so much capacity. She was processing a burst of messages from Earth,
endeavoring  to  carry on a conversation with the Dead Men by means of the
faster-than-light   radio,  encoding  and  transmitting  all  of  her  own
telemetry-all  at  once.  She simply did not have time for his queasiness.
But  his  accelerating unease would not be denied: a sudden rush of saliva
under  the  tongue, a quick shuddering of the diaphragm. He barely made it
to  the sanitary, giving back, there, all he had taken. For the last time,
he  swore.  He  did  not want to live so long as to see those God-bedamned
organic  compounds  reworked for one more passage through his gut. When he
was sure he had stopped vomiting he marched over to the console and pushed
the  override buttons. "All functions in standby except this," he ordered.
"Monitor my bio-assay at once."
   "Very  well,"  she said at once,"... Mr. Hester." Silence for a moment,
while  the  unit in the sanitary made what it could of what Peter had just
deposited.  "You are suffering from food poisoning," she reported,"... Mr.
Hester."
   "So! This I already know. What is to be done about it?"
   Pause,  while  her  tiny  brain revolved the problem. "If you could add
water  to the system, the fermentation and recycling would be under better
control,"  she  said,  "... Mr. Hester. At least one hundred liters. There
has been considerable loss due to evaporation in the much larger volume of
space  now available, as well as the stocks withdrawn for the remainder of
your  party.  My  recommendation  is  that  you  replenish the system with
available water as soon as possible."
   "But that is not fit to drink for pigs even!"
   "The   solutes   present  problems,"  she  acknowledged.  "Therefore  I
recommend  that  at  least half of any added water be distilled first. The
system  should  be  able  to cope with the remainder of the solutes... Mr.
Hester."
   "God  in  Heaven!  Am  I  to build a still out of nothing, and become a
water-carrier  too?  And  what  of the bio-assay mobile unit, so that this
will not happen again?"
   Vera  sorted  through  the  questions  for a moment. "Yes, I think that
would   be  appropriate,"  she  agreed.  "If  you  wish,  I  will  provide
construction  plans.  Also... Mr. Hester, you may wish to consider relying
more  heavily  on CHON-food for your diet, since you do not appear to have
severe adverse reactions to it."
   "Apart  of  course  from  the fact that it tastes like dog-biscuit," he
sneered.  "Very  well. Complete the construction plans at once. Hard copy,
making use of available materials, do you understand?"
   "Yes...  Mr.  Hester." The computer was silent for a time, inventorying
redundant parts and materials, devising linkages that would do the job. It
was a formidable task for Vera's limited intelligence. Peter drew a cup of
water  and  rinsed  out  his mouth, then grimly unwrapped one of the least
unattractive  CHON  tablets  and  nibbled off a tentative corner. While he
waited  to see if he would throw up again he faced the possibility that he
might  in fact die here, and alone. He did not even have the option he had
thought  was  his,  of casting everything adrift and returning to Earth by
himself-not, at least, unless he first added water as ordered, and did his
best to insure that nothing else would go wrong.
   And yet it was every day so increasingly tempting..
   To  be  sure,  that would mean casting his daughters and his son-in-law
adrift.
   But would they ever return? Suppose they did not. Suppose that rude boy
turned  the  wrong  switch,  or  ran out of fuel. Or anything. Suppose, in
short,  they died. Must he then wither on the vine until he also was dead?
And  what  benefit would that be to humanity, if he perished here, and the
whole  thing  to  do  over  again with a new crew... and himself, Schwarze
Peter,  done  out  of reward, done out of fame and power, done out of life
itself?
   Or-an  idea  struck  him-was  there  another option? This bedamned Food
Factory itself, so set on continuing its course. What if he could find the
controls  that  directed  it  so?  What  if he could learn to change those
directions,  so  that  it could bring him back to Earth not in three years
and  more,  but  at once, in days? To be sure, that would doom his family,
would it not? But perhaps not! Perhaps they would return, if they returned
at  all,  to  the Food Factory itself, wherever it might be. Even in close
orbit  around  Earth!  And  how  marvelously  that  would solve everyone's
problems  at once. He threw the remainder of the packet into the sanitary,
to  add to the store of organics. "Du bist verruckt, Peter!" he snarled to
himself.  The  flaw in that dream could not be ignored: he had sought with
all his might, and the controls to the Food Factory were not to be found.
   The  frying-bacon  sound  of the hard-copy printer rescued him from his
thoughts.  He  pulled  the sheets out of the machine and frowned over them
for  a  moment. So much work! Twenty hours, at least! And not merely time,
but  so  much  of it was hard physical labor! He would have to go out into
space  to  reclaim  piping  from  the  struts  that were meant to hold the
auxiliary  transmitters  in  place, cut them loose, bring them inside; and
only  then begin to weld them together and form them into a spiral. Simply
for the condensation section of the still! He saw that he was beginning to
shake. He barely made it to the sanitary in time. "Vera!" he croaked.
   "I must have medication for this!"
   "At  once...  Mr. Hester. Yes. In the medical kit you will find tablets
marked..."
   "Dumbhead! The medical kit is gone to Cuckooland!"
   "Oh,  yes... Mr. Hester. One moment. Yes. I have programmed appropriate
pharmaceuticals  for you. It will take about twenty minutes for them to be
prepared."
   "In  twenty minutes I could be dead," be snarled. But there was no help
for  it,  and  so  he  sat  and  stewed  for twenty minutes, the pressures
mounting.  Illness, hunger, loneliness, overwork, resentment, fear. Anger!
That  was  what, in the end, they all fused into. Anger. Many vectors. One
vector  sum.  By  the  time Vera's dispensary popped out his pills, it had
submerged  all  the  others. He swallowed them greedily and retired to his
private to see what would happen.
   Actually  they  did  appear to work. He lay back while the fires in his
belly damped themselves, and fell imperceptibly asleep.
   When  he  woke  he  felt at least physically better. He washed himself,
brushed his teeth, brushed his thinning yellow hair, and only then noticed
the Christmas tree of attention-demanding lights around Vera's console. On
the screen in bright red letters were the words:

   He  chuckled  to himself. He had forgotten to cancel the override. When
he  ordered  the  computer  to  get  back to business there was an instant
explosion  of  bells  and signal lights, a cascade of hard copy out of the
printer  and  a  voice.  His  elder  daughter's voice, out of Vera's taped
storage:  "Hello,  Pop. Sorry we couldn't reach you to tell you we arrived
safely. We're going to explore now. Talk to you later."
   Because  Peter  Hester  loved his family, the joy of their safe arrival
flooded  his  heart  and sustained him-for hours. For almost two days. But
joy does not flourish in an existence of irritations and worries. He spoke
to  Lurvy-twice;  for  no  more than thirty seconds each time. Vera simply
could  not  handle  more.  Vera  was  harder  pressed  than Peter himself,
stripped  and  rearranged  as  she  was,  handling two-way traffic between
Heechee  Heaven and the Earth, deferring top priority action commands when
even  higher  priorities  demanded  attention. The one voice link with the
Heechee  place could not handle the volume it was given to carry, and mere
chitchat between father and daughter could not be allowed.
   That  was  not  unjust, Peter conceded. Such marvels they were finding!
What  was  unjust  was  that he himself was out of it. What was unjust was
that  among  the urgent and meaningful traffic, Vera found time to pass on
to  him  a hodgepodge of commands meant for himself. None reasonable. Some
impossible  to  carry  out.  Redeploy  the thrusters. Inventory CHON-food.
Submit  by  return  message  complete  analysis  a  cm by 3 cm by 12. 5 cm
packets  in red and lavender wrappers. Do not submit unnecessary analyses!
Submit  metallurgical  analysis  "dreaming couch". Do not attempt physical
study "dreaming couch". Query Dead Men re Heechee Drive. Query Dead Men re
control  panels. Query Dead Men. How easy that was to command! How hard to
carry out, when they maundered and scolded and rambled and complained when
he  could  hear  them at all, and when most often he was forbidden to take
time  on  the  FTL  voice  circuit  anyway.  Some of the orders from Earth
contradicted  others,  and  most  of them came out of order, with obsolete
priority  designations.  And some did not come at all. Poor Vera's storage
circuits  were  soon approaching overload, and she tried to rid herself of
unnecessary  data  by hard-printing it for him to, somehow, attend to; but
that  made problems of its own,, because the recycling system that fed the
printer rolls was the same one that fed him, and the organics were already
depleted.  So  Peter  had to open and dump CHON-food into the sanitary and
then get busy on the still.
   Even  if  Vera  had  had  time  for him, he had not much time for Vera.
Struggle  into  EVA  equipment.  Cycle himself out on the hull of the Food
Factory.  Cut away tubing and bind it together. Sweat it back to the ship,
always  fighting the infuriating, dogged thrust of the Food Factory itself
as  it  plunged toward somewhere or other. He could spare time only for an
occasional  glance  at  the pictures coming back from Heechee Heaven. Vera
displayed them as they came in, one frame at a time; but then each one was
whisked  away to make storage space for the next one, and if Peter was not
there to see they would go unseen. Even so, good heavens! The Dead Men, so
featureless  to  look  at.  The  corridors  of  Heechee  Heaven.  The  Old
Ones-Peter's  heart almost stopped as he looked at the great broad face of
an  Old  One  on the screen. But he had time only for a look, and then the
still  was done and he must go on with the next task. Build himself a yoke
for  his  shoulders.  Seam together plastic sheeting (another drain on the
recycler!)    to    make   buckets.   Squat   impatiently   by   the   one
functioning-barely  functioning-water  source,  holding  the flexible disk
around  the  spout and catching the foulsmelling dribble in the bags. Tote
the  water  back,  half  into the still, the other half into the recycling
tanks. Sleep when he could. Eat when he could force himself. Attend to his
own personal priority messages when they trickled through, and when he was
too  exhausted for anything physical. Another message from Dortmund, three
hundred  municipal  workers  this time-stupid Vera, for letting such trash
through!  A  coded  communication from his lawyer, meaning half an hour to
translate  it.  And  then  all  it  said  was,  "Am attempting secure more
favorable terms. Can promise nothing. Meanwhile advise full compliance all
directives."  What a pig! Peter, swearing, sat before the console, slammed
down the override key and dictated his reply:
   "Full  compliance  with  all  stupid  directives will kill me, and then
what?"  And  he  sent  it in the clear; let Broadhead and the Gateway Corp
make what they would of it!
   And perhaps the message was no lie. In all his stress and bustle, Peter
had  no  time  for  aches  and  pains.  He ate the CHON-food and, when new
regular  rations  began  to come out of the recycler, them, too. Even when
they  tasted  foul-sometimes  turpentine,  sometimes mold-he was not sick.
This  was  not  ideal.  Peter  knew  that  he  was operating on stress and
adrenaline,  and  sometime there would be a price to pay. But he could see
no way to avoid paying it when due.
   And when at last he had the food processor working reasonably well once
more,  and  had managed to catch up with what appeared the most peremptory
of  his own orders, he sat before Vera's console half-dozing, and then saw
the  greatest  marvel  of all. He scowled uncomprehendingly. What was that
idiot  boy doing with a prayer fan? Why in the next frame was he poking it
into  those  foolish  things  that looked like flowerholders? And then the
next  frame  began  to  build on the screen, and Peter gave a great shout.
Suddenly a picture had appeared, some sort of book-Japanese or Chinese, by
the look of it.
   He  was  out  of  the  ship  and  halfway to the Traumeplatz before his
conscious  mind  quite articulated what some part of him had understood at
once.  The  prayer  fans!  They  contained information! He did not stop to
wonder why the information had been in a Terrestrial language, or at least
what looked like one. He had grasped the essential fact. He was determined
to see for himself. Panting, he thrust himself into the room and scrabbled
feverishly  among  the "fans". How was it done? Why in the name of God had
he not waited to see more, to be sure of what he was doing? But there were
the candleholders, or flowerpots, or whatever he had thought they were; he
jammed  the  first  prayer  fan  to  hand  into  the  nearest one. Nothing
happened.
   He  tried  six  of them, narrow end first, wide end first, every way he
could  think  of,  before  it  occurred to him that perhaps not all of the
reading  machines  were  still working. And the second one he tried pulled
the  fan out of his hand and immediately sprang into light. He was looking
at six dancers in black masks and bodystockings, and he was hearing a song
he had not heard for many years.
   It  was  a  taped  PV  show! No. Not even that. It was older than that.
Years older, not much more recent than the first years of the discovery of
the Gateway asteroid; his second wife was still alive, and Janine not born
yet, when that song was new. It had been simple old television, before the
Heechee  piezoelectric  circuits had been incorporated into communications
systems  for human beings. It had perhaps been part of the library of some
Gateway  prospector, no doubt One of the Dead Men, and somehow it had been
transcribed to a prayer fan.
   What a cheat!
   But  then  he  realized  that  there  were thousands of prayer fans, on
Earth,  in  the  tunnels  of  Venus, still on Gateway itself; wherever the
Heechee had been they had left them. Whatever the source of this one, most
of  the  others  must  have  been left by the Heechee themselves! And that
alone-dear  God, that alone was worth more even than the Food Factory, for
it was the key to all of the Heechee's knowledge! What a bonus there would
be!
   Exulting, Peter tried another fan (old movie), and another (slim volume
of poetry, this time in English, by someone named Eliot), and another. How
disgusting!  If  this  was what Wan had got his notions of love from, some
lascivious  Gateway  prospector  carrying pornography with him to pass the
time,  no  wonder  his behavior was so foul! But he could not remain angry
long,  for  he  had  too  much to be glad about. He snatched it out of the
reader,  and  then,  in  the quiet, heard the distant tiny sound of Vera's
urgent-attention bell.
   It  had  a frightening sound, even before he got back to the ship, even
before  he  demanded  the message and heard his son-in-law's voice, rasped
with fear:
   "Urgent  override  priority!  For  Peter  Hester and immediate relay to
Earth!  Lurvy,  Janine  and  Wan  have been captured by the Heechee, and I
think they are coming after me!"
   The advantage of his new situation, and the only one, was that now that
there  were  no  more  messages coming from Heechee Heaven Vera was better
able  to cope with her overload. Patiently Peter teased out of her all the
pictures  that  had been transmitted before Paul's message had been taped,
and  saw  the  knot  of  Heechee  at  the end of the corridor, the blurred
struggle,  half  a  dozen  quick  glimpses of the ceiling of the corridor,
something  that  might  have  been the back of Wan's head-then nothing. Or
nothing that meant anything. Peter could not know that the camera had been
jammed into the blouse of one of the Old Ones, but he could see that there
was nothing to be seen: obscure shadowy shapes, perhaps a hint of texture.
   Peter's mind was clear. But it was also empty. He did not allow himself
to  feel  how  empty  his life had at once become. He carefully programmed
Vera  to  go back over the voice messages and select the significant ones,
and listened to what all of them had said. There was no hope in any of it.
Not even when at last a new picture suddenly began to build on the screen,
then another, then another. For half a dozen frames there was nothing that
made  sense,  perhaps  a fist over the lens, maybe a shot of a bare floor.
Then,  in  one  corner of the last frame, something that looked like-what?
Like  a  Sturmkampfwagen  from his earliest boyhood? But then it was gone,
and the camera had once again been put where it showed nothing at all, and
stayed that way through fifty frames.
   What  it  noticeably  did  not  show  was  any  sign  of  either of his
daughters,  or  of  Wan.  And as to Paul, the old man did not have a clue;
after his last frantic message he was gone.
   In  some  unwanted corner of his mind he found the realization that now
he  might  be,  probably  was,  the  sole  survivor of the mission, and so
whatever bonus might come to all was now his alone.
   He held the thought where he could look at it. But it meant nothing. He
was  now  hopelessly  alone, more alone than ever, as alone as Trish Bover
frozen  into  her  eternal  ragged orbit that would go nowhere. Perhaps he
could  get  back  to Earth to claim his reward. Perhaps he could keep from
dying. But how was he to keep from going insane?
   It  took  Peter  a  long  time  to  fall  asleep.  He was not afraid of
sleeping. What he dreaded was waking up afterward, and when it came it was
as  bad  as he had feared. In the first moment it was a day like any other
day,  and  it  was only after a peaceable moment of stretching and yawning
that  he  remembered what had happened. "Peter Hester," he said to himself
out loud, "you are alone in this very damned place, and you will die here,
still alone." He noted that he was talking to himself. Already.
   Through  the  habits  of all those years he washed himself, cleaned his
mouth,  brushed  his  hair  and  then took time to snip off the loose ends
around  his  ears  and  at the nape of his neck. It did not matter what he
did,  in  any  case.  Having  left  his  private, he opened two packets of
CHON-food  and  ate them methodically before asking Vera if there were any
messages  from  Heechee Heaven. "No," she said, "... Mr. Hester, but there
are a number of downlink action relays."
   "Later," he said. They did not matter. They would tell him to do things
he  had  already done, perhaps. Or they would tell him to do things he had
no  intention  of  doing,  perhaps  to force himself outside, to rerig the
thrusters,  to  try  again.  But  the Food Factory would of course counter
every thrust with an equal and opposite thrust of its own and continue its
slow  acceleration  toward God, He knew what, for God, He knew why. In any
event,  nothing  that  came  from  Earth  for the next fifty days would be
relevant to the new realities.
   And  in  less than fifty days. In less than fifty days, what? "You talk
as though you had a choice of options, Peter Hester!" he scolded himself.
   Well,  perhaps  he had, he thought, if only he could perceive what they
were.  Meanwhile the best thing for him to do was to do what he had always
done.  To  keep  himself  fastidiously  neat.  To  do  such  tasks as were
reasonable  for him to do. To maintain his well established habits. He had
learned  through  all  those decades of life that the best time for him to
move his bowels was some forty-five minutes after eating breakfast; it was
now about that time; it was appropriate to do that. While he was squatting
on  the  sanitary he felt a tiny, almost imperceptible lurch once more and
scowled.  It  was  an annoyance to have things happen when he did not know
their  cause,  and  it  was an interruption in what he was doing, with his
customary  efficiency. Of course, one could not claim much personal credit
for  the  functioning  of sphincters that had been bought and transplanted
from some hapless (or hungry) donor, or for a stomach inserted intact from
another. Nevertheless, it pleased Peter that he functioned so well.
   You  are  morbidly interested in your bowel movements, he told himself,
but silently.
   Also  silently-it did not seem so bad to talk to oneself, as long as it
was  not aloud-he defended himself. It was not unjustified, he thought. It
was  only  because  the  example  of  the bio-assay unit in the toilet was
always before him. For three and a half years it had been monitoring every
waste  product  of  their  bodies. Of course, so it must! How else to keep
tabs  on  their  health?  And  if it was proper for a machine to weigh and
evaluate one's excrement, why not for the excrement's author?
   He said aloud, grinning, "Du bist verruckt, Peter Hester!"
   He  nodded in agreement with himself as he cleaned himself and fastened
his coverall, because he had summed it all up. Yes. He was crazy.
   By the standards of ordinary men.
   But  what  ordinary  man had ever been in the present position of Peter
Hester?
   So when one had said that he was crazy, after all, one had said nothing
that  was  relevant.  What did the standards of ordinary men signify as to
Schwarze  Peter?  It  was  only against extraordinary men that he could be
judged-and  what  a  motley  crew  they  were! Drug addicts and drunkards.
Adulterers  and  traitors. Tycho Brahe had a gutta-percha nose, and no one
thought  him  the  less.  The  Reichsfuhrer  ate  no meat. Great Frederick
himself spent many hours that could have been devoted to the management of
an empire in composing music for tinkle-tanide chamber groups. He strolled
across to the computer and called, "Vera, what was that little thump a few
minutes ago?"
   The  computer paused to match the description against her telemetry. "I
cannot be sure... Mr. Hester. But the moment of inertia is consistent with
either  the  launching or docking of one of the cargo ships that have been
observed."
   He stood for a moment gripping the edge of the console seat. "Fool!" he
shouted. "Why was I not told that that was possible?"
   "I'm  sorry...  Mr.  Hester,"  she apologized. "The analysis suggesting
this  possibility  has  been  read  out  for you as hard copy. Perhaps you
overlooked it."
   "Fool," he said again, but this time he was not sure who he was talking
to.  The  ships,  of  course!  It  had  been  implicit  all along that the
production  of  the Food Factory had to go somewhere. And it had also been
implicit  that  the  ships  had  to return empty to be reloaded. For what?
Where?
   That did not matter. What mattered was the perception that perhaps they
would not always come empty.
   And, following on that, the perception that one ship at least, known to
come  to  the  Food  Factory, was now in Heechee Heaven. If it should come
back, who or what might be in it?
   Peter  rubbed his arm, which had begun to ache. Pains or none, he could
perhaps  do something about that! He had some weeks before that ship could
possibly  return. He could-what? Yes! He could barricade that corridor. He
could somehow move machines, stores-anything that had mass-to block it, so
that when it did return, if it did, whoever was in it would be stopped, or
at least delayed. And the time to begin that was now.
   He delayed no further, but set off to find materials for a barricade.
   It  was  not hard to move even quite massive objects, in the low thrust
of  the  Food  Factory. But it was tiring. And his arms continued to ache.
And in a little while, as he was shoving a blue metal object like a short,
fat  canoe  down  toward  the dock, he became aware of a strange sensation
that seemed to come from the roots of his teeth, almost like the beginning
of a toothache; and saliva began to flow from under his tongue.
   Peter  stopped and breathed deeply, forcing himself to relax. It did no
good.  He  had known it would do no good. In a few moments the pain in the
chest  began, first tentative, as though someone were pressing against him
with  a  sled  runner along his breastbone, then painful, a hard, bruising
thrust,  as  though  the  runner were on top of him and a hundred-kilo man
standing on it.
   He was too far from Vera to get medicine. He would have to wait it out.
If  it was false angina, he would live. If it was cardiac arrest, he would
not.  He  sat  patient  and still, waiting to see which it would be, while
anger built up and built up inside him. How unfair it was!
   How  unfair it all was! Five thousand astronomical units away, serenely
and untroubled, the people of the world went about their business, neither
knowing  nor  caring  that  the  person  who  could bring them so much-who
already had! -might be dying, alone and in pain.
   Could  they  be  grateful?  Could they show respect, appreciation, even
common decency?
   Perhaps  he  would  give  them  a  chance. If they responded with these
things,  yes,  he would bring them such gifts as they had never known. But
if  they were wicked and disobedient. Then Schwarze Peter would bring them
such  terrible gifts that all the world would shudder and quake with fear!
In  either  case,  they would never forget him... if only he survived what
was happening to him now.

   The  main  thing was Essie. I sat by her bed every time she came out of
surgery-fourteen  times in six weeks-and every time her voice was a little
weaker  and she looked a little more gaunt. Everybody was after me all the
time,  the  suit against me in Brasilia was going badly, reports poured in
from  the Food Factory, the fire in the food mines still would not go out.
But  Essie was up front. Harriet had her orders. Wherever I was, asleep or
awake,  if  Essie asked for me she was put through at once. "Oh, yes, Mrs.
Broadhead,  Robin will be with you right away. No, you won't be disturbing
him.  He  just  woke up from a nap." Or he's just between appointments, or
he's  just  coming up the lawn from the Tappan Sea, or anything that would
not  deter  Essie from speaking to me right away. And then I would go into
the  darkened  room, all sun-tanned and grinning and relaxed, and tell her
how  well  she  was  looking.  They had taken my billiard room and moved a
whole  operating theater into it, and cleared the books out of the library
next  door to make it a bedroom for her. She was pretty comfortable there.
Or said she was.
   And actually, she didn't look bad at all. They had done the splints and
the  bone  grafts,  and  plugged  in two or three kilos of spare parts and
tissues. They had even put the skin back, or I guess transplanted new skin
from  somebody  else.  Her face looked fine, except for a light bandage on
one  side,  and  she  brushed her streaky blonde hair down over that. "So,
stud," she would greet me. "How you hanging?"
   "Just  fine, just fine. A little horny," I would say, nuzzling her neck
with my nose. "And you?"
   "Just  fine."  So  we  reassured  each other; and we weren't lying, you
know.  She  was  getting better every day, the doctors told me that. And I
was  getting-I  don't know what I was getting. But I was all atremble with
eagerness  for every morning. Operating on five hours sleep a night. Never
tired. Never felt better in my life.
   But  still  she  kept  getting skinnier every time. The doctors told me
what I must do, and I told Harriet and Harriet reprogrammed the cook So we
stopped  having  salads  and  bare  broiled  steaks.  no  coffee and juice
breakfasts,  but tvoroznyikyi, cream-cheese pancakes, and mugs of steaming
cocoa.  Caucasian  lamb pilaff for lunch. Roast grouse in sour-cream sauce
for dinner. "You're spoiling me, dear Robin," she accused, and I said:
   "Only fattening you up. I can't stand skinny women."
   "Yes,  very  well.  But  there  is such a thing as being too ethnic. Is
there nothing fattening that is not Russian?"
   "Wait for dessert," I grinned. "Strawberry shortcake." And whipped with
double  Devonshire  cream.  As  a  matter  of  psychology,  the  nurse had
persuaded  me to start with small portions on large plates. Essie doggedly
ate  them  all  the way through, and as we gradually increased the size of
the  portions  she  gradually  ate  more  each day. She didn't stop losing
weight.  But  she  slowed  it  down a lot, and by the end of six weeks the
doctors  opined  that  her  condition,  cautiously,  might  be regarded as
stable. Nearly.
   When  I told her the good news she was actually standing up tethered to
the plumbing under her bed, but able to walk about the room. "About time,"
she  said,  reaching out to kiss me. "Now. You have been spending too much
time at home."
   "It's a pleasure," I said.
   "It is a kindness," she said soberly. "Is very dear to me that you have
always  been  here,  Robin.  But  now  that I am almost well you must have
affairs to attend to."
   "Not  really.  I  get  along fine with the comm facilities in the brain
room.  Of  course,  it  would be nice for the two of us to go somewhere. I
don't think you've ever seen Brasilia. Maybe in a few weeks..."
   "No.  Not  in few weeks. Not with me. If you have need to go, please do
it, Robin."
   I hesitated. "Well, Morton thinks it might be useful."
   She  nodded briskly and called, "Harriet? Mr. Broadhead will be leaving
for Brasilia tomorrow morning. Make reservations et cetera."
   "Certainly,  Mrs. Broadhead," Harriet said from the console at the head
of  Essie's  bed.  Her image sputtered into blackness as quickly as it had
appeared, and Essie put her arms around me.
   "I  will  see  that  you have complete communications in Brasilia," she
promised,  "and  Harriet  will  be  instructed  to  keep  you posted on my
condition  at all times. Square count, Robin. If I need you, you will know
at once."
   I said into her ear, "Well..."
   She  said  into  my  shoulder, "Is no 'well'. Is settled, and, Robin? I
love you very much."
   Albert  tells  me  that  every radio message I send is actually a long,
skinny  string of photons, like a spear thrown into space. A thirty-second
burst  communication is a column nine million kilometers long, each photon
zipping along at the speed of light, in perfect step all the way. But even
that  long,  fast,  skinny spear takes forever to go 5,000 A. U. The fever
that  had  wounded  my  wife  had  taken twenty-five days to get here. The
orders  to stop fooling with the couch had gone only a fraction of the way
before  they  passed the second fever, the one the girl Janine had laid on
us.  Lightly,  to  be sure. Our message congratulating the Herter-Halls on
arriving at the Food Factory, out somewhere past Pluto's orbit, had passed
the  one  to  tell us that most of them had gone skylarking off to Heechee
Heaven.  By  now  they were there; and our message telling them what to do
about  it was long since at the Food Factory for relay-for once two events
had occurred at times close enough to have some meaning for each other.
   But  by  the  time  we  knew what meaning they had had, the event would
again  be  twenty-five  days in the past. What an annoyance! I wanted many
things  on  the Food Factory, but what I wanted most of all at that moment
was that faster-than-light radio. Astonishing that such a thing should be!
But  when  I  charged  Albert  with being caught flat-footed by it, he had
smiled  that  gentle,  humble  smile and poked his pipestem at his ear and
said,  "Sure thing, Robin, if you mean the sort of surprise that one feels
when  an  unlikely  contingency  turns out to be real. But it was always a
contingency.  Remember.  The  Heechee  ships were able to navigate without
error to moving targets. That suggests the possibility of communication at
nearly   instantaneous   speeds   over   astronomical   distances-ergo,  a
faster-than-light radio."
   "Then why didn't you tell me about it?" I demanded.
   He  scratched  one sneakered foot against the other sockless ankle. "It
was  only  a  possibility,  Robin, estimated no more than point oh five. A
sufficient  condition,  but  not  a  necessary  one. We simply didn't have
enough evidence, until now."
   I could have been chatting with Albert on the way down to Brasilia. But
I  was  traveling  commercial-the  company aircraft aren't fast enough for
those distances-and I like having Albert where I can see him when we talk,
so  I  spent  my  time voice-only with company business and Morton. And of
course with Harriet, who was under orders to check in once an hour, except
when I was asleep, with a quick status report on Essie.
   Even  hypersonic,  a ten-thousand-kilometer flight takes a while, and I
had  time  for  a lot of business. Morton wanted as much of it as he could
get, mostly to try to talk me out of meeting with Bover. "You have to take
him  seriously,  Robin,"  be  whined  through the plug in my ear. "Bover's
represented  by  Anjelos,  Carpenter and Gutmann, and they're high-powered
people, with really good legal programs."
   "Better than you?"
   Hesitation. "Well-I hope not, Robin."
   "Tell  me  something,  Morton.  If  Bover didn't have much of a case to
begin with, why are these high-powered people bothering with him?"
   Although  I  couldn't see him, I knew that Morton would be assuming his
defensive  look, partly apologetic, partly you-laymen-wouldn't-understand.
"It's not all that weak, Robin. And it hasn't gone well for us so far. And
it's  takking on some larger dimension than we originally estimated. And I
assume that they thought their connections would patch up the weak spots-I
also  assume  that they're in for a son-of-a-bitching big contingency fee.
You'd be better advised to patch up some of our own weak spots than take a
chance  with  Bover,  Robin.  Your pal Senator Praggler is on this month's
oversight committee. Go see him first."
   "I'll  go see him, but not first," I told Morton, and cut him off as we
circled  in  for  a  landing.  I could see the big Gateway Authority tower
overshadowing the silly flat saucer over the House of Representatives, and
off  up  the  lake the bright reflections of tin roofs in the Free Town. I
had  cut  it pretty close. My date with Trish Bover's widower (or husband,
depending  on how you looked at it) was in less than an hour, and I didn't
really want to keep him waiting.
   I  didn't  have  to.  I was already sitting at a table in the courtyard
dining  room  of  the Brasilia Palace hotel when he came in. Skinny. Tall.
Balding.  He  sat  down  nervously, as if he were in a desperate hurry, or
desperately  eager  to  be somewhere else. But when I offered him lunch he
took  ten minutes to study the menu and wound up ordering all of it. Fresh
hearts of palm salad, little fresh-water shrimp from the lake, all the way
down  to  that  wonderful  raw  pineapple  flown  up from Rio. "This is my
favorite  hotel  in  Brasilia,"  I informed him genially, hostfully, as he
poured  dressing  on  the hearts of palm. "Old. But good. I suppose you've
seen all the sights?"
   "I've lived here for eight years, Mr. Broadhead."
   "Oh, I see." I hadn't known where the hell the son of a bitch lived, he
was  just  a  name  and  a  nuisance. So much for travelog. I tried common
interests.  "I  got a flash synoptic from the Food Factory on the way down
here.  The  Herter-Hall  party  is  doing well, finding out some marvelous
things.  Did you know that we've identified four of the Dead Men as actual
Gateway prospectors?"
   "I  saw  something about that on the PV, yes, Mr. Broadhead. It's quite
exciting."
   "More  than that, Bover. It can change this whole world around-and make
us  all  filthy rich, too." He nodded, his mouth full of salad. He kept on
keeping  his  mouth full, too; I wasn't doing much good trying to draw him
out.  "All  right," I said, "why don't we get down to business? I want you
to drop that injunction."
   He  chewed and swallowed. With the next forkful of shrimp poised at his
mouth he said, "I know you do, Mr. Broadhead," and refilled the mouth.
   I  took a long, slow sip of my wine and seltzer and said, with complete
control  of  my voice and manner, "Mr. Bover, I don't think you understand
what  the  issues  are. I don't mean to put you down. I just can't believe
you  have  all  the  facts.  We're  both  going  to  lose if you keep that
injunction  in  force."  I  went  over the whole case with him, with care,
exactly  as  Morton had spelled it out to me: Gateway Corp's intervention,
eminent  domain,  the  problem  of  complying with a court order when your
compliance  doesn't  get to the people it affects until a month and a half
after  they've  gone  and  done  whatever  they  were  going  to  do,  the
opportunity for a negotiated settlement. "What I'm trying to say," I said,
"is that this is really big. Too big for us to be divided. They won't fuck
around with us, Bover. They'll just go ahead and expropriate us."
   He  didn't  stop  chewing,  just listened, and then when he had nothing
more  to  chew he took a sip from his demitasse and said, "We really don't
have anything to discuss, Mr. Broadhead."
   "Of course we do!"
   "Not  unless  we both think so," he pointed out, "and I don't. You're a
little  mistaken in some of the things you say. I don't have an injunction
any more. I have a judgment."
   "Which I can get reversed in a hot..."
   "Yes,  maybe  you can. But not in a hot anything. The law will take its
course,  and  it  will  take  time.  I  won't make any deal Trish paid for
whatever comes out of this. Since she isn't around to protect her rights I
guess I have to."
   "But it's going to cost both of us!"
   "That's  as  may  be.  As  my  lawyer  says. He advised me against this
meeting."
   "Then why did you come?"
   He looked at the remains of his lunch, then out at the fountains in the
courtyard.  Three returned Gateway prospectors were sitting on the edge of
a  reflecting  pool  with  a  slightly drunk Varig stewardess, singing and
tossing  crumbs of French pastry to the goldfish. They had struck it rich.
"It makes a nice change for me, Mr. Broadhead," he said.
   Out of the window of my suite, high up in the new Palace Tower, I could
see  the  crown-of-thorns  of  the  cathedral  glinting in the sun. It was
better  than  looking  at  my  legal  program on the full-service monitor,
because  he  was  eating  me out. "You may have prejudiced our whole case,
Robin. I don't think you understand how big this is getting."
   "That's what I told Bover."
   "No,  really,  Robin. Not just Robin Broadhead, Inc., not even just the
Gateway  Corporation.  Government's  getting  into  it.  And  not just the
signatories  to  the  Gateway  Convention either. This may wind up a U. N.
matter."
   "Oh, come on, Morton! Can they do that?"
   "Of  course  they  can,  Robin. Eminent domain. Your friend Bover isn't
helping  things  any,  either.  He's petitioning for a conservator to take
over  your  personal  and  corporate  holdings in this matter, in order to
administer the exploration properly."
   The son of a bitch. He must have known that was happening while we were
eating  the  lunch  I  bought him. "What's this word 'proper'? What have I
done that was improper?"
   "Short list, Robin?" He ticked off his fingers. "One, you exceeded your
authority  by giving the Hester-Hall party more freedom of action than was
contemplated,  which,  two, led to their expedition to Heechee Heaven with
all  of  its  potential  consequences  and  thus,  three,  brought about a
situation of grave national peril. Strike that. Grave human peril."
   "That's crap, Morton!"
   "That's  the  way  he put it in the petition," he nodded, "and, yes, we
may persuade somebody it's crap. Sooner or later. But right now it's up to
the Gateway Corp to act or not."
   "Which  means I better see the Senator." I got rid of Morton and called
Harriet to ask about my appointment.
   "I can give you the Senator's secretarial program now," she smiled, and
faded  to  show a rather sketchy animation of a handsome young black girl.
It  was  quite poor simulation, nothing like the programs Essie writes for
me. But then Praggler was only a United States senator.
   "Good afternoon," she greeted me. "The Senator asks me to say that he's
in Rio de Janeiro on committee business this evening, but will be happy to
see you whenever convenient tomorrow morning. Shall we say ten o'clock?"
   "Let's  say  nine,"  I told her, somewhat relieved. I had been a little
worried  about  Praggler's failure to get back to me right away. But now I
perceived  he had a good reason: the fleshpots of Ipanema. "Harriet?" When
she came back I asked, "How's Mrs. Broadhead?"
   "No  change,  Robin,"  she  smiled.  "She's awake and available now, if
you'd like to speak to her."
   "Bet  your sweet little electronic tooshy I do," I told her. She nodded
and  drifted  away.  Harriet  is a really good program; she doesn't always
understand  the words, but she can make a yes-no decision from the tone of
my  voice,  and  so  when Essie appeared I said, "S. Ya. Lavorovna, you do
nice work."
   "To  be  sure,  dear Robin," she agreed, preening herself. She stood up
and turned slowly around. "As do our doctors, you will observe."
   It  took  a  moment for it to hit me. There were no life-support tubes!
She  wore  flesh-form  casts  on  her  left  side, but she was free of the
machines! "My God, woman, what happened?"
   "Perhaps healing has happened," she said serenely. "Although it is only
an  experiment.  The  doctors have just left, and I am to try this for six
hours. Then they will examine me again."
   "You look bloody marvelous." We chatted fill-in talk for a few minutes;
she  told me about the doctors, I told her about Brasilia, while I studied
her  as  carefully  as  I  could  in  a  PV  tank. She kept getting up and
stretching, delighting in her freedom, until she worried me. "Are you sure
you're supposed to do all that?"
   "I  have been told that I must not think of water skiing or dancing for
a while. But perhaps not everything that is fun is prohibited."
   "Essie,  you  lewd  lady, is that a lustful look I see in your eye? Are
you feeling well enough for that?"
   "Quite  well,  yes.  Well.  Not  well,"  she amplified, "but perhaps as
though  you  and I had enjoyed a hard night's drinking a day or two ago. A
little fragile. But I do not think I would be harmed by a gentle lover."
   "I'll be back tomorrow morning."
   "You  will not be back tomorrow morning," she said firmly. "You will be
back  when you are entirely through with your business in Brasilia and not
one  moment  before or else, my boy, you will not find any willing partner
for your debauched intentions here."
   I said good-bye in a rosy glow.
   Which  lasted  all  of  twenty-five  minutes,  until  I  got  around to
double-checking with the doctor.
   It  took  a little while, because she was just getting back to Columbia
Medical  when  I  called.  "I'm  sorry  to  be rushed, Mr. Broadhead," she
apologized,  shrugging  out of her gray tweed suit-coat. "I've got to show
students how to suture nerve tissue in about ten minutes."
   "You usually call me Robin, Dr. Liederman," I said, cooling off quickly.
   "Yes,  I do-Robin. Don't get worried. I don't have bad news." While she
was  talking  she was continuing to strip down, as far as brassiere level,
before putting on a turtleneck and an operating-room gown. Wilma Liederman
is  a good-looking woman of a certain age, but I was not there to ogle her
charms.
   "But you don't have good news, either?"
   "Not  yet.  You've  talked  to  Essie, so you know we're trying her out
without  the  machines. We have to know how far she can go on her own, and
we won't know that for twenty-four hours. At least I hope we won't."
   "Essie said six."
   "Six  hours  to  readouts, twenty-four to full workup. Unless she shows
bad  signs before that and has to go back on the machines right away." She
was talking to me over her shoulder, scrubbing up at her little washstand.
Holding  her  dripping  hands  in the air she came back closer to the comm
set.  "I  don't want you worrying, Robin," she said. "All this is routine.
She's  got  about a hundred transplants in her, and we have to find out if
they've  taken  hold. I wouldn't let her go this far if I didn't think the
chances were at least reasonable, Robin."
   "'Reasonable' doesn't sound real good to me, Wilma!"
   "Better  than  reasonable,  but don't push me. And don't worry, either.
You're getting regular bulletins, and you can call my program any time you
want  more-me  too, if you have to. You want odds? Two to one everything's
going  to work. A hundred to one that if something fails it's something we
can  fix.  Now I've got to transplant a complete lower genital for a young
lady who wants to be sure she still has fun afterwards."
   "I think I ought to get back there," I said.
   "For  what?  There's  nothing  you  can do but get in the way. Robin, I
promise I won't let her die before you get back." In the background the P.
A. system was chiming gently. "They're playing my song, Robin, talk to you
later."
   There  are times when I sit at the center of the world, and when I know
that  I  can reach out to any of the programs my good wife has written for
me and pull back any fact, absorb any explanation or command any event.
   There  are also times when I sit with a full console and a head full of
burning questions and learn nothing, because I do not know what to ask.
   And  there  are times when I am so full of learning and being and doing
that  the moments zip past and the days are packed, and other times when I
am  floating  in  slack  water  beside a current, and the world is sliding
speedily  by.  There was plenty to do. I didn't feel like doing it. Albert
was bursting with news from Heechee Heaven and the Food Factory. I let him
purge  himself.  But  the synoptics plopped into my mind without raising a
question   or   even  a  ripple;  when  he  was  through  reporting  about
architectural  deductions  and  interpretations of maunderings of the Dead
Men  I turned him off. It was intensely interesting, but for some reason I
was not interested by it. I ordered Harriet to let my simulacrum deal with
everything routine and tell everyone who was not urgent to call me another
time.  I  stretched out on the three-meter watercouch looking out over the
weird  Brasilia  skyline,  and  wished that it were that couch in the Food
Factory, connected to someone I loved.
   Wouldn't that be great? To be able to reach out to someone far away, as
Wan  had reached out to the whole Earth, and feel with them what they were
feeling,  let  them  feel  the  inside  of you? What a wonderful thing for
lovers!
   And  to  that  thought I reacted by calling up Morton on my console and
telling  him to look into the possibility of patenting that application of
the couch.
   It  was  not a very romantic response to a pretty romantic thought. The
difficulty  was  that  I  was not quite sure which someone I wished I were
connected  to.  My dear wife, so loved, so needful right now? Or someone a
lot farther away and much harder to reach?
   So I stagnated through the long Brazilian afternoon, with a soak in the
pool,  and  a  lounge  in the setting sun, and a lavish dinner in my suite
with  a  bottle  of  wine, and then I called Albert back to ask him what I
really wanted to know. "Albert? Where, exactly, is Kiara now?"
   He  paused,  tamping  tobacco  into his pipe and frowning. "Gelle-Kiara
Moynlin," he said at last, "is in a black hole."
   "Yes. And what does that mean?"
   He said apologetically, "That's hard to say. I mean it's hard to put in
simple terms, and also hard to say because I really don't know. Not enough
data."
   "Do your best,"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin.  I  would  say  that she is in the section of the
exploration craft which remained in orbit, just under the event horizon of
the   singularity  you  encountered-which,"  he  waved  carelessly  and  a
blackboard  appeared  behind  him, "is of course just at the Schwarzschild
radius."
   He  stood  up,  jamming the unlit pipe into the hip pocket of his baggy
cotton slacks, picked up a piece of chalk and wrote:
2GM
C2
   "At  that  boundary,  light  can't go any farther. It is what you might
think  of  as  a standing wave-front where light has gone as far as it can
go.  You  can't  see into the black hole past it. Nothing can come up from
behind  it. The symbols, of course, stand for gravity and mass-and I don't
have  to  tell  an old faster-than-light person like you what c2 is, do I?
From  the  instrumentation  you  brought  back,  it would appear that this
particular  hole  was maybe sixty kilometers in diameter, which would give
it  a mass of maybe ten times the sun. Am I telling you more than you want
to know?"
   "A   little  bit,  Albert,"  I  said,  shifting  uncomfortably  on  the
Watercouch. I wasn't really sure just what I was asking for.
   "Perhaps what you want to know is whether she is dead, Bobby," he said.
"Oh,  no.  I  don't  think  so. There's a lot of radiation around, and God
knows  what  shear  forces.  But  she hasn't had much time to be dead yet.
Depends  on her angular velocity. She might not yet even know you're gone.
Time dilation, you see. That is a consequence of..."
   "I understand about time dilation," I interrupted. And I did, because I
was  feeling  almost as though I were living through some of it. "Is there
any way we can find that out."
   "'A  black  hole has no hair,' Bobby," he quoted solemnly. "That's what
we  call the Carter-Werner-Robinson-Hawking Law, and what it means is that
the  only  information  you  get  out  of a black hole is mass, charge and
angular momentum. Nothing else."
   "Unless you get inside it, the way she did."
   "Well,  yes,  Robby,"  he  admitted,  sitting down and attending to his
pipe. Long pause. Puff, puff. Then, "Robin?"
   "Yes, Albert?"
   He  looked  abashed,  or  as abashed as a holographic construct can. "I
haven't  been entirely fair with you," he said. "There is some information
that  comes  out  of black holes. But that gets us into quantum mechanics.
And it doesn't do you any good, either. Not for your purposes."
   I  didn't  really  like  having  a  computer  program  tell  me what my
"purposes"  were. Especially since I wasn't all that sure myself. "Tell me
about it!" I ordered.
   "Well-we  don't really know a lot. Goes back to Stephen Hawking's first
principles.  He  pointed out that, in a sense, a black hole can be said to
have  a  'temperature'-which implies some kind of radiation. Some kinds of
particles  do  escape. But not from the kinds of black holes that interest
you, Robby."
   "What kind do they escape from?"
   "Well, mostly from the tiny ones, the ones with the mass of, say, Mount
Everest.  Submicroscopic ones. No bigger than a nuclear particle. They get
real  hot,  a  hundred  billion  Kelvin  and up. The smaller they get, the
faster  the quantum tunneling goes on, the hotter they get-so they keep on
getting  smaller and hotter until they just blow up. Big ones, no. It goes
the  other way. The bigger they are, the more infall they get to replenish
their  mass,  and  the harder it is for a particle to tunnel out. One like
Kiara's  has  a  temperature probably down around a hundred millionth of a
Kelvin, which is really cold, Robin. And getting colder all the time."
   "So you don't get out of one of those."
   "Not any way I know about, no, Robin. Does that answer your questions?"
   "For  now," I said, dismissing him. And it did, all but one: Why was it
that when he was talking to me about Kiara he called me "Robby"?
   Essie wrote good programs, but it seemed to me that they were beginning
to  overlap. I used to have a program that addressed me by childhood names
from  time to time. But it was a psychiatric program. I reminded myself to
speak  to  Essie  about  straightening  out  her  programming,  because  I
certainly  did  not  feel  I  had any need for the services of Sigfrid von
Shrink now.
   Senator Praggler's temporary office wasn't in the Gateway tower, but on
the  96th  floor  of the legislators' office building. A courtesy from the
Brazilian  Congress  to  a colleague, and a flattering one, because it was
only  two  stories  below the top. In spite of the fact that I got up with
the  dawn,  I  got  there  a  couple  minutes  late.  I had spent the time
wandering  around  the  early  morning  city,  ducking  under the overhead
roadways,  coming out in the parking lot. Strolling. I was still in a sort
of temporary stasis of time.
   But  Praggler  shook  me  out  of it, all charged-up and beaming. "It's
wonderful  news, Robin!" he cried, pulling me into his office and ordering
coffee. "Jesus! How stupid we've all been!"
   For  a  moment I thought he meant that Bover had dropped his suit. That
only  showed how stupid I was still being; what he was talking about was a
late  flash from the Food Factory relay. The long-sought Heechee books had
turned  out  to  be  the  prayer fans that we had all seen for decades. "I
thought  you'd  have  known  all  about  it,"  he  apologized, when he had
finished filling me in.
   "I've been out walking," I said. It was pretty disconcerting for him to
be  telling  me  about  something  as big as that on my own project. But I
recover  fast.  "Seems  to  me,  Senator,"  I said, "that's a big plus for
vacating that injunction."
   He  grinned.  "You  know, I could have guessed it would strike you that
way. Anything would. Mind telling me how you figure that?"
   "Well,  it  looks  clear  to  me.  What's  the  biggest  purpose of the
expedition?  Knowledge about the Heechee. And now we find out that there's
a lot of it lying around, just waiting for us to pick it up."
   He frowned. "We don't know how to decode the damn things."
   "We  will.  Now  that  we know what they are, we'll figure out a way to
make  them work. We've got the revelation. All we need is the engineering.
We  ought to..." I stopped myself in the middle of a sentence. I was going
to  say that it was a good idea to start buying up every prayer fan on the
market,  but  that  was too good an idea to give even a friend. I switched
to,  "We  ought  to get results pretty fast. The point is, the Herter-Hall
expedition isn't our only iron in the fire any more, so any argument about
national interests loses a lot of weight."
   He  accepted a cup of coffee from his secretary, the real-live one that
didn't  look a bit like his program, and then shrugged. "It's an argument.
I'll tell it to the committee."
   "I was hoping you'd do more than that, Senator."
   "If you mean you want the whole thing dropped, Robin, I don't have that
authority. I'm only here to oversee the committee. For one month. I can go
home  and raise hell in the Senate, and maybe I will, but that's the limit
of it."
   "And what's the committee going to do? Will they uphold Bover's claim?"
   He hesitated. "I think it's worse than that. I think the sentiment's to
expropriate  you  all. Then it's a Gateway Corporation matter, which means
it sticks there until the signatories to the treaty unstick it. Of course,
in the long run, you'll all get reimbursed..."
   I slammed the cup back into its saucer. "Fuck the reimbursement! Do you
think I'm in this for the money?"
   Praggler is a pretty close friend. I know he likes me, and I even think
he trusts me, but there wasn't any friendly look on his face when he said,
"Sometimes  I wonder just why you are in it, Robin." He looked at me for a
moment  without  expression. I knew he knew about me and Kiara, and I also
knew  he'd  been a guest at Essie's table at Tappan. "I'm sorry about your
wife's illness," he said at last. "I hope she's all better real soon."
   I stopped in his outer office to make a quick coded call to Harriet, to
tell  her  to get my people started buying every prayer fan they could get
their  hands  on.  She had about a million messages, but I would only take
one-and all that said was that Essie had passed a quiet night and would be
seeing  the  doctors  in  about  an hour. I didn't have time for the rest,
because I had somewhere to go.
   It  is  not  easy to get a taxi in front of the Brazilian Congress; the
doormen  have  their  orders,  and  they know who rates priority. I had to
climb  up  on  the roadway and flag one down. Then, when I gave the driver
the  address,  he made me repeat it twice, and then show it to him written
down.  It  wasn't  my  bad Portuguese. He didn't really want to go to Free
Town.
   So  we  drove  out  past  the  old cathedral, under the immense Gateway
tower,  along  the congested boulevard and out into the open planalto. Two
kilometers  of  it.  That  was  the  green space, the cordon sanitaire the
Brazilians  defended around their capital city; but just beyond it was the
shantytown.  As soon as we entered it I rolled the window up. I grew up in
the  Wyoming  food mines and I am used to twenty-four-hour stink, but this
was  a  different  stink.  Not  just  the stench of oil. This was open-air
toilets  and  rotting  garbage-two million people without running water in
their  homes.  The  shanties  had  sprung  up  in  the first place to give
construction  workers a place to live while they built the beautiful dream
city.  They  were  supposed  to  disappear  when  the  city  was finished.
Shantytowns never disappear. They only become institutionalized.
   The  taxi-driver  pushed  his  cab through nearly a kilometer of narrow
alleys,  muttering to himself, never faster than a crawl. Goats and people
moved  slowly out of our way. Little kids jabbered at me as they ran along
beside  us.  I  made  him  take me to the exact place, and get out and ask
where  Senhor  Hanson  Bover  lived,  but  before he found out I saw Bover
himself sitting on cinder-block steps attached to a rusty old mobile home.
As  soon  as  I  paid him, the driver backed around and left, a lot faster
than we had come, and by then he was swearing out loud.
   Bover  did  not  stand  up as I came toward him. He was chewing on some
kind  of  sweet  roll, and didn't stop doing that, either. He just watched
me.
   By  the  standards  of  the  barrio,  he  lived in a mansion. Those old
trailers  had two or three rooms inside, and he even had a little patch of
something  or  other green growing alongside the step. The top of his head
was  bare  and  sunburned,  and  he was wearing dirty denim cut-offs and a
tee-shirt  printed  with something in Portuguese that I didn't understand,
but  looked  dirty  too.  He swallowed and said, "I would offer you lunch,
Broadhead, but I'm just finishing eating it."
   "I  don't  want  lunch.  I want to make a deal. I'll give you fifty per
cent  of  my interest in the expedition plus a million dollars cash if you
drop your suit."
   He  stroked  the top of his head gingerly. It struck me strange that he
got  burned  so  fast, because I hadn't noticed sunburn the day before-but
then  I  realized I hadn't noticed baldness, either. He had been wearing a
toupee. All dressed up for his mingling with class society. No difference.
I  didn't like the man's manners, and I didn't like the growing cluster of
audience around us, either. "Can we talk this over inside?" I asked.
   He  didn't  answer.  He  just pushed the last bite of the roll into his
mouth and chewed it while he looked at me.
   That was enough of that. I squeezed past him and climbed the steps into
the house.
   The  first  thing  that  hit me was the stink-worse than outside, oh, a
hundred  times worse. Three walls of the room were taken up with stacks of
cages, and breeding rabbits in every cage. What I smelled was rabbit shit,
kilos  of  it.  And  not just from rabbits. There was a baby with a soiled
diaper  being  nursed in the arms of a skinny young woman. No. A girl; she
looked fifteen at the most. She stared up worriedly at me, but didn't stop
nursing.
   So  this  was the dedicated worshipper at his wife's shrine! I couldn't
help it. I laughed out loud.
   Coming  inside  had  not  been  such a good idea. Bover followed me in,
pulling  the  door  shut,  and the stink intensified. He was not impassive
now, he was angry. "I see you don't approve of my living arrangements," he
said.
   I shrugged. "I didn't come here to talk about your sex life."
   "No. Nor do you have any right to. You wouldn't understand."
   I  tried  to  keep the conversation where I wanted it to be. "Bover," I
said,  "I  made  you  an  offer  which is better than you'll ever get in a
court,  and  a lot more than you had any reason to hope for. Please accept
it, so I can go ahead with what I'm doing."
   He  didn't answer me directly that time, either, just said something to
the  girl  in  Portuguese. She got up silently, wrapped a cloth around the
baby's  bottom,  and  went out on the steps, closing the door again behind
her.  Bover  said,  as though he hadn't heard me, "Trish has been gone for
more  than eight years, Mr. Broadhead. I still love her. But I've only got
one  life to live and I know what the odds are against ever sharing any of
it with Trish again."
   "If we can figure out how to run the Heechee ships properly we might be
able  to  go out and find Trish," I said. I didn't pursue that; all it was
doing  was  making  him  look  at  me  with active hostility, as though he
thought I were trying to con him. I said,
   "A  million  dollars,  Bover.  You  can  be  out of this place tonight.
Forever.  With your lady and your baby and your rabbits, too. Full Medical
for all of them. A future for the kid."
   "I told you you wouldn't understand, Broadhead."
   I  checked myself and only said, "Then make me understand. Tell me what
I don't know."
   He  picked  a  soiled baby dress and a couple of pins off the chair the
girl  had  been  sitting  on.  For a moment I thought he had relapsed into
hospitality, but he sat there himself and said, "Broadhead, I've lived for
eight  years on welfare. Brazilian welfare. If we hadn't raised rabbits we
wouldn't  have  had  meat. If we didn't sell the skins I wouldn't have bus
fare  to  meet  you  for  lunch, or to go to my lawyer's office. A million
dollars won't pay me for that, or for Trish."
   I  was still trying to keep my temper, but the stink was getting to me,
and  so was his attitude. I switched strategies. "Do you have any sympathy
for your neighbors, Bover? Do you want to see them helped? We can end this
kind  of  poverty  forever, Bover, with Heechee technology. Plenty of food
for everybody! Decent places to live!"
   He said patiently, "You know as well as I do that the first things that
come  from  Heechee  technology-any  technology  don't go to people in the
barrio.  They  go to make rich people like you richer. Oh, maybe sooner or
later  it might all happen, but when? In time to make any difference to my
neighbors?"
   "Yes! If I can make it happen faster I will!"
   He nodded judgmatically. "You say you will do that. I know I will, if I
get control. Why should I trust you?"
   "Because  I  give  you  my  word, you stupid shit! Why do you think I'm
cutting corners?"
   He leaned back and looked up at me. "As to that," he said, "why, yes, I
think  I  know why you're in such a hurry. It doesn't have much to do with
my  neighbors  or  me.  My  lawyers  have  researched you quite carefully,
Broadhead, and I know all about your girl on Gateway."
   I  couldn't  help  it.  I  exploded. "If you know that much," I yelled,
"then you know I want to get her out of where I put her! And I'll tell you
this, Bover, I'm not going to let you and your jailbait whore keep me from
trying!"
   His  face  was  suddenly  as red as the top of his head. "And what does
your wife think about what you're doing?" he asked nastily.
   "Why  don't  you  ask her yourself? If she lives long enough for you to
hassle  her.  Fuck  you,  Bover,  I'm going. How do I get a taxi?" He only
grinned  at  me.  Meanly.  I  brushed past the woman on the stoop and left
without looking back.
   By  the time I got back to the hotel I knew what he was grinning about.
It had been explained to me by two hours of waiting for a bus, in a square
next  to  an open latrine. I won't even say what riding that bus was like.
I've  traveled  in  worse  ways,  but not since I left Gateway. There were
knots  of  people in the hotel lobby, and they looked at me strangely as I
walked  across  the  floor.  Of course, they all knew who I was. Everybody
knew  about the Herter-Halls, and my picture had been on the PV along with
theirs. I had no doubt that I looked peculiar, sweated, and still furious.
   My  console was a fireworks display of attention signals when I slammed
myself  into my suite. The first thing I had to do was go to the bathroom,
but  over my shoulder, through the open door, I called: "Harriet! Hold all
messages  for  a  minute  and  give  me  Morton.  One  way. I don't want a
response,  I just want to give an order." Morton's little face appeared in
the  corner  of the display, looking antsy but ready. "Morton, I just came
from  Bover. I said everything I could think of to him and it did no good,
so  I  want  you to get me private detectives. I want to search his record
like  it's  never  been searched before. The son of a bitch must have done
something  wrong.  I want to blackmail him. If it's a ten-year-old parking
ticket,  I  want  to  extradite  him  for it. Get busy on that." He nodded
silently,  but  didn't  go away, meaning that he was doing what I had said
but wanted to say something himself, if only I would let him. Over him was
the  larger,  waiting face of Harriet, counting out the minute's silence I
had  imposed  on  her.  I  came  back  into the room and said, "All right,
Harriet, let's have it. Top priority first, one at a time."
   "Yes,  Robin,  but..."  She hesitated, making swift evaluations. "Their
are  two  immediate  ones, Robin. First, Albert Einstein wishes to discuss
with you the capture of the Herter-Hall party, apparently by the Heechee."
   "Captured!  Why  the  hell  didn't  you..."  I  stopped;  obviously she
couldn't  have  told  me,  because I was out of communication entirely for
most  of the afternoon. She didn't wait for me to figure that out but went
on:
   "However,  I  think  you would prefer to receive Dr. Liederman's report
first, Robin. I've been putting through a call, and she's ready to talk to
you now, live."
   That stopped me.
   "Do it," I said, but I knew it couldn't be anything good, to make Wilma
Liederman  report live and in person. "What's the matter?" I asked as soon
as she appeared.
   She was wearing an evening dress, with an orchid on her shoulder, first
time I had seen her like that since she came to our wedding. "Don't panic,
Robin,"  she  said,  "but  Essie's  had  a  slight  setback.  She's on the
life-support machines again."
   "What?"
   "It's  not  as  bad as it sounds. She's awake, and coherent, feeling no
pain, her condition is stable. We can keep her like that forever..."
   "Get to the 'but'!"
   "But  she's  rejecting  the  kidney,  and  the tissues around it aren't
regenerating.  She  needs a whole new batch of transplants. She had uremic
failure about two hours ago and now she's on fulltime dialysis. That's not
the  worst  part.  She's  had so many bits and pieces stuck in her from so
many sources that her auto-immune system is all screwed up. We're going to
have to scrounge to get a tissue match, and even so we're going to have to
dope her with anti-immunes for a long time."
   "Shit! That's right out of the Dark Ages!"
   She  nodded.  "Usually we can get a four-four match, but not for Essie.
Not  this time. She's a rare-blood to begin with, you know. She's Russian,
and her types are uncommon in this part of the world, so..."
   "Get some from Leningrad, for Christ's sake!"
   "So,  I was about to say, I've checked tissue banks all over the world.
We can come close. Real close. But in her present state there's still some
risk."
   I looked at her carefully, trying to figure out her tone. "Of having to
do  it over, you mean?" She shook her head gently. "You mean, of-of dying?
I don't believe you! What the hell is Full Medical for?"
   "Robin-she already has died of this, you know. We had to reanimate her.
There's a limit to the shock she can survive."
   "Then  the  hell  with the operation! You said she's stable the way she
is!"
   Wilma  looked  at the hands clasped in her lap for a moment, then up at
me. "She's the patient, Robin, not you."
   "What's that supposed to mean?"
   "It's her decision. She has already decided she doesn't want to be tied
down to a life-support system forever. We're going to go in again tomorrow
morning."
   I  sat  there  staring  at  the  tank,  long after Wilma Liedermari had
disappeared  and  my  patient  secretarial  program  had  formed, silently
waiting  for  orders. "Uh, Harriet," I said at last, "I want a flight back
tonight."
   "Yes,  Robin,"  she  said.  "I've already booked you. There's no direct
flight tonight, but there's one that you can transfer at Caracas, gets you
in to New York about five AM. The surgery is not scheduled until eight."
   "Thank  you."  She went back to silent waiting. Morton's silly face was
still  there  in  the  tank,  too,  tiny and reproachful down in the lower
right-hand  corner. He did not speak, but every once in a while he cleared
his  throat  or swallowed to let me know he was waiting. "Morton," I said,
"didn't I tell you to get lost?"
   "I  can't  do  that, Robin. Not while I have an unresolved dilemma. You
gave orders about Mr. Bover..."
   "Damn  right  I did. If I can't handle him that way maybe I'll just get
him killed."
   "You  don't  have  to  bother," Morton said quickly. "There's a message
from his lawyers for you. He has decided to accept your offer."
   I  goggled  at  him, wide-eyed and open-mouthed. "I don't understand it
either,  Robin,  and  neither  do his lawyers," he said quickly. "They are
quite  upset  But  there  is  a  personal  message for you, if it explains
anything."
   "What's that?"
   "Quote, 'Maybe he does understand after all.' Close quote."
   In  a  somewhat confusing life, and one that is rapidly becoming a long
one,  I've  had a lot of confusing days, but that one was special. I ran a
hot  tub  and soaked in it for half an hour, trying to make my mind empty.
The effort didn't bring calm.
   I  had three hours before the Caracas plane left. I didn't know what to
do with it. It was not that there wasn't plenty for me to do. Harriet kept
trying  to  get  my  attention-Morton  to firm up the contract with Bover,
Albert  to  discuss  the bioanalysis of the Heechee droppings somebody had
collected,  everybody to talk to me, about everything. I didn't want to do
any  of  them.  I  was  stuck in my dilated time, watching the world flash
past. But it didn't flash, it crept. I didn't know what to do about it. It
was nice that Bover thought I understood so well. I wondered what he would
take to explain what I understood to me.
   After  a  while  I  managed to work up enough energy to let Harriet put
through  some  of  the  decision-needed  calls  for  me,  and  I made what
decisions  seemed necessary; and a while after that, toying with a bowl of
crackers and milk, I listened to a news summary. It was full of talk about
the  Herter-Hall capture, all of which I could get better from Albert than
from the PV newscasters.
   And  at  that  point I remembered that Albert had wanted to talk to me,
and  for a moment I felt better. It gave me a point and purpose in living.
I  had someone to yell at. "Halfwit," I snapped at him as he materialized,
"magnetic tapes are a century old. How come you can't read them?"
   He  looked  at me calmly under his bushy white brows. "You're referring
to  the  so-called  'prayer fans', aren't you, Robin? Of course we did try
that,  many times. We even suspected that there might be a synergy, and so
we tried several kinds of magnetic fields at once, steady and oscillating,
oscillating  at  different  rates  of  speed.  We  even tried simultaneous
microwave radiation, though, as it turned out, the wrong kind..."
   I  was  still  bemused, but not so much so that I didn't pick up on the
implication. "You mean there's a right kind?"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin,"  he  grinned. "Once we got a good trace from the
Herter-Hall  instrumentation  we  just  duplicated  it. The same microwave
radiation  that's  ambient in the Food Factory, a flux of a few microwatts
of  elliptically  polarized  million-A  microwave.  And  then  we  get the
signal."
   "Bloody marvelous, Albert! And what is it you got?"
   "Uh,  well,"  he said, reaching for his pipe, "actually not a lot, yet.
It's  hologram-stored  and  time-dependent,  so  what  we get is a kind of
choppy cloud of symbols. And, of course, we can't read any of the symbols.
It's  Heechee language, you know. But now it's just straight cryptography,
so to speak. All we need is a Rosetta stone."
   "How long?"
   He shrugged, and spread his hands, and twinkled.
   I  thought for a moment. "Well, stay with it. Another thing. I want you
to read into my lawyer program the whole thing, the microwave frequencies,
schematics, everything. There ought to be a patent in there somewhere, and
I want it."
   "Sure thing, Robin. Uh. Would you like to hear about the Dead Men?"
   "What about the Dead Men?"
   "Well,"  he  said,  "not  all  of them are human. There are some pretty
strange  little minds in those storage circuits, Robin. I think they might
be what you call the Old Ones."
   The back of my neck prickled. "Heechee?"
   "No,  no,  Robin!  Almost human. But not. They don't use language well,
especially  what seem to be the earliest of them, and I bet you can't even
guess  the computer-time bill you're going to get for analysis and mapping
to make any sense of them at all."
   "My God! Essie'll be thrilled when..."
   I stopped. For a moment I had forgotten about Essie.
   "Well,"  I said, "that's-interesting. What else is there to tell?" But,
really,  I  didn't care. I had used up my own last jolt of adrenaline, and
there wasn't any more.
   I  let  him tell me the rest of his budget of conversation, but most of
it  rolled right off me. Three members of the Herter-Hall party were known
to  be  captured.  The  Heechee had brought them to a spindle-shaped place
where  some  old machinery was lying about. The cameras were continuing to
return  frames  of  nothing  very exciting. The Dead Men had gone haywire,
were making no sense at all. Paul Hall's whereabouts were unknown; perhaps
he  was  still  at  liberty.  Perhaps he was still alive. The haywire link
between  the  Dead Men's radio and the Food Factory was still functioning,
but  it  was  not  clear how long it would last-even if it had anything to
tell  us.  The  organic  chemistry of the Heechee was quite surprising, in
that it was less unlike human biochemistry than one might guess. I let him
talk until he ran down, not prompting him to continue, then turned back to
the  commercial  PV. It bad two rapid-fire comedians delivering bellylaugh
lines  to  each  other.  Unfortunately,  it  was  in Portuguese. It didn't
matter.  I still had an hour to kill, and I let it run. If nothing else, I
could  admire  the  pretty  Carioca, fruit salad in her hair, whose scanty
costume the comedians were tweaking off as they passed her back and forth,
giggling.
   Harriet's attention signal lighted up, bright red.
   Before  I  could  make  up my mind to respond, the picture slid off the
commercial   PV  channel  and  a  man's  voice  said  something  stern  in
Portuguese.  I  couldn't  understand  a  word  of it, but I understood the
picture that showed almost at once.
   It  was  the  Food  Factory,  taken  out  of  stock,  a  shot  from the
Herter-Halls  as  they  were  approaching  it  to  dock.  And in the short
sentence  the  announcer  had  spoken  were two words that could have been
"Peter Herter".
   Could have been.
   Were.
   The  picture  didn't change, but a voice began, and it was old Herter's
voice,  angry  and firm. "This message," it said, "is to be broadcast over
all networks at once. It is a two-hour warning. In two hours I am going to
cause  a  one-minute  attack  of  the  fever  by  entering  the  couch and
projecting  the  necessary,  uh,  projections.  I  tell  you  all  to take
precautions.  If  you  do  not,  it  is your responsibility, not mine." It
paused  for  a  moment, then resumed. "Remember, you have two hours from a
count  which  I  will  give  you. no more. Shortly after that I will speak
again  to  tell  you  the  reason for this, and what I demand as my proper
right  if  you  do  not  wish  this  to  happen  many  times.  Two  hours.
Beginning... now."
   And the voice stopped.
   The  announcer came back on, babbling in Portuguese, looking scared. It
didn't matter that I couldn't understand what he was saying.
   I had understood what Peter Herter had said, very well. He had repaired
the  dreaming  couch  and  was going to use it. Not out of ignorance, like
Wan. Not as a quick experiment, like the girl, Janine. He was going to use
it  as  a  weapon.  He  had a gun pointed at the heads of the entire human
race.
   And my first thought was: So much for the deal with Bover. Gateway Corp
was sure to take over now, and I couldn't blame them.

   The  Oldest  One  bestirred  himself slowly, one organ at a time. First
came  the  piezophonic  external  receptors.  Call  them "ears". They were
always  "on", in the sense that sounds always reached them. Their tiny rag
crystals  were squeezed by vibrations in the air and, when the patterns of
sound  corresponded  to the name the children of the Oldest One called him
by,  they  passed  a gate and went on to activate what corresponded to his
peripheral nervous system.
   At  that  point the Oldest One was not yet awake, but knew he was being
wakened.  His  true  ears,  the  inner  ones that analyzed and interpreted
sound,  came  to  life.  His  cognitive  circuits sampled the signals. The
Oldest  One heard the voices of his children and understood what they were
saying.  But  only  in an offhand and inattentive way, like a drowsy human
aware of the buzzing of a fly. He had not yet "opened his eyes".
   Some  decision-making  took  place  at  that stage. If the interruption
seemed  worthwhile,  the  Oldest One woke further circuits. If not, not. A
human  sleeper  may  awaken  enough to swat a fly. When the Oldest One was
awakened  for trivial reasons he had ways to "swat" his children. They did
not  wake him lightly. But if he decided to wake further, either to act or
to punish the interruption to his sleep, the Oldest One then activated his
major   external   optics,   and   with   them   a   whole   congeries  of
information-processing  systems and short-term memories. He was then fully
awake, like a man looking up at the ceiling after a nap.
   The Oldest One's internal clocks told him that this nap had been rather
short.  Less  than  ten  years.  Unless  there  was a good reason for this
awakening, someone would have to be swatted.
   By  then  the  Oldest  One  was fully aware of his surroundings, all of
them.  His internal telemetry was receiving status reports from all of its
remote  sensors,  all through the ten million ton mass in which he and his
children  lived.  A  hundred  inputs  recirculated  through his short-term
memory:  the  words  that had wakened him; the image of the three captives
his children had just brought him; a breakdown in repair facilities in the
4700 A sections; the fact that there was unusual activity among the stored
intelligences; temperatures; inventories; moments of thrust. His long-term
storage, though dormant, was accessible at need.
   The wisest of his children was standing before him, with beads of sweat
trickling  through  the sparse hairs on his cheeks and lip. The Oldest One
perceived  that this was a new leader, shorter and younger than the one he
remembered  from  ten  years  before,  but he wore the necklace of reading
scrolls  that  symbolized the office as he waited for judgment. The Oldest
One turned his major external lenses on him as a signal to speak. "We have
captured  intruders  and brought them to you," the leader said, and added,
trembling, "Have we done well?"
   The  Oldest  One  turned his attention to observe the captives. One was
not  an  intruder,  but  the  pup  he had allowed to be born fifteen years
before, now nearly grown. The other two, however, were strangers, and both
female. That presented an option worth pondering. When the other intruders
had presented themselves, he had failed to take advantage of the chance to
establish  new  breeding  stock  until  it  was  too  late  for any of the
available specimens. And then they had stopped coming.
   That  was  a  chance  the  Oldest One had missed, and one which, on the
basis  of  past  terrifying experience, he should not have failed to take.
The  Oldest  One  was aware that for some thousands of years his judgments
had  not  been  always  right,  his  opinions  no longer confident. He was
slowing  down.  He  was subject to error. The Oldest One did not know what
personal  penalty  he would have to pay for error and did not want to find
out.
   He  began  to  make decisions. He reached into his long-term memory for
precedents  and  prospects,  and  found that he had a satisfying number of
alternatives.  He  activated  mobility  and  handling effectors. His great
metal  body  rose  on  its  supports and moved past the leader, toward the
chamber  where  the  intruders  were being kept He heard the gasp from his
children  as  he  moved. All were startled. A few of the younger ones, who
had  never  seen him move as adults, were terrified. "You have done well,"
he judged, and there was a long sigh of relief.
   The  Oldest  One  could  not enter the chamber because of his size, but
with  long, soft-metal feelers he reached inside and touched the captives.
It  did not interest him that they screamed and struggled. His interest at
that  moment was only in their physical state. That was very satisfactory:
two  of them, including the male, were quite young, and therefore good for
many  years  of  use. In whatever fashion he might decide to use them. All
seemed in good health.
   As  far  as  communicating  with them went, there was the nuisance that
their  yells  and  imprecations  were in one of those unpleasant languages
their  predecessors  had used. The Oldest One did not understand one word.
That  was not a real problem, because he could always talk to them through
the  intervention  of the stored intelligences of their predecessors. Even
his  own  children, over the centuries, tended to evolve their language so
that he could not have talked to them, either, if he had not stored one or
two  of  them  every  dozen  generations  as  translators-as  nothing  but
translators, because the Oldest One's children regrettably did not seem to
be much use for anything else. So such problems could be solved. Meanwhile
the  facts  were  favorable.  Fact:  The specimens were in good condition.
Fact: They were clearly intelligent, tool-using, even technological. Fact:
They were his to employ as he saw fit.
   "Feed  them.  Keep  them  secure.  Wait  for  further instructions," he
commanded  the  children  clustered  behind  him.  He then turned down his
external  receptors  so  that  he  could consider just how to employ these
intruders in the furtherance of the imperatives that were the central core
of his very long life.
   As  a  personality  stored  in  a machine, the Oldest One's normal life
expectancy  was  very  great-perhaps as much as several thousand years-but
not  great  enough  to carry out his plans. He had extended it by diluting
it.  In  standby  mode he hardly aged at all. So he spent most of his time
powered-down,  motionless.  He  was  not  resting  at such times, not even
dreaming.  He was merely abiding, while his children lived their lives and
carried out his will and the astrophysical events outside crept sluggishly
forward.
   From  time  to  time  he  woke at the urging of his internal clocks, to
check  and  correct and revise. At other times his children woke him. They
were  instructed  to do so at need, and very often (though not really very
by any standard other than his own) the need arose.
   Time was when the Oldest One was a flesh-and-blood creature, as much an
animal  as his present children or the captives they had brought him. That
time  had been very short indeed, less than a nap, from the moment when he
was expelled from his mother's sweated and straining loins to the terrible
time  at  its end, lying helpless as strange needles poured sleep into his
veins  and  the  whirling  knives  waited  to  trepan  his skull. He could
remember  that  time  quite  clearly  when  he  chose.  He  could remember
anything,  in  that  short  life  or  in  the  long,  long pseudolife that
followed, provided only that he could remember where to look for it in his
stored memories. And that he could not always remember. There was too much
stored.
   The  Oldest  One  had  no  clear conception of how many memories he had
available  to  him, or of how much time had passed, one way or another. Or
even  of where things were. This place where he and his children dwelt was
"Here".  That  certain other place that figured so largely in his thoughts
was "There". Everything else in the universe was merely "Everywhere else",
and  he  did  not trouble to locate points as they related to one another.
Where  did  the  intruders  come from? From somewhere or other. It did not
matter exactly where. Where was the food source that the boy visited? Some
other  somewhere.  Where had his people come from, in the long ages before
he  himself  had been born? It didn't matter. The central Here had existed
for  a  long,  long  time-longer  than  one could comprehend, even for the
Oldest  One  himself. Here had sailed through space since it was built and
outfitted  and  launched; Here had seen many births and deaths-nearly five
million  of them-though at no one time did it hold more than a few hundred
living  things,  and  seldom more than a few score. Here had seen constant
slow  changes  through  all  that  time. The newborns were larger, softer,
fatter, and more helpless as time went on. The adults were taller, slower,
less  hairy. Here had often seen rapid changes, as well. At such times the
children were well advised to wake the Oldest One.
   Sometimes  the  changes  were  political,  for Here had held a thousand
different  social systems, one at a time. There were spans of a generation
or  two,  or  even of centuries, when the existing culture was sensate and
hedonistic, or puritanically stark; when one individual became a despot or
a  divinity,  or  when none rose above any other at all. There was never a
democratic republic like those Earth had tried-Here was not big enough for
representative government-and only once a racially stratified society. (It
ended  when the dun-furred lowers rose against the chocolate-furred uppers
and  wiped  them out for good.) There had been many ideologies Here, and a
various  collection  of moralities, but only one religion-at least, in the
last  many  millennia.  There  was  only room for one, when its living god
rested  among the children all the days of their lives, and awoke to smite
or favor when it chose.
   For  many  eons  Here  held no true people at all, only a collection of
puzzled  semisentients confronted with challenges that had been engineered
to  make  them  wise.  The  process worked. Only slowly. It took a hundred
thousand  years  before the first of them comprehended even the concept of
writing, nearly half a million more before one was found to be wise enough
to  be trusted with real work to do. That honor had gone to the Oldest One
himself. It had not been welcome. no other had earned it since.
   And  that,  too,  was  a  failing,  the Oldest One knew. Somehow he had
failed, what had he done wrong?
   Surely  he  had done his best! He had always, particularly in the first
few  centuries  of his machine-bodied afterlife, been diligent and careful
in supervising every act of the children. When they did wrong he punished.
When they did well he praised. Always he cared for their needs.
   But  perhaps  that  was where he had gone wrong. There had been a time,
long  and  long  ago,  when  he had awakened with a terrible "pain" in the
metal  carapace  he  dwelt  within.  It was not the pain of flesh, but the
sensors'  report  of  unacceptable  physical  damage;  but it was quite as
alarming.  His  children  were  gathered around in terror, all shouting at
once  as  they  displayed to him the hacked-dead corpse of a young female.
"She was insane!" they cried, quaking. "She tried to destroy you!"
   The  Oldest  One's  quick check of systems revealed that the damage was
trivial.  It  had  been an explosive of some sort, and all it had cost him
was  a  few  effectors  and some destruction of control nets, nothing that
could  not  be  repaired.  He  asked  to know why she had done this. Their
answers  came  only  slowly,  for they were terrified, but they came: "She
wanted us to destroy you. She said you were damaging us, and that we could
not  grow  without  you.  We  beg forgiveness! We know we did wrong by not
killing her sooner!"
   "You  did  wrong,"  the  Oldest  One said justly, "but that was not the
reason. If any such person appears among you again you are to awaken me at
once. He may be restrained if it is necessary. But he may not be killed."
   And  then-was  it  a few centuries later? It seemed only the wink of an
eye.  And then there had been the time when they had not awakened him soon
enough.  For  a dozen generations they had failed to observe the laws, and
the  reproductive  budgets  had  not been met, and the total census of his
living  children  was  down to four individuals before they dared risk his
displeasure  by  waking  him. Well, they felt it. That had nearly been the
end  of all plans, because only one of the four was a female, and she near
the  end  of  child-bearing.  He  had used a dozen years of his life then,
waking  fretfully  every few months, disciplining, teaching-worrying. With
the  help  of  biological  lore  stored deep in his oldest memories he had
insured  that  the two babies the female managed to bear were also female.
With  stored  sperm  from  the  terrified  males  he kept the gene pool as
diverse  as  he  could.  But it was a near thing. And some things had been
forever  lost.  no  other would-be assassin had ever risen against him. If
only one would! no other like himself had ever appeared.
   The  Oldest One recognized that he had no real hope there would ever be
another  from  his  children. If it could happen, it would have. There had
been time. Ten thousand generations of his children had been born and died
since then, over a span of a quarter of a million years.
   When the Oldest One moved again, all his children jumped too. They knew
he would act. They did not know what the actions would be.
   "The  repair mechanisms in the 4700 A corridors are to be replaced," he
said.  "Three  artificers  see to it" There was a stilled murmur of relief
from the seventy-odd adults-punishment always came first, and if his first
orders  were not punishment then there would be none. This time. The three
artificers  the  leader  pointed to were less relieved, because that meant
some  days  of  very  hard  work  in manhandling new machines to the green
corridors and bringing back the old for repair; but it was their excuse to
get  away  from  the  awful  presence  of  the  Oldest One. They seized it
immediately.
   "The  male intruder and the older female are to be penned together," he
said.  If  they  were to breed they had best get on with it, and better to
start  with  the  older  female.  "Do  any  of  you  survive  who have had
experience  with  the  rapporter?"  Three  of  the  children  were  pushed
reluctantly  forward.  "One  of  you  will educate the younger female," he
instructed. "Do any survive who have had experience in preparing intruders
for storage?"
   "I prepared the last two," the leader said. "Also there are persons who
assisted me still alive."
   "See  that  the skills are maintained," the Oldest One ordered. "If one
of  you  should  die,  he is to be prepared by the others, and new persons
must  be  taught"  That was a convenience. If the skills had been lost-and
the  lives  of these creatures were so brief that many skills did get lost
while he was powered down-it would have been necessary to set some of them
to practicing brain surgery on others, to be ready in case he decided that
these intruders, too, should go into storage. Continuing down his priority
list, he gave additional instructions. Dead or spindly plantings should be
replaced.  All  permitted  areas of Here should be visited at least once a
month.  And,  as the number of infants and young was only eleven, at least
five babies should be born each year for the next ten years.
   The  Oldest  One  then powered down his external receptors, resumed his
place  at  the  central communications terminals and plugged himself in to
his  long-term  memories.  All about the central spindle his children were
hastening to do his bidding as the leader parceled out assignments. Half a
dozen  left  to  dig  up  berryfruit  bushes  and  airvines to replace the
defective  plants,  others  went  to  deal with the captives and attend to
housekeeping  chores, several young couples were sent to their quarters to
breed.  If  they  had  had  other  plans,  they were now deferred. At this
particular  awakening  the  Oldest  One  was  not  dissatisfied  with  his
children, and whether they were dissatisfied with him did not occur to him
to wonder.
   His concerns were elsewhere.
   With  his externals reduced to the standby trickle of his resting mode,
the Oldest One was not resting. He was assimilating these new factors into
his  reference store. There was change. Change was danger. Change was also
opportunity,  if  approached  right.  Change  might be used to advance his
purposes,  and  could  not be allowed to interfere with them. He had dealt
with  the  immediate  and  the  tactical.  Now  his  attention went to the
strategic and the ultimate.
   He  reached into his long-term memory. Some memories represented events
very  far  away  in  space  and  in time, and were frightening even to the
Oldest  One.  (How  had he dared such temerity!) Some were quite near, and
not  frightening  at  all, for example those stored intruder intelligences
the  boy  called  "the  Dead  Men".  There  was  nothing  in  them  to  be
frightening. But, oh, how irritating they could be.
   When  the  intruders first blundered Here, shattered castaways in their
tiny  ships,  the  Oldest  One  had  had  a  moment  of  terror. They were
unexplained.  Who  were  they? Were they the lords he was trying to serve,
come to reproach his presumption?
   He  quickly learned they were not. Were they, then, some other breed of
servants to the lords, from whom he could learn new modes of service? They
were  not  that either. They were wanderers. They had come Here by chance,
in ancient, abandoned ships they did not truly know how to use. When their
ships'  course  directors neutralized themselves, as they were meant to do
on arriving Here, they were terrified.
   They  were not, as it turned out, even very interesting. He had used up
many days of life with them as they appeared, first one, then another lone
adventurer,  then a group of three. In all there had been nearly twenty of
them,  in  nine  ships, not counting the child who had been born here, and
none  of  them worth the concern they had caused him. The first few he had
had  his  children  sacrifice  at  once,  in  order  to  put  their stored
intelligence  into  the  machine  form  that  he could best deal with. The
others  he  had given orders to preserve, even to allow to roam free, when
it  appeared  they might be more interesting in an independent life in the
unused areas of Here. He had given them everything he perceived they might
need.  He  had even given some of them immortality, as he himself had been
made immortal-as fewer than one in a hundred thousand of his children ever
were.  It  was a waste. Alive and capricious, or stored for eternity, they
were  more  trouble  than  they  were  worth. They brought diseases to his
children,  and  some  of  them  had  died.  They  caught diseases from the
children,  and  some  of  the  intruders died, too. And they did not store
well.   Properly   programmed   into   his   long-term  memories,  by  the
machine-directed  techniques  that  had  been  used  on  him  thousands of
centuries ago and taught to his children ever since, they performed badly.
Their  time  sense  was  deficient.  Their response to interrogatories was
erratic.  Large  sections  of their memories were gone. Some of them could
not  be  read  at  all.  The  fault  was  not in the techniques; they were
defective to begin with.
   When  the  Oldest One himself had been made immortal after the death of
his flesh, he awoke as his exact self. All the knowledge and skills he had
ever  had were duplicated in the machine store. So with his children, when
at  random  intervals  he  chose  one  to  store.  So  even with his flesh
ancestors,  so  far  back  that  even  his  own  immense  age  dwindled in
comparison.  So with those other stored memories that he did not like even
to consult.
   Not  so  with  the  intruders.  There  was  something  wrong with their
chemistry.  They recorded imperfectly and retrieved haphazardly, and there
were  times  when he thought to erase them all. He had banished the little
storage spheres and their readout systems to the remote periphery of Here,
and  his children never went near them. He had decided to preserve them at
the last only out of thrift. A time might come when he would need them.
   Perhaps that time was now.
   With  a  sense of reluctant distaste, as a man might reach into a sewer
to  retrieve a dropped gem, the Oldest One opened the pathways that linked
him to the stored intruder minds.
   And recoiled.
   Three  of  the  children,  hurrying  Janine around the curvature of the
spindle  from  her.  pen  to the rapporter, saw the Oldest One's effectors
quiver  and external lenses flash open. They stumbled and stopped, waiting
fearfully for what would come next
   Nothing came next. The effectors relaxed again. The lenses powered down
to  standby. After a moment, the children collected themselves and dragged
Janine to the waiting metallic couch.
   But  inside  the  Oldest One's metal shell he had received his greatest
shock  in  many  awakenings.  Someone had been interfering with his stored
memories!  It was not merely that they were mad. They had always been mad;
worse,  they  were  in some ways more sane now, or at least more lucid, as
though  something  had been trying to reprogram them. There were inputs he
had  never  given them. They contained memories he had never shared. These
were  not storage that had come to the surface from their past lives. They
were  new.  They spoke of organized knowledge on a scale that dwarfed even
his  own.  Spaceships  and  machines.  Living intelligences by the tens of
billions.  Machine intelligences that were slow and even almost stupid, by
his  standards,  but  possessed  incredible  stores  to draw on. It was no
wonder  that  he had reacted physically, as a man shocked out of a reverie
might start and twitch.
   Somehow his stored intruders had made contact with the culture they had
come from.
   It was easy for the Oldest One to learn how that contact had been made.
From Here to the food facility, by means of the long-unused communications
net.  Interpreted  and  processed  on  the food facility by a pathetically
crude machine. Transmitted the long light-days to the planets that circled
that  nearest  star,  by means of the creeping electromagnetic impulses of
lightspeed  radio. Contemptible! Until one considered how much information
had  been  transmitted  each  way.  The  Oldest  One  was like a hydraulic
engineer  transfixed  at  the base of a hydroelectric dam, watching a thin
needle  of  water  spurt hundreds of meters into the air, out of an almost
invisible  pinhole.  The  quantity  was  trivial.  But that so much poured
through  so tiny an opening bespoke the pressure of a vast body behind the
dam.
   And the leak went both ways.
   The Oldest One acknowledged that he had been careless. In interrogating
the stored intruders to find out what they knew, he had let them know much
about himself. About Here. About the technology that guided it.
   About his consecration, and about the lords his life was meant to serve.
   At  least the leak had been tiny, and the transmissions confused by the
imperfections of the stored intelligences themselves. There was no part of
that  storage inaccessible to the Oldest One. He opened them up for study,
and  traced  every bit. He did not "speak" to them. He allowed their minds
to  flow  into his own. The Dead Men could not resist him, any more than a
prepared frog on a dissecting table could resist a surgeon's scalpel.
   When he was done, he withdrew to ponder.
   Were his plans in jeopardy?
   He  activated  his  internal  scanning systems, and a three-dimensional
tank  of  the  Galaxy  sprang  up in his "mind". It had no real existence.
There  was  no  vantage point from which any person could have seen it. He
himself  did  not  "see" it, he simply knew it was there. It was a sort of
trompe-l'oeil. An optical illusion, except that it was not optical. On it,
very  far  away,  an  object  appeared,  haloed in light. It had been many
centuries since the Oldest One had allowed himself to observe that object.
It was time to look at it again.
   The  Oldest One reached down into and activated long undisturbed memory
stores.
   It  was  not  an  easy  experience.  It  was almost the equivalent of a
session  on  the  analyst's  couch  for  a  human,  for  he was uncovering
thoughts,   memories,   guilts,   worries,   and  uncertainties  that  his
"conscious" mind-the reasoning and problem-solving circuits-had long since
decided  to  lay  away.  Those memories were not gone. They had not become
impotent.  They  still  held  "shame" and "fear" for him. Was he doing the
right  thing?  Did he dare act on his own responsibility? The old circular
arguments  raced  through  his  mind as they had done two hundred thousand
years  before,  and  were no closer to resolution. It was not possible for
the  Oldest One to fugue into hysteria or depression. His circuits did not
allow it.
   It was, however, possible for him to be terrified.
   After  a prolonged time he emerged from his introspection. He was still
afraid. But he was committed. He had to act.
   The children scattered in terror as the Oldest One woke once more.
   His  forward  effectors  quivered,  straightened and pointed at a young
female,  caught  in  midpassage nearby. Any other would have done as well.
"Come with me," he ordered.
   She  sobbed,  but  followed.  Her  mate  took  a step after her as they
hurried  toward  a  gold-lit corridor. But he had not been told to go with
them,  and  so he stopped and looked sadly after. Ten minutes earlier they
had  been  mating, in pleasure and obedience. Now he was not sure he would
ever see her again.
   The Oldest One's cruising pace was not a great deal faster than a rapid
walk,  but  the  little  difference  kept  the weeping female trotting and
panting  to  keep  up.  He glided on, past machines that had not been used
even in his memories-wall aligners, landers huge as houses, a queer little
six-screwed  thing like a helicopter that had once, though even the Oldest
One  did  not remember so far back, been used to stock Heechee Heaven with
its  angels.  The  gold  skeins  changed  to radiant silver, the silver to
purest  white.  A passage that none of the children had ever entered stood
waiting  open  for  them,  the  heavy  door  fanned wide as the Oldest One
approached.  By  the  time they reached a place where the female had never
been, had not known existed, where the skeins in the wall ran in a riot of
a  dozen  colors  and  strange  patterns  flickered in panels all around a
great, dim chamber, she was out of breath. no rest. "Go there," the Oldest
One  commanded. "Adjust those wheels. Watch mine. Do as I do." At opposite
sides  of the chamber, too widely spaced for any one individual to operate
them,  were controls. Set on the floor at each was a sort of angled bench,
very uncomfortable for the young female to sit on. In front of each bench,
a  sort  of  hummock  of ridged wheels, ten of them in a row, with rainbow
lights glinting faintly between them. The Oldest One ignored the bench and
touched  an  effector  to the nearest wheel, turning it slowly. The lights
shivered  and  rippled. Green brightened to yellow, to pale orange, with a
triple  row  of  ochre  lines  in the middle of it "Match my pattern!" The
young female tried to obey. The wheel was terribly hard to turn, as though
it  had  not been moved for a terribly long time. (It had not.) The colors
merged  and swirled, and it took forever for her to achieve the pattern of
the  controls  before  the Oldest One. He did not hurry or reprove her. He
merely  waited.  He knew she was doing her best By the time all ten wheels
were  showing  the  pattern  he  had  chosen tears were gone and sweat was
stinging her eyes and trickling through her sparse beard.
   The  colors  were  not a perfect match. Between the doubled, redundant,
safed  controls,  the  rosette of screens that should have displayed their
course  coordinates was blank. This was not surprising. The surprise might
have been that, after eight hundred thousand years, the controls worked at
all.
   But they did work.
   The  Oldest  One  touched  something under his own bank of controls and
quickly,  wonderfully,  the  lights  developed  a  life of their own. They
blurred  and strengthened again, and now as the automatic fine-tuners took
over the two patterns became identical. The rosette of screens sprang into
life  with  a  pattern  of glowing dots and lines. The young female peered
fearfully  at  the screens. She did not know that what she saw was a field
of stars. She had never seen a star, or heard of one.
   She felt what happened next.
   So  did  everyone  else  Here.  The  intruders  in their pens, the near
hundred  children  all over the construct, the young female and the Oldest
One  himself all felt it, felt suddenly queasy as the eternal gravity died
and   was   replaced   by   tweaks   of   pseudoacceleration   punctuating
weightlessness.
   After  more  than  three-quarters  of a million years of rolling slowly
around  Earth's  very  distant  sun, the artifact pulled itself into a new
orbit and surged away.

   At  precisely  five-fifteen  AM  a  gentle  green  glow appeared in the
bedside  monitor  of 5. Ya. Lavorosrna-Broadhead. It was not bright enough
to  disturb  deep  slumber,  but she had been less than half asleep. "Very
well,"  she  called, "I am already awake, you do not have to continue this
program. But give me a moment."
   "Da,   gospozha,"  her  secretary  acknowledged,  but  the  green  glow
remained.  If S. Ya. did not show further signs of alertness the secretary
would buzz gently in another minute, regardless of what she told it to do;
that was what she had told it to do when she wrote the program.
   In  this case there was no need. Essie woke up quite clear in her mind.
There was surgery again this morning, and Robin would not be here. Because
old  Peter  Herter  had given warning before he invaded the world's minds,
there  had been time to prepare. There had been almost no damage. Not real
damage; but what made that possible was a frantic flurry of postponing and
rearranging, and in the course of it Robin's flights had been inextricably
confused.
   Pity.  Worse  than that, even fear. But it was not as though he had not
tried.  Essie  accepted that consolation from herself. It was good to know
that he had tried.
   "Am I allowed to eat?" she called.
   "No,  gospozha  Broadhead.  Nothing at all, not even a drink of water,"
her secretary responded at once. "Do you wish your messages?"
   "Perhaps.  What  messages?"  If  they were of interest at all she would
take them, she decided; anything to keep her mind off the surgery, and the
indignities of catheters and tubes that bound her to this bed.
   "There  is  a voice-only from your husband, gospozha, but if you wish I
believe I can reach him direct. I have a location, if he is still there."
   "Do so." Experimentally, Essie rose to sit on the edge of the bed while
she  was  waiting for the connection to be completed, or, more likely, for
her husband to be found in some transit lounge and called to the comm. She
carefully  kept  the  dozen  tubes unkinked as she rose to her feet. Apart
from feeling weak, she did not feel bad. Fearful. Thirsty. Even shaky. But
there was no pain. Perhaps it would all have seemed more serious if it had
hurt  more,  and  perhaps  that  would  have  been  good.  These months of
demeaning  annoyance  were  only  an  irritation; there was enough of Anna
Karenina  in  Essie to long to suffer. How trivializing the world had come
to  be!  Her  life was on the line, and all she felt was discomfort in her
private parts.
   "Gospozha Broadhead?"
   "Yes?"
   The  visual  program appeared, looking apologetic. "Your husband cannot
be  reached  at present. He is en route from Mexico City to Dallas and has
just  taken off; all the aircraft's communications are at present required
for navigation."
   "Mexico  City?  Dallas?" The poor man! He would be circumnavigating the
Earth  to  get  to  her! "Then at least give me the recorded message," she
ordered.
   "Da,  gospozha."  Face  and  greenish  glow shrank away, and out of the
sound-circuits her husband's voice addressed her:
   "Honey, I'm having a little trouble making connections. I got a charter
to Merida, supposed to make connections to Miami, but I missed the flight.
Now  I'm hoping to make a connection to Dallas and-Anyway, I'm on my way."
Pause.  He  sounded fretful, which was no surprise, and Essie could almost
see  him  casting  around  for  something  cheerful to say. But it was all
rambling.  Something  about  the  great  news about prayer fans. Something
about  the  Heechee  who  weren't  Heechee,  and-and  just  a babble. Poor
creature! He was trying to be bright for her. She listened to the sound of
his heart, rather than to his words, until he paused again, and then said,
"Oh,  hell,  Essie.  I wish I were there. I will be. Fast as I can. In the
meantime.  Take care of yourself. If you've got any spare time before you,
uh,  before  Wilma  gets going, I've told Albert to tape all the essential
stuff  for  you. He's a good old program...." Long pause. "I love you," he
said, and was gone.
   S.  Ya.  lay  back on her gently humming bed, wondering what to do with
the  next  (and  perhaps  last?)  hour of her life. She missed her husband
quite  a  lot,  especially  in  view  of  the  fact  that in some ways she
considered  him  quite a silly man. "Good old program"! How foolish of him
to  anthropomorphize  computer  programs! His Albert Einstein program was,
she  had  no other word for it, cute. And it had been his idea to make the
bio-assay unit look like a pet. And give it a name! "Squiffy." It was like
giving  a name to a cleaning machine or a shotgun. Foolish. Unless it were
done by someone one cared for... in which case it was instead endearing.
   But  machines  were machines. At the graduate institute at Akademogorsk
young   S.   Ya.  Lavorovna  had  learned  very  completely  that  machine
intelligence  was  not "personal". You built them up, from adding machines
to  number-crunchers.  You  packed  them full of data. You constructed for
them  a store of appropriate responses to stimuli and provided them with a
hierarchical  scale  of appropriateness; and that was all there was to it.
Now and then, to be sure, you were surprised by what came out of a program
you  had written. Of course you were; that was the nature of the exercise.
None  of  that  implied  the  existence  of  free  will on the part of the
machine, or of personal identity.
   All  the same, it was rather touching to watch him crack jokes with his
programs.  He  was  a touching man. He touched her in places where she was
most  open and vulnerable, because in some ways he was very like that only
other man in her life who had ever really mattered to her, her father.
   When  Semya  Yagrodna  was a small girl her father had been the central
person  in  the  world-tall, skinny old man who played the ukulele and the
mandolin  and  taught biology at the gymnasium. He was delighted to have a
bright  and  inquiring  child.  It might have pleased him even more if her
talents  had  seemed to go toward the life sciences rather than to physics
and  engineering, but he cherished her as she was. He taught her about the
world  when  he  could  no  longer  teach her mathematics, because she had
surpassed  him. "You must be aware of what you will have to deal with," he
explained  to  her.  "Even  here. Even now. Even when I was a young boy in
Stalin's  time,  and  the  women's  movements were promoting girls to lead
machine-gun squads and run tractors. This is always the same, Semya. It is
a  fact of history that mathematics is for the young, and that girls excel
equally  with  boys  until the age of fifteen, perhaps, or at most twenty.
And  then,  just  when the boys are turning into Lobachewskis and Fermats,
the  girls  stop.  Why?  For  childbearing. For marriage. For heaven knows
what.  We  will  not let it happen to you, small dove. Study! Read! Learn!
Comprehend!  Every  day,  for as many hours as you must! And I will assist
you  in  all  the  ways  I can." And he did; and from the ages of eight to
eighteen  young  Semya Yagrodna Lavorovna came home from school every day,
deposited  one  book  bag  in  their  apartment and picked up another, and
trotted  away to the old yellow building off the Nevsky Prospekt where her
tutor  lived.  She  had never dropped out of mathematics, and for this she
had  her father to thank. She had never learned to dance, either-or to try
a thousand sorts of scent and makeup, or to date-not until she was away at
Akademogorsk,  and  for  that  also she had her father to thank. Where the
world  tried to force her into a female role he defended her like a tiger.
But  at  home, to be sure, there was a need to cook and sew, and to polish
the rosewood chairs; and none of those things were done by him. Her father
in physical appearance had not looked in the least like Robin Broadhead...
but in other ways, so like!
   Robin  had  asked  her to marry him when they had known each other less
than  a  year.  It  had taken her a full year beyond that to decide to say
yes.  She  talked to everyone she knew about it. Her roommate. The dean of
her  department. Her former love; who had married the girl next door. Stay
away  from  this  one, S. Ya., they all advised her. On the face of it the
advice was sound, for who was he? A feckless millionaire, still mourning a
woman  he had loved and shatteringly lost, guilt-ridden, just out of years
of  intensive  psychoanalysis-what a perfect description of the completely
hopeless  marriage  risk!  But...  On  the  other  hand... Nevertheless...
Nevertheless  he  touched her. They had gone to New Orleans for Mardi Gras
in  stinging  cold  weather,  sitting  most of the days inside the Cafe du
Monde,  never  even seeing the parade. The rest of the time they stayed in
their hotel, out of the sleet and the crowds, and made love, emerging only
for  fried  sweet  dough  with clouds of powdered sugar, and sweet, milky,
chicory-laced  coffee  in  the  mornings.  Robin  bestirred  himself to be
gallant.  "Shall  we  go  for  a  cruise  on the river today? Visit an art
gallery? Dance at a night club?" But she could see that he did not want to
do  any  of  these  things, this man twice her age who wanted to marry he;
sitting  with  his hands cupped around his coffee as though merely getting
warm  were  formidable  enough  a task to contemplate for one day. And she
made her decision.
   She said, "I think instead we might get married, after all."
   And  so they had. Not that day, but as soon as they could. S. Ya. never
regretted  it; it was not a thing to regret. After the first few weeks she
had not even worried about how it would turn out. He was not a jealous man
or a mean one. If he was often absorbed in his work, well, so was she.
   There  was  only  this question of the woman, Gelle-Kiara Moyrilin, the
lost love.
   She  might  well be dead. Was as good as dead, in any case, because she
was hopelessly out of human reach forever. It was well known that this was
so,  from  the  fundamental laws of physics... but there were times, Essie
was sure, when her husband did not believe it to be so.
   And then she wondered: If there was any possibility of a choice between
them, how would Robin choose?
   And  what  if  the  laws of physics, after all, turned out to permit an
exception now and then?
   There  was  the  matter  of  the Heechee ships, and how could one apply
known  physical  law  to  them? As with every other thinking person in the
world, the questions raised by the Heechee had intrigued S. Ya. for a long
time.  The  Gateway  asteroid  had  been  discovered while she was still a
schoolgirl.  The  headlines  announcing  new  findings  had come every few
weeks, all through her college years. Some of her classmates had taken the
plunge  and specialized in the theory of Heechee control systems. Two were
on Gateway now. At least three had shipped out and never returned.
   The  Heechee  ships  were  not  uncontrollable.  They  could in fact be
controlled precisely. The superficial mechanics of the process were known.
Each  ship possessed five main-drive verfliers, and five auxiliaries. They
located  coordinates  in space (how?), and, once set, the ship went there.
Again, how? It then returned unerringly to its place of origin, or usually
did,  if  it did not run out of fuel or encounter a mischance-a triumph of
cybernetics  that  S.  Ya.  knew  no  human  agency  could  reproduce. The
difficulty  was  that until this very second no human being knew quite how
to read the controls.
   But what about the next second, or the one after that? With information
pouring  in,  from  the  Food  Factory  and  Heechee Heaven; with Dead Men
talking;  with  at  least one semicompetent human pilot, the boy, Wan-with
all  this,  and  especially  with the flood of new knowledge that might be
unlocked from the prayer fans...
   How  long  before  some  of the mysteries were solved? Perhaps not very
long at all.
   S.  Ya.  wished  she  could  be a part of it all, as her classmates had
become.  As  her husband had become. She wished even more that she did not
suspect  what  part he most wanted to play. But the suspicion remained. If
Robin could make a Heechee ship fly him to any destination he chose in all
the universe, she thought she knew what that destination would be.
   Semya  Yagrodna  Lavorovna-Broadhead called to her secretary, "How much
time do I have?"
   The  program  appeared  and  said,  "It  is  now  five  twenty-two. Dr.
Liederman is expected at six forty-five. You will then be prepared for the
procedure,  which will occur at eight o'clock. You have a little more than
an hour and a quarter. Perhaps you would like to rest?"
   S. Ya. chuckled. It always amused her when her own programs offered her
advice.  She did not, however, feel any need to respond to it. "Have menus
been prepared for today and tomorrow?" she asked.
   "Nyet, gospozha."
   That  was  both  a  relief and a disappointment. At least Robin had not
prescribed  more fattening foods for today-or perhaps his prescription had
been overruled, because of the operation? "Select something," she ordered.
The  program  was quite capable of preparing menus. It was only because of
Robin  himself  that  either  of  them ever gave a thought to such routine
chores. But Robin was Robin, and there were times when cooking was a hobby
for him, cutting onions paper-thin for a salad and standing to stir a stew
for  hours. Sometimes what he produced was awful, sometimes not; Essie was
not  critical,  because  she  was not very interested in what she ate. And
also  because  she  was  grateful that she felt no need to concern herself
with  such matters; in this respect, at least, Robin surpassed her father.
"No,  wait,"  she  added, struck with a thought. "When Robin comes home he
will  be  hungry.  Serve  him  a snack-those crullers, and the New Orleans
coffee. As at the Cafe du Monde."
   "Da, gospozha." How devious you are, thought Essie, smiling to herself.
One hour and twelve minutes left.
   It would do no harm to rest.
   On the other hand, she was not sleepy.
   She  could, she thought, interrogate her medical program again. But she
had  no  real  wish  to  hear about the procedures she faced an additional
time.  Such  large pieces to take from someone else's body for the sake of
her  own!  The  kidney,  yes.  One  might  well  sell  that and still have
something  left. As a student, Essie had known comrades who had done that,
might  even  have done it herself if she had been just a shade poorer than
she  actually was. But, although she knew very little more of anatomy than
her father had taught her at his knee, she knew enough to be sure that the
person,  or  persons,  who had given her all those other tissues would not
have enough left to go on living with. It was a queasy feeling.
   Almost  as  queasy  as  that other feeling that came with knowing that,
even  with  Full  Medical,  from this particular invasion of her person by
Wilma Liederman's knives she might not return.
   Still an hour and eleven minutes.
   Essie  sat  up  once  more.  Whether she was to live or not, she was as
dutiful  a  wife  as  she  had been a daughter, and if Robin wished her to
concern  herself with prayer fans and Heechee she would. She addressed the
computer terminal. "I wish the Albert Einstein program."

   When  Essie  Broadhead  said, "I wish the Albert Einstein program," she
set  a  large  number  of  events in motion. Very few of these events were
visible  to the unaided senses. They did not take place in the macroscopic
physical world, but in a universe composed largely of charges and pathways
operating  on  the  scale of the electron. The individual units were tiny.
The  total  was  not,  being  made  up  of  some sixty billion gigabits of
information.
   At  Akademogorsk,  young  S.  Ya. 's professors had schooled her in the
then  current  computer logics of ion optics and magnetic bubbles. She had
learned  to  trick  her  computers  into doing many marvelous things. They
could  find  million-digit  prime  numbers  or  calculate  the  tides on a
mud-flat  for  a  thousand  years.  They  could take a child's scribble of
"House"  and  "Daddy"  and  refine  it  into an engineer's rendering of an
architectural  plan,  and a tailor's dummy of a man. They could rotate the
house,  add  a  sunporch,  sheath  it in stucco or cover it with ivy. They
could  shave  off  a  beard,  add  a  wig, costume the man for yachting or
golfing,   for  boardroom  or  bar.  These  were  marvelous  programs  for
nineteen-year-old Semya. She found them thrilling. But she had grown since
then.  By  comparison  with  the  programs  she  was  now writing, for her
secretary,  for  "Albert  Einstein"  and for her many clients, those early
ones  were slow and stumbling caricatures. They did not have the advantage
of  circuits  borrowed from Heechee technology, or of a circulating memory
store of 6 X b'9 bits.
   Of  course,  even Albert did not use all sixty billion gigabits all the
time. For one thing, they were not all shared. Even the shared stores were
occupied  by  tens  of  thousands of programs as subtle and complicated as
Albert, and by tens of millions of duller ones. The program called "Albert
Einstein" slipped through and among the thousands and the millions without
interference.  Traffic  signals  warned  him  away from occupied circuits.
Guideposts  led  him  to  subroutines  and libraries needed to fulfill his
functions.  His path was never a straight line. It was a tree of branching
decision  points,  a lightning-stroke of zigzag turns and reverses. It was
not truly a "path", either; Albert never moved. He was never in a specific
place  to move from. It is at least arguable whether Albert "was" anything
at  all.  He had no continuous existence. When Robin Broadhead was through
with him and turned him off he ceased to be, and his subroutines picked up
other  tasks.  When  he  was  turned  on  again  he recreated himself from
whatever  circuits were idle, according to the program S. Ya. had written.
He was no more real than an equation, and no less so than God.
   "I wish..." S. Ya. Lavorovna-Broadhead had said.
   Before   her   voice   was   halfway   through   the  first  vowel  the
sound-activated gate in the monitor's receiver summoned up her secretarial
program.  The  secretary  did  not appear. She read the first trace of the
name that followed... "-the Albert Einstein..."
   -matched  it against her command store, made a probabilistic assessment
of the rest and issued an instruction. That was not all the secretary did.
Before  that  she had recognized the voice of S. Ya. and confirmed that it
was  that of an authorized person-the person who had written her, in fact.
She checked her store for undelivered messages, found several, and weighed
their  urgency.  She  made  a quick sweep of Essie's telemetry readings to
estimate  her  physical  condition,  retrieved the memory of her proximate
surgery,  balanced  them against the messages and the present instruction,
and  decided  the  messages  need  not  be delivered, and in fact could be
handled  by Essie's surrogate. All that took very little time and involved
only a minor fraction of the secretary's full program. She did not need to
remember,  for  instance,  what  she  was supposed to look like or how her
voice was supposed to sound. So she did not bother.
   The secretary's instruction woke "Albert Einstein".
   He  did  not  at first know that he was Albert Einstein. As he read his
program  he discovered several things about himself. First, that he was an
interactive  information-retrieval  program, whereupon he searched for and
found  addresses  for  the  principal  categories  of  information  he was
supposed  to  supply.  Second,  that he was heuristic and normative, which
obliged him to look for the rules, in the form of go and no-go gates, that
determined  his  decision-making. Third, that he was the property of Robin
a.  k.  a. Robinette, Rob, Robby, Bob or Bobby-Stetley Broadhead and would
be  required  to  interact  with  him  on  a  basis of "knowing" him. This
impelled  the  Albert  program  to  access  the Robin Broadhead files, and
rehearse their contents-by far the most time-consuming part of his task so
far.  When all this was done he discovered his name and the details of his
appearance.  He  made  a  series  of arbitrary choices of costume-pullover
sweater,  or stained gray sweatshirt; slippers or frayed tennis shoes with
a toe poking out; socks or none-and appeared in the tank of the monitor in
the  guise of the real Albert Einstein, pipe in hand, mild eyes humorously
inquiring, before the last echo of the command had died.
   "...program."
   He  had  had plenty of time. It had taken Essie nearly four-tenths of a
second to speak his name.
   As  she  had  spoken  in  English, he greeted her in the same language.
"Good..." quick check of local time, "morning," fast assessment of Essie's
mood  and  condition,  "Mrs.  Broadhead."  If she had been dressed for the
office he would have called her "Lavorovna."
   Essie studied him appraisingly for several seconds, an infinity of time
for  Albert.  He  did  not waste it. He was a shared-time program, and the
parts  of  his  capacity  that  were  not  in active use at any particular
pico-second busied themselves at other tasks.
   Whatever  task was going. While he waited, parts of him were excused to
help  other  programs  make  a weather forecast for a sport-fishing vessel
leaving  Long  Island  Sound,  teach  the conjugation of French verbs to a
little girl, animate a sexual doll for a wealthy, and quirky, old recluse,
and tally gold prices received from the Peking exchange. There were almost
always  other  tasks  on line. When there were not, there were the waiting
batch-process   files   of  less  urgent  problems-nuclear  particle  path
analysis,  the  refinement  of asteroid orbits, the balancing of a million
checkbooks-that  any of the sixty billion gigabits might turn a hand to in
an idle moment.
   Albert  was  not  the  same  as  Robin's other programs-the lawyer, the
doctor,  the  secretary,  the  psychoanalyst, or any of the surrogates who
functioned  for Robin Broadhead when Robin was busy or disinclined. Albert
shared  many  memories with them. They freely accessed each other's files.
Each  had  a  specific  universe of action, tasked for specific needs; but
they could not carry out their tasks without awareness of each other.
   Apart  from  that,  they  were  each  the  personal  property  of Robin
Broadhead,  slaved  to his will. So sophisticated was Albert that he could
read  contextual  clues  and deduce imperatives. He was not limited in his
responses  by what Robin said to him. He was able to read deeper questions
from  the  totality  of  everything  Robin  had  ever  said, to any of his
programs.  Albert  could  not  betray  a confidence of Robin's, or fail to
recognize what was confidential. Generally.
   There  were  exceptions. The person who had written Albert's program in
the first place could easily write an overriding command, and had.
   "Robin  instructed  you  to  prepare  summaries for me," Essie told her
creation.  "Give  them  to  me  now."  She  watched  critically  and  also
admiringly  as  the program she bad written nodded, scratched its ear with
its  pipestem  and  began  to  speak. Albert was quite a good program, she
thought  with pride. For a collection of electronic impulses living in rag
stores-weakly  crystalline  dichalcogenides  with  the  structure of a wet
dishrag-Albert was a rather attractive person.
   She  adjusted  her  tubes and piping and leaned back against pillows to
listen to what Albert had to say. It was all most exceedingly interesting.
Even  to her, even at this time when in-what was it? in less than one hour
ten  minutes  she  would be sponged and stripped and shaved and basted for
further  invasions  of her inner person. As all she demanded of the Albert
program at this time was edited memories of conversations that had already
occurred,  she  knew that he had dismissed large parts of himself to other
work.  But  what  was  left, she observed critically, was quite solid. The
transition  from  the  interactive  Albert waiting for her question to the
remembered  Albert  talking  to  her husband was done smoothly and without
jumps-if  one  did  not look for such minor imperfections as that the pipe
was  suddenly  alight,  and  the socks abruptly pulled up over the ankles.
Satisfied,  Essie  paid  attention to the content of what was going on. It
was  not  just one conversation, she perceived. There were at least three.
Robin must have been spending a lot of time talking to his science program
in  Brasilia, and while one part of her mind was listening to the exciting
news  from Heechee Heaven another part was smiling at herself. How amusing
that she should be pleased at this evidence that he had not used his hotel
suite  for  other purposes! (Or at least not exclusively, she amended.) He
could  not  have  been blamed if he had chosen a living companion instead.
Even  a  female  one.  Under  the  circumstances,  with a main lover in no
condition  to be very responsive, she would certainly have felt free to do
the  same. (Well, not certainly. There was enough early Soviet prudishness
left  in Essie for at least a doubt.) But she admitted to herself that she
was  pleased, and then made herself attend to the truly fascinating things
that were being said. So much happening! So much to absorb!
   First,  the Heechee. The Heechee in Heechee Heaven were not Heechee! Or
at  least  those  Old Ones were not. It was proved by the bio-assay of the
DNA,  Albert was earnestly assuring her husband, punctuating his arguments
with pipe thrusts. The bioassay had produced not an answer but a puzzle, a
basic  chemistry  that  was  neither human, nor yet inhuman enough to come
from  creatures  evolved  around  some  other  star.  "Also," said Albert,
puffing,  "there  is  the  question of the Heechee seat. It does not fit a
human  being.  But  neither  does  it fit the Old Ones. So for whom was it
designed? Alas, Robin. We do not know."
   A quick flicker, the socks now gone, the pipe out and being filled, and
Albert  was  talking  about  prayer  fans.  He had not, Albert apologized,
unriddled  the  fans.  The literature was vast but he had searched it all.
There  was no imaginable application of energy and no instrumentation that
had  not  been  applied  to  them.  Yet  they  had  stayed  mute. "One can
speculate,"  Albert  said,  striking a match to his pipe, "that all of the
fans left for us by the Heechee are garbled, perhaps to tantalize us. I do
not  believe  this. Rafliniert 1st der Herr Hietschie, aber Boshaft 1st er
nicht," In spite of everything, Essie laughed out loud. Der Herr Hietschie
indeed! Had she written this sense of comedy into her program? She thought
of  interrupting  him  to  command  that  he  display  this section of his
instructions,  but  already  that  replay  had  ended  and a slightly less
rumpled  Albert  was  talking about astrophysics. Here Essie almost closed
her  ears,  for  she  quickly  had  enough of curious cosmologies. Was the
universe  open-ended  or closed? She did not strongly care. Was some large
quantity of mass "missing", in the sense that not enough could be observed
to  account  for  known gravitational effects? Very well, then let it stay
missing.  Essie  felt  no  need to go looking for it. Someone's fantasy of
storms   of   indetectible   pious,   and   someone   else-someone   named
Kiube's-notion  that  mass  might  be created from nothing, interested her
very  little.  But when the conversation switched to black holes, she paid
close  attention.  She  was not really concerned with the subject. She was
concerned with Robin's concern for it.
   And  that,  she  told herself justly as Albert rambled on, was petty of
her.  Robin  had kept no mean secrets. He had told her at once of the love
of  his life, the woman named Gelle-Klara Moynlin whom he had abandoned in
a black hole-had told her, actually, far more than she wanted to know.
   She said, "Stop."
   Instantly  the  three-dimensional figure in the tank abandoned the word
it  had  been  speaking in midsyllable. It gazed politely at her, awaiting
orders.
   "Albert,"  she  said carefully, "why did you tell me Robin was studying
question of black holes?"
   The  figure  coughed.  "Why, Mrs. Broadhead," Albert said, "I have been
playing a recording prepared especially for you."
   "Not this time. Why did you volunteer this information other time?"
   Albert's expression cleared and he said humbly, "That directive did not
come from my program, gospozha."
   "I  thought  not!  You  have  been  interacting with the psychoanalytic
program!"
   "Yes, gospozha, as you programmed me to do."
   "And  what  was  the  purpose of this intervention from the Sigfrid von
Shrink program?"
   "I  cannot  say for sure-but," he added hastily, "perhaps I can offer a
guess.  Perhaps  it  is  that the Sigfrid estimates your husband should be
more open with you."
   "That program is not charged with care of my mental health!"
   "No,  gospozha,  not  with yours, but with your husband's. Gospozha, if
you  wish  more information, let me suggest that you consult that program,
not me."
   "I  can  do  more  than  that!" she blazed. And so she could. She could
speak  three  words-Daite  gorod  Polymat-and Albert, Harriet, Sigfrid von
Shrink,  every one of Robin's programs would be subsumed into the powerful
program  of  her  own, Polymath, the one she had used to write them in the
first  place, the overriding program that contained every instruction they
owned. And then let them try cunning evasions on her! Then let them see if
they  could  maintain  the  confidentiality of their memories! Then "God,"
Essie  said  aloud,  "am  actually  planning  to  teach  lesson  to my own
programs!"
   "Gospozha?"
   She  caught  her breath. It was almost a laugh, nearly a sob. "No," she
said,  "cancel  above.  I find no fault with your programming, Albert, nor
with  shrink's.  If  shrink  program  judges Robin should release internal
tensions,  I  cannot  overrule  and  will not pry. Further," she corrected
herself fairly.
   The  curious  thing about Essie Lavorovna-Broadhead was that "fairness"
meant  something  to  her,  even in dealing with her constructs. A program
like Albert Einstein was large, complex, subtle, and powerful. Not even S.
Ya.  Lavorovna  could  write  such  a  program  alone; for that she needed
Polymath.  A program like Albert Einstein learned, and grew, and redefined
its  tasks as it went along. Not even its author could say why it gave one
bit  of  information  and  not another. One could only observe that it was
working,  and  judge it by how it carried out its orders. It was unfair to
the program to "blame" it, and Essie could not be so unfair.
   But,  as  she  moved  restlessly  among her pillows (twenty-two minutes
left!)  it  came  to  her that the world was not entirely fair to her. Not
fair  at  all!  It was not fair that all these fairytale wonders should be
pouring  in  upon the world-not now. It was not fair that these perils and
perplexities  should manifest themselves, not now, not while she might not
live to see how they came out. Could Peter Herter be dealt with? Would the
others of his party be saved? Could the lessons of the prayer fans and the
explorers  make  it possible to do all the things Robin promised, feed the
world,  make  all  men well and happy, allow the human race to explore the
universe? All these questions, and before this day's sun had set she might
be  dead  and  never  to know the answers! It was not fair, any of it. And
least  fair  was  that if she died of this operation she would never know,
truly,  which  way Robin would have chosen, if somehow his lost love could
be found again.
   She  became  aware  that  time was passing. Albert sat patiently in the
tank,  moving  only occasionally to suck his pipe or scratch under the hem
of his floppy sweater-to remind her, that is, that he was still in standby
mode.
   Essie's  thrifty  cybernetician's  soul was indignantly ordering her to
use  the program or turn it off-what a shocking waste of machine time! But
she hesitated. There were questions still to ask.
   At  the  door the nurse was looking in. "Good morning, Mrs. Broadhead,"
she said when she saw that Essie was wide awake.
   "Is it time?" Essie asked, her voice suddenly unsteady.
   "Oh,  not for a few minutes yet. You can go on with your machine if you
want to."
   Essie  shook  her  head.  "Is  no  point,"  she  said and dismissed the
program.  It  was  a  decision lightly taken. It did not occur to her that
some of the unasked questions might be consequential.
   And  when  Albert  Einstein  was  dismissed he did not allow himself to
disintegrate at once.
   "The  whole  of  anything is never told," said Henry James. Albert knew
"Henry  James"  only  as  an  address, the information behind which he had
never  had occasion to seek. But he understood the meaning of that law. He
could  never  tell the whole of anything even to his master. He would fail
in his programming if he tried.
   But what parts of the whole to select?
   At  its  lowest  structural  level,  Albert's program was gated to pass
items of a certain measured "importance" and reject others. Simple enough.
But  the  program  was  redundant.  Some  items came to it through several
gates,  sometimes as many as hundreds of gates; and when some of the gates
said  "go"  and  others said "no go," what was a program to do? There were
algorithms  to  test  importance,  but  at  some  levels of complexity the
algorithms  taxed  even  the  resources  of sixty billion gigabits-or of a
universe  full  of  bits; Meyer and Stockmeyer had proved, long ago, that,
regardless  of  computer power, problems existed which could not be solved
in  the  life  of  the  universe.  Albert's  problems  were not quite that
immense.  But  he  could  not  find  an  algorithm  to decide for him, for
instance,  whether  he should bring up the puzzling implications of Mach's
Principle  as  applied  to  Heechee  history.  Worse. He was a proprietary
program.  It would have been interesting to pass on his conjectures on the
subject to a pure science research program. But that his basic programming
did not permit.
   So Albert held himself together for nearly a millisecond, reconsidering
his  options.  Should  he,  next  time  Robin  summoned him, volunteer his
misgivings  about the potentially terrifying truth that lay behind Heechee
Heaven?
   He  reached  no conclusion in all that long one thousandth of a second,
and his parts were needed elsewhere.
   So Albert allowed himself to come apart.
   This  part  he poured into slow memory, that part into ongoing problems
as  needed,  until all of Albert Einstein had soaked into the 6 x 10 bits,
like  water  into  sand,  until  not  even  a  stain was left. Some of his
routines joined with others in a simulated war game, in which Key West was
invaded from Grand Cayman. Some turned up to assist the traffic-controller
program  at  Dallas-Fort  Worth,  as  Robin  Broadhead's plane entered its
landing  pattern.  Much, much later, some of him helped to monitor Essie's
vital functions as Dr. Wilma Liederman began to cut. One little bit, hours
after,  helped  to solve the mystery of the prayer fans. And the simplest,
crudest,  tiniest  part  of  all  stayed  on to supervise the program that
prepared  Cajun  coffee and beignets for Robin when he arrived, and to see
that the house was clean for him. Sixty billion gigabits can do much. They
even do windows.

   To love someone is a grace. To marry someone is a contract. The part of
me  that  loved  Essie,  was  loving  her wholeheartedly, sank in pain and
terror  when  she relapsed, surged in fearful joy when she showed signs of
recovering. I had plenty of occasion for both. Essie died twice in surgery
before I could get home, and again, twelve days later, when they had to go
in again. That last time they made her clinically dead on purpose. Stopped
heart  and  breath,  kept  only  the  brain  alive.  And  every  time they
reanimated  her  I  was  frightened to think she would live because if she
lived  it meant she might die one more time, and I could not stand it. But
slowly,  painfully,  she  began to gain weight, and Wilma told me the tide
had  turned,  as  when  the spiral begins to glow in a Heechee ship at the
halfway  point and you know you're going to live through the trip. I spent
all  that  time,  weeks and weeks of it, hanging around the house, so that
when Essie could see me I would be there.
   And  all  that time the part of me that had contracted to be married to
her  was  resenting  the bond, and wishing I were free. How do you account
for  that? That was a good occasion for guilt, and guilt is a feeling that
comes  readily  to me-as my old psychoanalytic program used to tell me all
the  time.  And  when  I  went  in  to  see Essie, looking like a mummy of
herself,  the  joy  and worry filled my heart and the guilt and resentment
clogged  my  tongue. I would have given my life to make her well. But that
did  not seem a practical strategy, or at least I could not see any way to
make  that  deal, and the other guilty and hostile part of me wanted to be
free to dwell on lost Kiara, and whether somehow I might find her again.
   But  she  mended,  Essie did. She mended fast. The sunken bags of flesh
under  her  eyes  filled  to  be  only  bruises. The tubes came out of her
nostrils. She ate like a pig. Before my very eyes she was filling out, the
bust  beginning  to  swell, the hips regaining their power to startle. "My
compliments  to  the  doctor," I told Wilma Liederman when I caught her on
her way in to see her patient.
   She said sourly, "Yes, she's doing fine."
   "I don't like the way you said that," I told her. "What's the matter?"
   She relented. "Nothing, really, Robin. All her tests are fine. She's in
such a hurry, though!"
   "That's good, isn't it?'"
   "Up  to a point it is. And now," she added, "I have to get in to see my
patient.  Who  will be up and about any day now and, maybe, back to normal
in a week or two." What good news that was! And how reluctantly I received
it.
   I  went  through  all  those  weeks  with  something  hanging  over me.
Sometimes  it  seemed  like  doom,  like old Peter Herter blackmailing the
world  and  nothing  the  world could do to resist it, or like the Heechee
stirring  into  anger  as  we  invaded  their  complex and private worlds.
Sometimes  it  seemed  like golden gifts of opportunity, new technologies,
new  hopes,  new  wonders  to  explore and exploit. You would think that I
would distinguish between hopes and worries, right? Wrong. Both scared the
hell out of me. As good old Sigfrid used to tell me, I have a great talent
not only for guilt but also for worry.
   And  when  you  came right down to it, I had some fairly real things to
worry  about.  Not  just  Essie. When you reach a certain age you have, it
seems  to  me,  a  right to expect some parts of your life to stay stable.
Like  what, for instance? Like money, for instance. I was used to a lot of
it,  and  now here was my lawyer program telling me that I had to watch my
pennies.  "But  I  promised Hanson Bover a million cash," I said, "and I'm
going to pay it. Sell some stock."
   "I've  sold  stock, Robin!" He wasn't angry. He wasn't programmed to be
able to be really angry, but he could be wretched and he was.
   "So sell some more. What's the best to get rid of?"
   "None  of  it  is  'best,' Robin. The food mines're down because of the
fire.  The fish farms still haven't recovered from losing the fingerlings.
A month or two from now..."
   "A month or two from now isn't when I want the money. Sell." And when I
signed  him off and called Bover up to find out where to send his million,
he actually seemed surprised.
   "In  view of Gateway Corp's action," he said, "I thought you'd call our
arrangement off."
   "A deal is a deal," I said. "We can let the legalities hang. They don't
mean much while Gateway has preempted me."
   He  was  suspicious immediately. What is it that I do that makes people
suspicious  of me when I am going miles out of my way to be fair?' "Why do
you  want  to hold off on the legalities?" he demanded, rubbing the top of
his head agitatedly-was it sunburned again?
   "I  don't  'want' to," I said, "it just doesn't make any difference. As
soon as you lift your injunction Gateway will drop theirs on me."
   Alongside  Bover's  scowling face, my secretary program's appeared. She
looked  like  a cartoon of the Good Angel whispering into Bover's ear, but
actually what she was saying was for me: "Sixty seconds until Mr. Herter's
reminder," she said.
   I  had  forgotten  that  old Peter had given us another of his two hour
notices.  I said to Bover, "It's time to button up for Peter Herter's next
jab,"  and hung up-I didn't really care if he remembered, I only wanted to
terminate  the  conversation.  Not  much buttoning up was involved. It was
thoughtful-no,  it was orderly-of old Peter to warn us each time, and then
to  perform  so  punctually.  But  it  mattered more to airline pilots and
automobus's than to stay-at-homes like me.
   There was Essie, however. I looked in to make sure she was not actually
being perfused or catheterized or fed. She wasn't.
   She  was asleep-quite normally asleep, with her dark-gold hair spilling
all  around her, and gently snoring. And on the way back to my comfortable
console chair I felt Peter in my mind.
   I  had  become  quite a connoisseur of invasions of the mind. It wasn't
any  special  skill.  The  whole  human race had, over a dozen years, ever
since the fool kid, Wan, began his trips to the Food Factory. His were the
worst,  because  they lasted so long and because he shared his dreams with
us.  Dreams  have  power;  dreams  are  a  kind  of  released insanity. By
contrast, the one light touch we'd had from Janine Herter was nothing, and
Peter  Herter's precise two-minute doses no worse than a traffic light you
stop  a  minute, and wait impatiently until it is over, and then you go on
your  way.  All  I  ever felt from Peter was the way he felt-sometimes the
gut-griping  of  age,  sometimes  hunger or thirst, once the fading, angry
sexual lust of an old man all by himself. As I sat down I remember telling
myself  that this time was nothing at all. More than anything else, it was
like having a little dizzy spell, too much crouching in one position, when
you  stand up you have to pause a moment until it goes away. But it didn't
go  away.  I felt the blurriness of seeing things with two sets of eyes at
once,  and the inarticulate anger and unhappiness of the old man-no words;
just  a  sort  of tone, as though someone were whispering what I could not
quite hear.
   It  kept  on  not going away. The blurriness increased. I began to feel
detached and almost delirious. That second vision, that is never sharp and
clear,  began  to  show  things  I had never seen before. Not real things.
Fantasy  things.  Women  with  beaks  like birds of prey. Great glittering
metal monsters rolling across the inside of my eyelids. Fantasies. Dreams.
   The two-minute measured dose of reminder had gone off track. The son of
a bitch had fallen asleep in the cocoon.
   Thank  God for the insomnia of old men! It didn't last eight hours, not
much more than one.
   But  they  were  sixty-odd unpleasant minutes. When I felt the unwanted
dreams  slide  tracelessly  out of my mind, and was sure they were gone, I
ran to Essie's room. She was wide awake, leaning back against the pillows.
"Am  all  right, Robin," she said at once. "Was an interesting dream. Nice
change from my own."
   "I'll kill the old bastard," I said.
   Essie shook her head, grinning up at me. "Not practical," she said.
   Well, maybe it wasn't. But as soon as I had satisfied myself that Essie
was  all  right,  I  called  for Albert Einstein: "I want advice. Is there
anything that can be done to stop Peter Herter?"
   He scratched his nose.
   "You  mean  by  direct  action,  I  assume. No, Robin. Not by any means
available now."
   "I don't want to be told that! There must be something!"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin,"  he  said slowly, "but I think you're asking the
wrong  program. Indirect measures might work. As I understand it, you have
some  legal  questions unresolved. If you could resolve them, you might be
able to meet Herter's demands and stop him that way."
   "I've  tried  that!  It's the other way around, damn it! If I could get
Herter  to  stop,  then  maybe  I  could  get Gateway Corp to give me back
control.  Meanwhile  he's  screwing  up  everybody's  mind,  and I want it
stopped! Isn't there some kind of interference we could broadcast?"
   Albert  sucked  his  pipe. "I don't think so, Rob," he said at last. "I
don't have a great deal to go on."
   That startled me. "You don't remember what it feels like?"
   "Robin," he said patiently, "I don't feel anything. It is important for
you  to  remember  that  I  am  only a computer program. And not the right
program,  really,  to  discuss  the  exact  nature of the signals from Mr.
Herter-your  psychoanalytic  program might be more helpful. Analytically I
know  what happened-I have all the measurements of the radiation involved.
Experientially, nothing. Machine intelligence is not affected. Every human
being  experienced  something, I know because there are reports to say so.
There  is  evidence  that  the  larger-brained mammals-primates, dolphins,
elephants-were  also disturbed; and maybe other mammals were too, although
the  evidence is sketchy. But I have not experienced it directly.... As to
broadcasting  an interfering pattern, yes, perhaps that could be done. But
what  would be the effect, Robin? Bear in mind that the interfering signal
would  come  from  a nearby point, not one twenty-five light-days away; if
Mr. Herter can cause some disorientation, what would a random signal do at
close range?"
   "It would be bad, I guess."
   "Sure  thing, Robin. Probably worse than you guess, but I could not say
without  experimentation.  The subjects would have to be human beings, and
such experiments I cannot undertake."
   Over  my shoulder Essie's voice said proudly, "Yes, you exactly cannot,
as who would know better than I?"
   She  had  come up behind me without a sound, barefoot in the thick rug.
She  wore  a  neck-to-ankle  robe  and  her  hair was done up in a turban.
"Essie, what the hell are you doing out of bed?" I demanded.
   "My  bed  has become excessively tedious," she said, kneading my ear in
her  fingers,  "especially  occupied  alone.  Do  you  have plans for this
evening, Robin? Because, if invited, I would like to share yours."
   "But..."  I  said, and, "Essie..." I said, and what I wanted to say was
either  "You  shouldn't  be  doing  this  yet!"  or  "Not  in front of the
computer!" She didn't give me a chance to decide which. She leaned down to
press  her  cheek against mine, perhaps so that I might feel how round and
full it had once again become.
   "Robin,"  she  said  sunnily, "I am far more well than you believe. You
may ask the doctor, if you wish. She will tell you how very rapidly I have
healed."  She  turned  her head to kiss me quickly and added, "I have some
affairs  of  my  own for the next few hours. Please continue chatting with
your  program  until then. I am sure Albert has many interesting things to
tell you, isn't that so, Albert?"
   "Sure thing, Mrs. Broadhead," the program agreed, puffing cheerfully on
his pipe.
   "So,  then.  It's  settled." She patted my cheek and turned away, and I
have  to  say that as she walked back to her room she did not in the least
look  unwell.  The  robe was not tight, but it was shaped to her body, and
the  shape  of  her  body  was  really  fine. I could not believe that the
wadding of bandage all along her left side was gone, but there was no sign
of it.
   Behind  me,  my  science  program  coughed.  I  turned back, and he was
puffing on his pipe, his eyes twinkling.
   "Your wife is looking very well, Robin," he said, nodding judiciously.
   "Sometimes, Albert," I said, "I don't know just how anthropomorphic you
are. Well. What very interesting things do you want to tell me about?"
   "Whatever  you  want to hear, Robin. Shall I continue on the subject of
Peter  Herter? There are some other possibilities, such as the abort mode.
That is, setting aside for the moment the legal complications, it would be
possible  to  command  the shipboard computer, known as 'Vera', to explode
the fuel tanks on the orbital craft."
   "Hell it would! We'd destroy the greatest treasure we've ever found!"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin,  and  it's even worse than that. The chance of an
external  explosion damaging the installation Mr. Herter is using is quite
small.  It might only anger him. Or strand him there, to do as he chooses,
as long as he lives."
   "Forget it! Don't you have anything good to tell me about?"
   "As  a  matter  of  fact,  Robin,"  he  grinned, "I do. We've found our
Rosetta  stone." He shrank away to a dwindling spray of colored flecks and
disappeared.  As a luminous spindle-shaped mass of lavender color replaced
him in the tank, he said, "That is the image of the beginning of a book."
   "It's blank!"
   "I  haven't started it yet," he explained. The shape was taller than I,
and  about half as thick as it was tall. It began to shift before my eyes;
the  color  thinned out until I could see through it clearly and then one,
two, three dots began to appear inside it, points of bright red light that
spun  themselves  out  in a spiral. There was a sad chittering sound, like
telemetry  or  like  the  amplified  chirps of marmosets. Then the picture
froze. The sound stopped. Albert's voice said:
   "I  have  stopped it at this point, Robin. It is probable that sound is
language, but we have not yet been able to isolate semantic units from it.
However,  the 'text' is clear. There are one hundred thirty-seven of those
points of light. Now watch while I run a few more seconds of the book."
   The  spiral  of  137  tiny  stars  doubled itself. Another coil of dots
lifted  itself  from  the  original and floated to the top of the spindle,
where  it  hung  silently.  The  chitter  of  language began again and the
original  spiral  expanded itself, while each of the dots began to trace a
spiral  of  its  own.  When  it  was  finished there was one large spiral,
composed of 137 smaller spirals, each composed of 137 dots. Then the whole
red pattern turned orange and it froze.
   "Do you want to try to interpret that, Robin?'" Albert's voice asked.
   "Well, I can't count that high. But it looks like 137 times 137, right?"
   "Sure thing, Robin. 137 squared, making 18,769 dots in all. Now watch."
   Short  green  lines  slashed  the  spiral into ten segments. One of the
segments  lifted  itself  off,  dropped  to  the bottom of the spindle and
turned  red again. "That's not exactly a tenth of the number, Robin," said
Albert.  "By counting you find that there are now 1840 dots at the bottom.
I'll  proceed." Once again, the central figure changed color, this time to
yellow.  "Notice the top figure." I looked closely, and saw that the first
dot  had  turned orange, the third yellow. Then the central figure rotated
itself  on the vertical axis and spun out a three-D column of spirals, and
Albert said, "We now have a total of 137 cubed dots in the central figure.
From  here  on,"  he said kindly, "it gets a little tedious to watch. I'll
run  it  through  quickly." And he did, patterns of dots flying around and
isolating  themselves,  colors changing through yellow to avocado, avocado
to green, green to aqua, aqua to blue, and on through the spectrum, nearly
twice.  "Now,  do  you  see what we have? Three numbers, Robin. 137 in the
center.  1840  down  at  the bottom. 137 to the eighteenth power, which is
roughly  the  same  as  10 to the thirty-eighth, at the top. Or, in order,
three dimensionless numbers: the fine structure constant, the ratio of the
proton to the electron and the number of particles in the universe. Robin,
you  have  just  had  a  short  course  in  particle theory from a Heechee
teacher!"
   I said, "My God."
   Albert reappeared on the screen, beaming. "Exactly, Robin," he said.
   "But Albert! Does that mean you can read all the prayer fans?"
   His  face  fell. "Only the simple ones," he said regretfully. "This was
actually  the easiest. But from now on it's quite straightforward. We play
every  fan  and  tape  it.  We  look for correspondences. We make semantic
assumptions  and test them in as many contexts as we can find-we'll do it,
Robin. But it may take some time."
   "I don't want to take time," I snarled.
   "Sure  thing, Robin, but first every fan must be located, and read, and
taped, and coded for machine comparison, and then..."
   "I don't want to hear," I said. "Just do it-what's the matter?"
   His  expression  had  changed.  "It's a question of funding, Robin," he
said apologetically. "There's a great deal of machine time involved here."
   "Do  it!  As  far as you can go. I'll have Morton sell some more stock.
What else have you got?"
   "Something  nice,  Robin,"  he  grinned, shrinking in size until he was
just  a little face in the corner of the tank. Colors flowed in the center
of  the  display  and  fused  into a set of Heechee controls, displaying a
pattern  of  color on five of the ten panels. The others were blank. "Know
what  that  is, Robin? That's a composite of all the known Gateway flights
that wound up at Heechee Heaven. All the patterns you see are identical in
all  seven  known  missions.  The  others  vary,  but  it's  a pretty good
conjecture that they are not directly involved in course-setting."
   "What  are  you  saying,  Albert?"  I  demanded.  He  had  caught me by
surprise.  I  found  that I was beginning to shake. "Do you mean if we set
ship controls for that pattern we could get to Heechee Heaven?"
   "Point  nine  five yes, Robin," he nodded. "And I have identified three
ships, two on Gateway and one on the Moon, that will accept that setting."
   I  put on a sweater and walked down to the water. I didn't want to hear
any more.
   The  trickle  pipes  had  been  busy. I kicked my shoes off to feel the
damp,  pilowy  grass  and watched some boys, wind-trolling for perch, near
the  Nyack  shore, and I thought: This is what I bought by risking my life
on Gateway. What I paid for with Kiara's.
   And: Do I want to risk all this, and my life, again?
   But  it  wasn't  really  a question of "want to". If one of those ships
would  go  to  Heechee  Heaven and I could buy or steal a passage on it, I
would go.
   Then  sanity  saved me, and I realized I couldn't, after all. Not at my
age.  And not the way Gateway Corp was feeling about me. And, most of all,
not  in time. The Gateway asteroid orbits at right-angles to the ecliptic,
just  about.  Getting  there  from Earth is a tedious long job; by Hohmann
curves twenty months or more, under forced acceleration more than six. Six
months from now those ships would have been there and back.
   If they were coming back, of course.
   The realization was almost as much of a relief as it was a sick, hungry
sense of loss.
   Sigfrid  von  Shrink  never  told  me how to get rid of ambivalence (or
guilt).  He did tell me how to deal with them. The recipe is, mostly, just
to  let  them happen. Sooner or later they burn themselves out. (He says.)
At  least,  they  don't have to be paralyzing. So while I was letting this
ambivalence  smolder itself into ash I was also strolling along the water,
enjoying the pleasant under-the-bubble air and gazing proudly at the house
I  lived  in  and  the  wing  where my very dear, and for some time wholly
platonic, wife was, I hoped, getting herself good and rested. Whatever she
was doing, she wasn't doing it alone. Twice a taxicart had brought someone
over  from  the  tube  stop.  Both of them had been women; and now another
taxicart  pulled  up  and  let  out a man, who gazed around quite unsurely
while the taxi rolled itself around the circle and hurried off to its next
call.  I  somehow  doubted  that he was for Essie; but I could think of no
reason  why he would be for me, or at least why he could not be dealt with
by  Harriet.  So  it was a surprise when the rifle-speaker under the eaves
swiveled  around to point at me and Harriet's voice said, "Robin?' There's
a Mr. Haagenbusch here. I think you ought to see him."
   That  was very unlike Harriet. But she was usually right, so I strolled
up the lawn, rinsed my bare feet at the French windows and invited the man
into my study. He was a pretty old specimen, pink-skin bald, with a dapper
white  pair  of  sideburns  and  a  carefully American accent-not the kind
people  born  in  the United States usually have. "Thank you very much for
seeing me, Mr. Broadhead," he said, and handed me a card that read:
   Herr Doktor Advokat Wm. I. Haagenbusch
   "I'm  Pete  Herter's  lawyer,"  he  said.  "I  flew  this  morning from
Frankfort because I want to make a deal."
   How  very quaint of you, I thought; imagine coming in person to conduct
business!  But if Harriet wanted me to see this old flake she had probably
talked  it over with my legal program, so what I said was, "What kind of a
deal?"
   He  was  waiting  for me to tell him to sit down. I did. I suspected he
was  also waiting for me to order coffee or cognac for two, as well, but I
didn't  particularly want to do that. He took off black kid gloves, looked
at  his  pearly nails and said: "My client has asked for $250,000,000 paid
into  a  special  account  plus  immunity  from prosecution of any kind. I
received this message by code yesterday."
   I  laughed  out  loud.  "Christ, Haagenbusch, why are you telling me? I
haven't got that kind of money!"
   "No,  you  don't,"  he  agreed.  "Outside  of  your  investment  in the
Herter-Hall  syndicate  and  some fish-farm stock, you don't have anything
but  a  couple  of  places  to live and some personal effects. I think you
could raise six or seven million, not counting the Herter-Hall investment.
God knows what that might be worth right now, everything considered."
   I  sat back and looked at him. "You know I got rid of my tourist stuff.
So you checked me out. Only you forgot the food mines."
   "No,  I  don't  think  so, Mr. Broadhead. My understanding is that that
stock was sold this afternoon."
   It  was  not altogether pleasant to find out that he knew more about my
financial  position than I did. So Morton had had to sell that out, too! I
didn't  have  time  to  think  about  what that implied just then, because
Haagenbusch stroked his sideburns and went on: "The situation is this, Mr.
Broadhead.  I have advised my client that a contract obtained under duress
is  not  enforceable. He therefore no longer has any hope of attaining his
purposes  through  an agreement with the Gateway Corporation, or even with
your  syndicate.  So I have received new instructions: to secure immediate
payment  of  the  sum  I have mentioned; to deposit it in untraceable bank
accounts  in  his  name;  and  to  turn  it  over  to him when, and if, he
returns."
   "Gateway  won't  like  being blackmailed," I said. "Still, they may not
have any choice."
   "Indeed  they do not," he agreed. "What is wrong with Mr. Herter's plan
is  that  it won't work. I am sure they will pay over the money. I am also
sure that my communications will be tapped and my offices bugged, and that
the  justice  departments  of  every nation involved in the Gateway treaty
will  be  preparing  indictments  for Mr. Herter when he returns. I do not
want  to  be named in those indictments as an accomplice, Mr. Broadhead. I
know  what  will  happen. They'll find the money and take it back. They'll
void  Mr.  Herter's previous contract on grounds of his own noncompliance.
And they'll put him-him at least-in jail."
   "You're in a tough situation, Mr. Haagenbusch," I said.
   He  chuckled  dryly. His eyes were not amused. He stroked his sideburns
for  a  moment  and  burst out: "You don't know! Every day, long orders in
code!  Demand  this, guarantee that, I hold you personally responsible for
this other! And then I send off a reply that takes twenty-five days to get
there,  by  which  time  he  has  sent me fifty days of new orders and his
thoughts  are somewhere far beyond and he upbraids me and threatens me! He
is  not  a  well  man, and he certainly is not a young one. I do not truly
think that he will live to collect any of this blackmail. But he might."
   "Why don't you quit?"
   "I  would  if  I could! But if I quit, then what? Then he has no one on
his  side  at  all.  Then  what  would  he  do, Mr. Broadhead? Also..." he
shrugged,  "he  is a very old friend, Mr. Broadhead. He was at school with
my father. No. I can't quit. Also I can't do what he asks. But perhaps you
can.  Not  by handing over a quarter of a billion dollars, no, because you
have  never  had that kind of money. But you can make him an equal partner
with that. I think he would-no. I think he might accept that."
   "But  I've  already..."  I  stopped.  If Haagenbusch did not know I had
already  given half my holdings to Bover, I wasn't going to tell him. "Why
wouldn't I void the contract too?" I asked.
   He shrugged. "You might. But I think you would not. You are a symbol to
him,  Mr.  Broadhead, and I believe he would trust you. You see, I think I
know  what it is he wants from all this. It is to live the way you do, for
all that remains of his life."
   He  stood  up. "I do not expect you to agree to this at once," he said.
"I  have  perhaps  twenty-four  hours  before  I must reply to Mr. Herter.
Please think about this, and I will speak to you in one day."
   I  shook his hand, and had Harriet order him a taxicart, and stood with
him  in the driveway until it rolled up and bore him briskly away into the
early night.
   When  I  came  back  into my own room Essie was standing by the window,
looking  out  at the lights on the Tappan Sea. It was suddenly clear to me
who her visitors had been this day. At least one had been her hairdresser;
that  tawny Niagara of hair hung true and even to her waist once more, and
when  she  turned  to  smile  at me it was the same Essie who had left for
Arizona, all those long weeks before.
   "You  were  so very long with that little man," she remarked. "You must
be  hungry."  She  watched  me standing there for a moment, and laughed. I
suppose that the questions in my mind were written on my face, because she
answered  them.  "One,  dinner is ready now. Something light, which we can
eat at any time. Two, it is laid out in our room whenever you care to join
me  there.  And,  three,  yes, Robin, I have Wilma's assurance that all of
this is quite all right. Am much more well than you think, Robin dear."
   "You  surely  look about as well as a person can get," I said, and must
have been smiling because her pale, perfect eyebrows came down in a frown.
   "Are you amused at spectacle of horny wife?" she demanded. "Oh, no! No,
it  is  not  that at all," I said, putting my arms around her. "I was just
wondering  a moment ago why it was that anybody would want to live the way
I do. Now I know."
   Well.  We  made  love tentatively and slowly, and then when I found out
she  wasn't  going  to break we did it again, rougher and rowdier. Then we
ate most of the food that was waiting for us on the sideboard, and lounged
around  and hugged each other until we made love again. After that we just
sort  of  drowsed  for a while, spooned together, until Essie commented to
the  back  of my neck, "Pretty impressive performance for old goat, Robin.
Not too bad for seventeen-year-old, even."
   I  stretched  and yawned where I lay, rubbing my back against her belly
and breasts. "You sure got well in a hurry," I commented.
   She  didn't answer, just nuzzled my neck with her nose. There is a sort
of  radar that cannot be seen or heard that tells me true. I lay there for
a  moment,  then  disengaged  myself  and sat up. "Dearest Essie," I said,
"what aren't you telling me?"
   She  lay  within  my arm, face against my ribs. "About what?" she asked
innocently.
   "Come  on,  Essie."  When  she didn't answer, I said, "Do I have to get
Wilma out of bed to tell me?"
   She  yawned  and sat up. It was a false yawn; when she looked at me her
eyes  were  wide awake. "Wilma is most conservative," she said, shrugging.
"There  are  some  medicines to promote healing, corticosteroids and such,
which  she did not wish to give me. With them there is some slight risk of
consequences  many years from now-but by then, no doubt, Full Medical will
be able to cope, I am sure. So I insisted. It made her angry."
   "Consequence! You mean leukemia!"
   "Yes, perhaps. But most likely not. Certainly not soon."
   I  got out of the bed and sat naked on the edge so that I could see her
better. "Essie, why?"
   She slipped her thumbs under her long hair and pushed it back away horn
her  face  to  return  my  stare.  "Because  I  was in a hurry," she said.
"Because  you  are,  after  all,  entitled  to  a well wife. Because it is
uncomfortable  to  pee  through a catheter, not to say unesthetic. Because
was  my  decision to make and I made it." She threw the covers off her and
lay  back.  "Study  me,  Robin," she invited. "Not even scars! And inside,
under  skin,  am  fully  functional.  Can eat, digest, excrete, make love,
conceive your child if we should wish. Not next spring or maybe next year.
Now."
   And  it was all true. I could see it for myself. Her long pale body was
unmarked-no, not entirely; down her left side was an irregular paler patch
of  new skin. But you had to look to see it, and there was nothing else at
all  to  show that a few weeks earlier she had been gouged, and mutilated,
and in fact dead.
   I  was getting cold. I stood up to find Essie's robe for her and put my
own  on.  There was still some coffee on the sideboard, and still hot "For
me too," Essie said as I poured.
   "Shouldn't you be resting?"
   "When I am tired," she said practically, "you will know, because I will
roll  over  and  go to sleep. Has been very long time since you and I were
like this, Robin. Am enjoying it."
   She  accepted a cup from me and looked at me over the rim as she sipped
it. "But you are not," she observed.
   "Yes  I  am!"  And  I  was;  but  honesty made me add, "I puzzle myself
sometimes,  Essie. Why is it that when you show me love it comes out in my
head feeling like guilt?"
   She  put  down  her cup and lay back. "Do you wish to tell me about it,
dear Robin?"
   "I  just  have." Then I added, "I suppose, if anybody, I should call up
old Sigfrid von Shrink and tell him."
   "He is always available," she said.
   "Hum.  If I start with him God knows when I'd ever finish. Anyway, he's
not  the  program  I want to talk to. There's so much going on, Essie! And
it's all happening without me. I feel left out."
   "Yes,"  she said, "am aware this is how you feel. Is something you wish
to do, so will not feel left out any more?"
   "Well-maybe,"  I  said.  "About  Peter  Herter, for instance. I've been
fooling  around  with  a  kind  of an idea that I'd like to talk over with
Albert Einstein."
   She  nodded.  "Very well, why not?" She sat up on the edge of the bed..
"Hand me my slippers, please. Let us do this now."
   "Now? But it's late. You shouldn't be..."
   "Robin,"  she  said kindly, "I too have talked with Sigfrid von Shrink.
Is  good program, even if not written by me. Says you are good man, Robin,
well adjusted, generous, and to all of this I also can testify, not to add
excellent  lover  and  much  fun to be with. Come into study." She took my
hand  as  we  walked into the big room looking over the Tappan Sea and sat
before  my  console  in  the comfortable loveseat. "However," she went on,
"Sigfrid  says  you  have  great  talent  for  inventing reasons not to do
things. So I will help you get off dime. Daite gorod Polymat." She was not
talking  to  me,  but  to  the  console,  which  sprang at once into light
"Display  both  Albert  and  Sigfrid  programs," she ordered. "Access both
files  in  interactive  mode. Now, Robin! Let us pursue questions you have
raised. After all, I am quite interested too."
   This  wife  of  so  many  years,  this  S. Ya. Lavorovna I married, she
surprises me most when I least expect it. She sat quite comfortably beside
me,  holding  my  hand, while I talked quite openly about doing the things
that  I  had most wanted not to want. It was not just a matter of going to
Heechee  Heaven  and  the  Food Factory and stopping old Peter Herter from
messing up the world. It was where I might go after that
   But at first It did not look as though I were going anywhere. "Albert,"
I  said, "you told me that you had worked out a course setting for Heechee
Heaven from Gateway records. Can you do that for the Food Factory too?"
   The  two  of  them  were  sitting  side  by side in the PV tank, Albert
puffing  on  his  pipe,  Sigfrid,  hands  clasped  and silent, attentively
listening.  He  would  not speak until I spoke to him, and I was not doing
that.  "'Fraid  not,"  Albert said apologetically. "We have only one known
setting  for  the Food Factory, Trish Bover's, and that's not enough to be
sure.  Maybe  point-six  probable that it would get a ship there. But then
what,  Robin? It couldn't come back. Or at least Trish Bover's didn't." He
settled  himself  comfortably, and went on, "There are, of course, certain
alternatives."  He glanced at Sigfrid von Shrink beside him. "One might so
manipulate Herter's mind by suggestion that he would change his plans."
   "Would that work?" I was still talking to Albert Einstein. He shrugged,
and Sigfrid stirred but did not speak.
   "Oh, do not be such a baby," Essie scolded. "Answer, Sigfrid."
   "Gospozha  Lavorovna," he said, glancing at me, "I think not. I believe
my  colleague has raised this possibility only so that I might dismiss it.
I  have studied the records of Peter Herter's transmissions. The symbolism
is  quite  obvious.  The  angelic  women  with  the raptor beaks-what is a
'hooked nose', gospozha? Think of Payter's childhood, and what he heard of
the 'cleansing' of the world of the evil Jews. There is also the violence,
the  punitive  emotions. He is quite ill, has in fact already suffered one
coronary  attack, and is no longer rational; he has, in fact, regressed to
quite  a  childish  state.  Neither  suggestion nor appeals to reason will
work,  gospozha. The only possibility would be perhaps long-term analysis.
He would not likely agree, the shipboard computer could not well handle it
and, in any case, there is not time. I cannot help you, gospozha, not with
any real chance of success."
   Long  and  long  ago I spent a couple of hundred mostly very unpleasant
hours  listening  to  Sigfrid's reasonable, maddening voice, and I had not
wanted ever to hear it again. But, you know, it wasn't all that bad.
   Beside  me,  Essie  stirred, "Polymath," she called, "have fresh coffee
prepared." To me she said, "I think will be here for some time."
   "I don't know for what," I objected. "I seem to be stymied."
   "And  if  you are," she said comfortably, "we need not drink the coffee
but can go back to bed. Meanwhile am quite enjoying this, Robin."
   Well,  why  not?  I was strangely no more sleepy than Essie appeared to
be.  In  fact,  I  was  both alert and relaxed, and my mind had never been
clearer.  "Albert,"  I said, "is there any progress on reading the Heechee
books?"
   "Not much, Robin," he apologized. "There are other mathematical volumes
such as the one you saw, but as yet no language. Yes, Robin?"
   I  snapped my fingers. The vagrant thought that had been in the back of
my  mind  had come to the fore. "Gosh numbers," I said. "Those numbers the
book  showed  us.  They're  the  same  as the ones the Dead Men call 'gosh
numbers.'"
   "Sure thing, Robin," he nodded. "They are basic dimensionless constants
of  the  universe,  or  at  least  of this universe. However, there is the
question of Mach's Principle, which suggests..."
   "Not now, Albert! Where do you suppose the Dead Men got them?"
   He paused, frowning. Tapping out his pipe, he glanced at Sigfrid before
he said, "I would conjecture that the Dead Men interfaced with the Heechee
machine intelligence. no doubt there was some transmission both ways."
   "My very thought! What else do you conjecture the Dead Men might know?"
   "That  is very difficult to say. They are very incompletely stored, you
know.  Communication  was  extremely  difficult  at  best and has now been
interrupted entirely."
   I  sat  up straight. "And what if we got back in communication? What if
somebody went to Heechee Heaven to talk to them?"
   He  coughed.  Trying  not  to  be patronizing, he said, "Robin, several
members  of  the  Herter-Hall party, plus the boy, Wan, have failed to get
clear  answers from them on these questions. Even our machine intelligence
has  succeeded  only  poorly  though,"  he  said politely enough, "that is
primarily  because  of  the  necessity  to  interface  with  the shipboard
computer,  Vera.  They  are  poorly  stored,  Robin.  They  are obsessive,
irrational and often incoherent."
   Behind  me  Essie  was  standing with the tray of coffee and cups-I had
hardly  heard  the  bell  from  the kitchen to say it was ready. "Ask him,
Robin," she commanded.
   I  did  not  pretend  to  misunderstand.  "Hell,"  I  said, "all right,
Sigfrid.  That's  your  line of work. How do we trick them into talking to
us?"
   Sigfrid  smiled  and  unlaced  his  hands.  "It is good to speak to you
again,  Robin,"  he  said.  "I  would  like to compliment you on your very
considerable progress since we spoke last..."
   "Get on with it!"
   "Of  course, Robin. There is one possibility. The storage of the female
prospector,   Henrietta,   seems  rather  complete,  except  for  her  one
obsession,  that  is, with the unfaithfulness of her husband. I think that
if  a  machine  program  were  written  from what we know of her husband's
personality and interfaced with her..."
   "Make a fake husband for her?"
   "Essentially,  yes,  Robin,"  he nodded. "It wouldn't have to be exact.
Because  the  Dead Men in general are so poorly stored, any responses that
were  inappropriate  might  be overlooked. Of course, the program would be
quite..."
   "Stow it, Sigfrid. Can you write a program like that?"
   "Yes. With help from your wife, yes."
   "And then how do we get it in contact with Henrietta?"
   He looked sidewise at Albert. "I believe my colleague can help there."
   "Sure  thing,  Sigfrid," Albert said cheerily, scratching one foot with
the toe of the other. "One. Write the program, with ancillaries. Two. Read
it  into  a  PMAL-2  flip processor, with a gigabit fast-access memory and
necessary  slave units. Three. Put it in a Five and fire it off to Heechee
Heaven.  Then interface it with Henrietta and start the interrogation. I'd
give that, oh, maybe a point-nine probability of working."
   I frowned. "Why ship all that machinery around?"
   Patiently  he  said, "It's c, Robin. The speed of light. Lacking an FTL
radio, we have to ship the machine to where the job is."
   "The Herter-Hall computer has an FTL radio."
   "Too  dumb, Robin. Too slow. And I haven't told you the worst part. All
that  hardware  is  pretty big, you know. It would just about fill a Five.
Which  means  it  arrives  naked  and undefended at Heechee Heaven. And we
don't know who is going to meet it at the dock."
   Essie  was  sitting  beside  me again, looking beautiful and concerned,
holding  a  cup  of  coffee. I took it automatically and swallowed a gulp.
"You  said  'just  about'," I pointed out "Does that mean a pilot could go
along?"
   "'Fraid  not,  Robin.  There's  only room for about another hundred and
fifty kilos."
   "I only weigh half that!" I felt Essie tense beside me. We were getting
right down to it, now. I felt more clear-headed and sure of myself than in
weeks.  The  paralysis of inaction was loosening every minute. I was aware
of  what  I  was  saying, and very conscious of what it meant to Essie-and
unwilling to stop.
   "That's  true,  Robin,"  Albert conceded, "but do you want to get there
dead?  There's  food, water, air. Your round-trip standard allowance, with
all  provision  for  regeneration, comes to more than three hundred kilos,
and there simply is not..."
   "Cut  it out, Albert," I said. "You know as well as I do that we're not
talking  about  a round trip. We're talking about, what was it? Twenty-two
days.  That  was  flight time for Henrietta. That's all I need. Enough for
twenty-two days. Then I'll be on Heechee Heaven and it won't matter."
   Sigfrid  was  looking  very  interested, but silent. Albert was looking
concerned.  He admitted, "Well, that's true, Robin. But it's quite a risk.
There's no margin for error at all."
   I  shook  my  head.  I  was way ahead of him-way ahead, at any rate, of
where  he  was  willing  to go by himself. "You said there's a Five on the
Moon  that  will  accept  that destination. Is there a what-do-you-call-it
PMAL there too?"
   "No,  Robin,"  he  said,  but  added  sadly,  "However, there is one at
Kourou, ready for shipment to Venus."
   "Thank  you,  Albert," I said, half a snarl because it was like pulling
teeth  to get it out of him. And then I sat back and contemplated what had
just been said.
   I was not the only one who had been listening intently. Beside me Essie
set  down  her  coffee cup. "Polymath," she commanded, "access and display
Morton  program,  in  interactive  mode. Go ahead, Robin. Do what you must
do."
   There  was the sound of a door opening from the tank, and Morton walked
in,  shaking hands with Sigfrid and Albert as he glanced over his shoulder
at me. He was accessing information as he stepped, and I could tell by his
expression  that  he didn't like what he was finding out. I didn't care. I
said,  "Morton!  There's a PMAL-2 information processor at the launch base
in Guiana. Buy it for me."
   He  turned  and  confronted  me.  "Robin," he said stubbornly, "I don't
think  you realize how rapidly you're eating into capital! This program is
costing  you  over  a  thousand  dollars a minute alone. I'll have to sell
stock..."
   "Sell it!"
   "Not  only  that. If you're planning to ship yourself and that computer
to  Heechee  Heaven.  Don't!  Don't even think of it! First place, Bover's
injunction  still  prevents  it. Second place, if you should manage to get
around that, you'd be liable to a contempt citation and damages that..."
   "I  didn't  ask you about that, Morton. Suppose I got Bover to lift his
injunction. Could they stop me then?"
   "Yes!  But,"  he  added, softening, "although they could, there is some
chance  they  would not. At least not in time. Nevertheless, as your legal
advisor, I have to say..."
   "You  don't have to say anything. Buy the computer. Albert and Sigfrid,
program  it  the  way  we discussed. You three get out of the tank; I want
Harriet.  Harriet?  Get  me a flight, Kourou to the Moon, same ship as the
computer  Morton's  buying for me, soon as you can. And while you're doing
that  see  if  you can locate Hanson Bover for me. I want to talk to him."
When  she  nodded and winked away I turned to look at Essie. Her eyes were
damp, but she was smiling.
   "You know something?" I said. "Sigfrid never called me 'Rob' or 'Bobby'
once."
   She  put  her  arms around me and hugged me close. "Maybe he thinks you
are  not  to  be treated like an infant now," she said. "And neither am I,
Robin.  Do  you  think  I  wanted  to  get well only so we could make love
quickly?  No. It was also so you would not be held prisoner here by a wife
you  thought  it wicked to leave. And so that I would be well able to deal
with it," she added, "when you left anyway."
   We  landed at Cayenne in pitch dark and pouring rain. Bover was waiting
for me as I cleared Customs, half asleep in a foam armchair by the baggage
terminal.  I  thanked him several times for meeting me, but he shrugged it
off. "We have only two hours," he said. "Let us get on with it."
   Harriet had chartered a chopper for us. We took off over the palms just
as  the sun was coming up from the Atlantic. By the time we reached Kourou
it  was  full  daylight, and the lunar module was erect beside its support
tower.  It  was  tiny compared to the giants that climb up from Kennedy or
California,   but  the  Centre  Spatial  Guyanais  gets  one-sixth  better
performance out of its rockets, being almost on the equator, so they don't
have  to  be as big. The computer was already loaded and stowed, and Bover
and  I  got aboard at once. Slam. Shove. Retching taste of the breakfast I
shouldn't have eaten on the airplane rising in my throat, and then we were
under way.
   It  takes  three  days for the lunar flight. I spent as much of it as I
could  sleeping,  the rest talking to Bover. It was the longest time I had
spent  out of reach of my comm facilities in at least a dozen years, and I
thought it would hang heavy on my hands. It went like lightning. I woke up
when  the acceleration warnings went off, and watched the brassy Moon rise
up toward us, and then there we were.
   Considering how far I had been, it was surprising that I had never been
on  the  Moon  before.  I  didn't  know  what to expect. It all took me by
surprise:  the  dancy, prancy feeling of weighing no more than an inflated
rubber doll, the sound of the reedy tenor that came out of my mouth in the
twenty-percent  helium  atmosphere. They weren't breathing Heechee mixture
any  more,  not  on the Moon. Heechee digging machines went like a bomb in
the lunar rock, and with all the sunlight anybody could want to drive them
it cost nothing to keep them going. The only problem was filling them with
air, which was why they supplemented with helium-cheaper and easier to get
than N2.
   The  Heechee  lunar  spindle is near the shuttle base-or, to put it the
right  way  around,  the  shuttle  base  was located where it is, near Fra
Mauro,  because  that  was  where the Heechee had dug most a million years
before. It was all underground, even the docking ports concealed under the
lee of a ridge. A couple of American astronauts named Shepard and Mitchell
had  spent  a  weekend  roaming around within two hundred kilometers of it
once,  and  never  noticed  it  was  there. Now a community of more than a
thousand  people  lived  in  the spindle, and the digs and the new tunnels
were  branching off in all directions, and the lunar surface was a rash of
microwave  dishes  and solar collectors and plumbing. "Hi, you," I said to
the  first  able-bodied man who seemed to have nothing to do. "What's your
name?"
   He loped leisurely toward me, chewing on an unlighted cigar. "What's it
to you?" he asked.
   "There's  cargo  coming off the shuttle. I want it loaded onto the Five
that's  in  the  dock  now.  You'll need half a dozen helpers and probably
cargo-handling equipment, and it's a rush job."
   "Urn," he said. "You got authority for this?"
   "I'll  show  it  to  you  when I pay you off," I said. "And the pay's a
thousand dollars a man, with a ten thousand dollar bonus to you personally
if you do it within three hours."
   "Urn.  Let's  see  the  cargo."  It  was just coming off the rocket. He
looked  it  over carefully, scratched for a while, thought for a while. He
wasn't  entirely  without  conversation.  A  couple  of words at a time it
developed that his name was A. T. Walthers, Jr., and that he had been born
in  the tunnels on Venus. By his bangle I could tell that he had tried his
luck  on Gateway, and by the fact that he was doing odd jobs on the Moon I
could  tell that his luck hadn't been good. Well, mine hadn't been either,
the first couple of times; and then it changed. In which direction is hard
to  say. "Can do it, Broadhead," he said at last, "but we don't have three
hours.  That joker Herter is due to perform again in about ninety minutes.
We'll have to wrap this up before that."
   "All the better," I said. "Now, which way is the Gateway Corp office?"
   "North end of the spindle," he said. "They close in about half an hour."
   All  the  better,  I  thought  again, but didn't say it. Dragging Bover
after  me  I prancy-danced back along the tunnel to the big spindle-shaped
cavern  that  was  headquarters  for  the area and argued our way into the
Launch  Director's  room. "You'll want an open circuit to Earth for ID," I
told  her.  "I'm Robin Broadhead, and here's my thumbprint. This is Hanson
Bover-if  you'll  oblige, Bover..." He pressed his thumb on the plate next
to mine. "Now say your bit," I invited him.
   "I,  Allen  Bover,"  he  said  by  rote, "hereby withdraw my injunction
against Robin Broadhead, the Gateway Corp et al."
   "Thank  you,"  I  said.  "Now,  Director,  while you're verifying that,
here's  a signed copy of what Bover has just said for your records, plus a
mission plan. Under my contract with Gateway Corp. which your machines can
retrieve  for  you,  I have the right to make use of Gateway facilities in
connection with the Herter-Hall expedition. I am going to do so, for which
purpose  I need the Five at present parked in your landing docks. You will
see  by  the  mission plan that I intend to go to Heechee Heaven, and from
there  to  the  Food  Factory,  where  I  will  prevent  Peter Herter from
inflicting  any  more  damage  to the Earth, also rescuing the Herter-Hall
party  and  returning valuable Gateway information for processing and use.
And I'd like to leave within the next hour," I finished strongly.
   Well,  for  a  minute  there  it  looked like it was going to work. The
Launch Director looked at the thumbprints on the register plate, picked up
the  spool  of mission plan and weighed it in her hand, and then stared at
me  in  silence  for  a  moment, her mouth open. I could hear the whine of
whatever  volatile gas they were using in the heat engines, Carnot-cycling
from  under  the  Fresnel lenses to the shaded artichoke-shaped reflectors
just  above  us.  I  didn't hear anything else at all. Then she sighed and
said, "Senator Praggler, have you been getting all that?"
   And  from  the air behind her desk came Praggler's growl. "You bet your
ass I have, Sally. Tell Broadhead it won't work. He can't have the ship."
   It was the three days in transit that had done me in. Automatically the
passport  identities  of  all  passengers  were  radioed  ahead,  and  the
officials had known I was coming before the shuttle left French Guiana. It
was  just chance that it was Praggler who was there to meet me; even if he
hadn't  been,  they had plenty of time to get orders from the headquarters
in  Brasilia.  I  thought for a while that because it was Praggler I could
talk  him  out  of  it. I couldn't. I yelled at him for thirty minutes and
begged  for thirty more. no good. "There's nothing wrong with your mission
plan,"  he  admitted.  "What's  wrong  is  you. You're not entitled to use
Gateway  facilities,  because  Gateway Corp preempted you yesterday, while
you were in orbit. Even if it hadn't, Robin, I wouldn't let you go. You're
too personally involved. Not to mention too old for this kind of thing."
   "I'm an experienced Gateway pilot! "
   "You're  an  experienced pain in the ass, Robin. And maybe a little bit
crazy,  too.  What  do  you  think one man could do on Heechee Heaven? No.
We'll  use  your plan. We'll even pay you royalties on it-if it works. But
we'll  do it the right way, from Gateway itself, with at least three ships
going, two of them full of young, healthy, well armed daredevils."
   "Senator,"  I pleaded, "let me go! If you ship this computer to Gateway
it'll take months-years!"
   "Not  if  we  send  it right up there in the Five," he said. "Six days.
Then  it  can take right off again, in convoy. But not with you. However,"
he  said reasonably, "we'll certainly pay you for the computer and for the
program.  Leave  it  at that, Robin. Let somebody else take the risks. I'm
speaking as your friend."
   Well,  he was my friend and we both knew it, but maybe not as much of a
friend  as  he  had  been,  after  I  told  him  what he could do with his
friendship. Finally Bover pulled me away. The last I saw of the Senator he
was  sitting  on  the edge of the desk staring after me, face still purple
with rage, eyes looking as though they were getting ready to weep.
   "That's tough luck, Mr. Broadhead," said Bover sympathetically.
   I  took a breath to straighten him out, too, and stopped myself just in
time.  There was no point in it. "I'll get you a ticket back to Kourou," I
said.
   He  smiled,  showing  perfectly  chiseled Chiclets-he had been spending
some  of  that  money  on  himself.  "You  have  made  me  a rich man, Mr.
Broadhead.  I can pay for my own ticket. Also, I've never been here before
and will not likely come again, so I think I'll stay a while."
   "Suit yourself."
   "And you, Mr. Broadhead? What are your plans?"
   "I  don't  have  any."  Nor  could  I  think  of  any. I had run out of
programming.  I  cannot tell you how empty that feels. I had nerved myself
up  for  another  Heechee mystery-ship ride-well, not as much a mystery as
when  I was prospecting out of Gateway. But still a pretty scary prospect.
I  had  taken  a step with Essie that I had feared taking for a long time.
And all for nothing.
   I  stared  wistfully  down  the long, empty tunnel toward the docks. "I
might shoot my way through," I said.
   "Mr. Broadhead! That's-that's..."
   "Oh,  don't worry. I'm not going to, mostly because all the guns I know
anything  about are already loaded onto that Five. And I doubt they'll let
me in to get one."
   He  peered into my face. "Well," he said doubtfully, "perhaps you, too,
might enjoy just spending a few days..."
   And then his expression changed.
   I  hardly  saw  it;  I was feeling what he felt, and that was enough to
demand  all  my  attention.  Old  Peter was in the couch again. Worse than
ever.   It   was   not   just   his   dreams  and  fantasies  that  I  was
experiencing-that  everyone  alive  was  feeling.  It  was  pain. Despair.
Madness.  There  was  a  terrible  sense of pressure around the temples, a
flaming  ache  from  arms and chest. My throat was dry, then raw with sour
clots as I vomited.
   Nothing like that had ever come from the Food Factory before.
   But then no one had ever died in the couch before. It did not stop in a
minute,  or  in  ten.  My  lungs  heaved  in  great starving gasps. So did
Bover's.  So  did  everyone  else's,  wherever  they  were in range of his
transmission.  The  pain  kept  on,  and  every  time it seemed to reach a
plateau there was an explosion of new pain; and all the time there was the
terror,  the  rage,  the  awful misery of a man who knew he was dying, and
hated it.
   But I knew what it was.
   I  knew  what  it was, and I knew what I could do-what at least my body
could  do,  if  I  could  only  hold my mind together enough to make it. I
forced  myself  to  take a step, and then another. I made myself trot down
that wide, weary corridor, when Bover was writhing on the ground behind me
and  the  guards  were staggering, completely helpless, ahead. I blundered
past them and doubt they even saw me, into the narrow hatch of the lander,
tumbling  all  bruised and shaken, forcing myself to dog it closed over my
head.
   And   there  I  was,  in  the  disastrously  familiar  tiny  cubbyhole,
surrounded  by shapes of molded tan plastic. Walthers had done his part of
the  job,  at  least. I had no way of paying him for it, but if he had put
his hand in the port as I was closing it I would have given him a million.
   At  some point old Peter Herter died. His death did not end the misery.
It  only  began to slow it down. I could not have guessed what it would be
like  to  be  in  the mind of a man who has died, while he feels his heart
stop and his bowels loosen and the certainty of death stab into his brain.
It  goes  on much longer than I would have believed possible. It was going
on  all  the  time  I  cut  the  lander loose and sent it up on its little
hydrogen  jets  to where the Heechee drive could work. I jammed and heaved
the  course-guidance  wheels  about  until  they  showed that well-learned
pattern Albert had taught me.
   And  then  I  squeezed  the  launch teat, and I was on my way. The ship
began  its  lurchy,  queasy  acceleration.  The star patterns I could see,
barely  see,  by  craning  past  a  memory-storage  unit,  began  to drift
together. no one could stop me now. I could not even stop myself.
   By  all  the  data  Albert  had  been able to collect the trip would be
twenty-two  days exactly. Not very long-not unless you are squeezed into a
ship  that  is  already  filled to capacity. There was room for me-more or
less. I could stretch out. I could stand up. I could even lie down, if the
vagrant  motion of the ship let me know where "down" was, and if I did not
mind  being  folded over between pieces of metal. What I could not do, for
those   twenty-two   days,  was  move  more  than  half  a  meter  in  any
direction-not  to  eat,  not  to  sleep,  not to bathe or excrete; not for
anything.
   There was plenty of time on my hands for the purpose of remembering how
terrifying Heechee flight was, and to feel all of it.
   There  was  plenty  of  time, too, to learn. Albert had been careful to
record for me all the data I had not had the wit to ask him for, and those
tapes  were  available  for  me to play. They were not very interesting or
sophisticated in delivery. The PMAL-2 was all memory: plenty of brain, not
much   display.  There  was  no  three-dimensional  tank,  only  a  stereo
flat-plate  goggle system when my eyes would bear watching it, or a screen
the size of the palm of my hand when they would not.
   At  first  I  did  not  use it. I just lay there, sleeping as much as I
could.  Partly  I  was  recovering  from  the  trauma of Peter's death, so
terrifyingly like my own. Partly I was experimenting with the inside of my
head-allowing  myself  to  feel  fear  (when  I had every reason for it!),
encouraging  myself  to feel guilt. There are kinds of guilt that I know I
cherish,  the contemplation of obligations unmet and commitments undone. I
had plenty of those to think about, beginning with Peter (who would almost
surely  have  been  still  alive,  if  I  had  not  accepted  him for that
expedition)  and  ending,  or  rather not ending, with Kiara in her frozen
black  hole-not  ending  because  I  could  always  think  of others. That
amusement  staled  before  long. To my surprise I found that the guilt was
not  very overpowering after all, once I let myself feel it; and that took
care of the first day.
   Then  I  turned  to  the  tapes.  I  let  the  semi-Albert,  the rigid,
half-animated  caricature  of  the program I knew and loved, lecture me on
Mach's  Principle and gosh numbers and more curious forms of astrophysical
speculation  than I had ever dreamed of. I didn't really listen, but I let
the voice roll over me, and that was the second day.
   Then,  from  the  same source, I poured into myself all that was stored
about  the  Dead  Men. I had heard almost all of it before. I heard it all
again. I had nothing better to do, and that was the third day.
   Then  there  were  miscellaneous  lectures  on  Heechee  Heaven and the
provenance  of  the  Old  Ones  and  possible  strategies for dealing with
Henrietta  and possible risks to be guarded against from the Old Ones, and
that was the third day, and the fourth, and the fifth.
   I  began  to wonder how I would fill twenty-two of them, so I went back
and  did  those  tapes all over again, and that was the sixth day, and the
eighth,  and the tenth; and on the eleventh. On the eleventh I cut off the
computer entirely, grinning to myself with anticipated pleasure.
   It  was halfway day. I hung there in my restraining straps, waiting for
the  satisfaction  of  the  one  event  this cramped and cussed trip could
produce  for  me:  the twinkling eruption of golden sparks of light in the
crystal  spiral  that  would  signify turnover time. I didn't know exactly
when  it  would  happen. Probably not in the first hour of the day (and it
didn't).  Probably  not,  either, in the second or third... and it didn't.
Not  in  those hours, nor in the fourth, or fifth, or the ones after that.
It did not happen at all on the eleventh day.
   Or on the twelfth.
   Or on the thirteenth.
   Or  on  the fourteenth; and when at last I punched in the data to check
out  the  arithmetic I did not care to do in my head, the computer told me
what I did not want to know.
   It was too late.
   Even  if  the  halfway  point  occurred  any  time now-even in the next
minute-there  would  not be water, food and air enough to carry me through
to the end.
   There  are  economies  one  can  make. I made them. I moistened my lips
instead  of  drinking,  slept all I could, breathed as shallowly as I knew
how. And turnover at last did occur-on day nineteen. Eight days late.
   When  I  played  the  figures into the computer they came back cold and
clear.
   The  halfway  point  had come too late. Nineteen days from now the ship
might  well  arrive at Heechee Heaven, but not with a living pilot aboard.
By then I would have been dead for at least six.

   As  she  began  to  be able to speak to the Old Ones they began to seem
more  like  individuals  to  her.  They were not really old, either. Or at
least the three that most often guarded her and fed her and led her to her
sessions  in  the  long night of the dreams were not. They learned to call
her  Janine,  or  at  least  something  close enough. Their own names were
complicated, but each name had a short form-Tar, or Tor, or Hooay-and they
responded  to  them,  at  need  or  just for play. They were as playful as
puppies,  and  as solicitous. When she came out of the bright blue cocoon,
racked  and  sweating  from  another  life  and another death-from another
lesson,  in  this course that the Oldest One had prescribed for her-one of
them was always there to coo and murmur and stroke.
   But  it  was not enough! There was no consolation enough to make up for
what happened in the dreams, over and over.
   Every  day  was  the same. A few hours of uneasy and unrestful sleep. A
chance  to  eat.  Maybe  a  game of tag or touch-tickle with Hooay or Tor.
Perhaps  a  chance to wander about the Heaven, always guarded. Then Tar or
Hooay or one of the others would tug her gently back to the cocoon and put
her  inside and then, for hours, sometimes for what seemed like the entire
span  of  a life, Janine would be someone else. And such strange someones!
Male.  Female.  Young. Old. Mad. Crippled-they were all different. None of
them  were  quite  human.  Most  were  not  human  at  all, especially the
earliest, oldest someones.
   The  lives she "dreamed" that were the closest in time were the nearest
to  her  own. At least, they were the lives of creatures not unlike Tor or
Tar  or Hooay. They were not usually frightening, though all of them ended
in  death.  In  them she lived random and chaotic snatches of their stored
memories  of  the  short  and  chancy,  or dull and driven, lives they had
known. As she came to understand the language of her captors she found out
that  the lives she lived were those which had been specially selected (by
what  criteria?) to be stored. So each had some special lesson. All of the
dreams  were  learning  experiences  for her, of course, and of course she
learned.  She learned how to speak to the living ones; to understand their
overshadowed  existences;  to comprehend their obsessed need to obey. They
were  slaves!  Or  pets?  When they did what the Oldest One told them they
were  obedient,  and therefore good. When, rarely, they did not, they were
punished.
   Between  times  she  saw  Wan sometimes, and sometimes her sister. They
were  kept  apart  from  her  as  a matter of policy. At first she did not
understand  why;  then she did, and laughed inside herself at the joke too
secret  to share with even jokey Tor. Lurvy and Wan were learning too, and
taking it no better than she.
   By  the  end of the first six "dreams" she could speak to the Old Ones.
Her lips and throat would not quite form their chirping, murmuring vowels,
but  she  could  make  herself understood. More urgently, she could follow
their  orders.  That  saved  trouble.  When she was meant to return to her
private  cell  they did not need to push her, and when she was supposed to
bathe  they  did not have to strip her of her clothes. By the tenth lesson
they  were  almost  friendly.  By  the fifteenth she (and Lurvy and Wan as
well)  knew  all  they ever would about Heechee Heaven, including the fact
that the Old Ones were not, and never had been, Heechee.
   Not even the Oldest One.
   And  who  was  the Oldest One? Her lessons had not taught her that. Tar
and Hooay explained, as best they could, that the Oldest One was God. That
was  not a satisfying answer. He was a god too much like his worshipers to
have  built  Heechee Heaven or any part of it, including his own body. No.
The  Heaven was Heechee-built, for what purpose only the Heechee knew, and
the Oldest One was not a Heechee.
   Through  all  this  the  great  machine was immobile again, motionless,
almost dead, conserving its dwindling remnant of life. When Janine crossed
the  central  spindle  she  saw  it there, still as a statue. Occasionally
there was a sluggish flicker of pale color around its external sensors, as
though  it  were on the verge of awakening, perhaps following them through
half-closed  eyes.  When  that happened, Hooay and Tar would quicken their
step.  There  was no touch-tickle or joking then. Mostly it was absolutely
still. She passed Wan in its very shadow one day, she going to the cocoon,
he  coming  away, and Hooay dared to let them talk for a moment. "It looks
scary," Janine said.
   "I  could  destroy  it  for  you,  if  you like," Wan boasted, glancing
nervously over his shoulder at the machine. But he had said it in English,
and had the wisdom not to translate it for their guards. But even the tone
of his voice made Hooay uneasy, and he hustled Janine away.
   Janine  was  becoming  almost fond of her captors, as one might be of a
great,  gentle  Malemute that could talk. It took her a long time to think
of  a  young  female  like Tar as either young or female. They all had the
same  scraggly facial hair and the heavy supraorbital lobes characteristic
of  the  mature male primate. But they began to become individuals, rather
than  specimens  of  the class "jailer". The heavier and darker of the two
males  was  called "Tor," but that was only one syllable out of a long and
subtle  name  from  which Janine could only understand the word "dark". It
did  not  refer  to  his  coloring.  If  anything,  he was fairer than his
fellows.  It  had something to do with an adventure of his childhood, in a
part  of the Heaven so strange and so seldom visited that there was little
light  from even the eternal Heechee-metal walls. Tor trimmed his beard so
that  it jutted down from his jaw in two inverted horns. Tor made the most
jokes,  and  tried  to  share  them with his prisoner. Tor was the one who
jested  with  Janine, saying that if her male, Wan, was as infertile as he
seemed  to  be  while  penned  with Lurvy, he would ask the Oldest One for
permission  to  impregnate her himself. Janine, cherishing her secret joke
about their infertility, was not frightened. She was not repelled, either,
because  Tor  was  a  kindly  sort  of  satyr,  and she believed she could
recognize  the  jest.  All  the  same, she began to think of herself as no
longer a snotty kid. Each long dream aged her. In them she experienced the
sexual  intercourse  she  had  never  known  in life-sometimes as a woman,
sometimes  not-and  often pain, and always, at the end, death. The records
could  not  be  made from a living person, Hooay explained in a nonplayful
moment;  and  his manner was not playful at all as he described the way in
which the brain was opened and fed into the machine that made the records.
She grew a little older while he was telling her.
   As  the  dreams went on, they became stranger and more remote. "You are
going  to  very old times," Tor told her. "This one now..." he was leading
her  toward  the  cocoon  "-is  the  very  oldest, and therefore the last.
Perhaps."
   She  paused beside the gleaming couch. "Is this another joke, Tor, or a
riddle?"
   "No." He tugged soberly at the forks of his beard with both hands. "You
will not like this one, Danine."
   "Thanks."
   He  grinned,  to  crinkle the corners of his sad, soft eyes. "But it is
the last I can give you. Perhaps-perhaps the Oldest One will then give you
a  dream out of his own. It is said that he has sometimes done that, but I
do not know when. Not in any person's memory."
   Janine swallowed. "It sounds scary," she said.
   He  said kindly, "It frightened me very much when I had it, Danine, but
remember  that it is only a dream, for you." And he closed the cocoon over
her,  and  Janine  fought  for  a  moment against the sleep, and failed as
always... and was someone else.
   Once  there  was  a creature. It was female; but it was not an "it", if
Descartes  is  to  be believed, because it was aware of its own existence,
and therefore it was a "she".
   She  had  no name. But she was marked among her fellows by a great scar
from  ear  to nose, where the hoof of a dying prey-beast had nearly killed
her. Her eye on that side had healed with the lid pulled out of shape, and
so she might be called "Squint".
   Squint  had  a  home.  It  was  not  elaborate.  It  was no more than a
trampled-out  nest  in a clump of something like papyrus, partly sheltered
by  a  hummock  of  earth.  But Squint and her relatives returned to those
nests  every  day  and  in  this  they were unlike any of the other living
things  that  resembled  them. In one other respect they were quite unlike
anything  else they grew up with, and that was that they used objects that
were  not  parts  of  their  bodies  to  do  work for them. Squint was not
beautiful.  She  stood not much over a meter tall. She had no eyebrows-the
hair  on her scalp merged with them, and only her nose and cheekbones were
bare-and she had no chin to speak of. Her hands had fingers, but they were
usually  clenched so that the backs of them were scarred and callused, and
the  fingers did not separate well-not much better than the fingers of her
feet,  which were almost as good at grasping things, and better at gouging
out the vulnerable parts of a creature unfortunate enough to find her arms
wrapped  around  its  neck  as  it tried to run away. Squint was pregnant,
although  she  did  not  know  that this was so. Squint was full grown and
fully  fertile  by  her  fifth rainy season. In the thirteen years she had
been alive she had been pregnant nine or ten times, and had never known it
until  she  was forced to note that she could no longer run quite as fast,
that the bulge in her belly made it more difficult to rake the guts out of
a  prey-animal  and  that  her dugs began to swell again with milk. Of the
fifty  members of her community at least four were her children. More than
a  dozen  of  the  males were, or might have been, the children's fathers.
Squint  was  aware  of  the former relationship, but not of the latter. At
least  one  of  the  young males she knew to be a child of hers might well
have  been  the  father of another-a notion which would not have disturbed
Squint, even if she had been capable of entertaining it. The thing she did
with  the  males  when  the  flesh beneath her skinny buttocks swelled and
reddened  was not in her mind related to childbirth. It was not related to
pleasure,  either.  It  was  an  itch  that  she  suffered to be scratched
whenever  it  happened.  Squint  had no way of defining "pleasure," except
perhaps as the absence of pain. Even in those terms, she knew little of it
throughout her life.
   When  the  Heechee  lander bellowed and flamed above the clouds, Squint
and all her community ran to hide. None of them saw it come to earth.
   If a trawl scoops a starfish from the bottom of a sea, a spade lifts it
from  the  bucket of ooze and dumps it in a tank, a biologist pins it down
and  dissects  out  its  nervous  system-does  the  starfish  know what is
happening to it?
   Squint had more self-awareness than a starfish. But she had little more
background  of experience to inform her. Nothing that happened to her from
the  moment she saw a bright light shining in her eyes made sense. She did
not  feel the point of the anesthetic lance that put her to sleep. She did
not  know  she was carried into the lander and dumped into a pen of twelve
of  her  fellows. She did not feel the crushing acceleration when she took
off,  or the weightlessness for the long time they floated in transit. She
did not know anything at all until she was allowed to waken again, and did
not understand what she then experienced.
   Nothing was familiar!
   Water.  The  water  Squint drank did not any longer come from the muddy
brink  of the river. It came in a shiny, hard trough. When she bent to lap
it up nothing lurked beneath its surface to lunge at her.
   Sun  and  sky. There was no sun! There were no clouds, and there was no
rain.  There  were  hard,  blue-gleaming  walls,  and a blue-gleaming roof
overhead.
   Food.  There was no live thing to catch and dismember. There were flat,
tough,  tasteless clods of chewy matter. They filled her stomach, and they
were  always  available. no matter how much she and her fellows ate, there
was always more.
   Sights  and  sounds and smells-these were terrifying! There was a stink
she  had  never  smelled  before,  sharp in her nose and scary. It was the
smell  of  something  alive, but she never saw the creature that owned it.
There  was an absence of normal smells almost as bad. no smell of deer. no
smell of antelope. no smell of cat (that one a blessing). no smell even of
their own dung, or not very much, because they had no rushes to tramp into
a  home,  and the places where they huddled together to sleep were sluiced
clean  every  time they left them. Her baby was born there, while the rest
of  the  tribe complained at her grunts because they wanted to sleep. When
she  woke  to lift it to her, to relieve the hot pressure in her teats, it
was gone. She never saw it again.
   Squint's newborn was the first to disappear immediately after birth. It
was  not  the  last. For fifteen years the little australopithecine family
continued to eat and copulate and bear and grow old, its numbers dwindling
because  the  infants  were taken away as soon as born. One of the females
would  squat and strain and whimper and give birth. Then they would all go
to  sleep, and awaken with the little one gone. From time to time an adult
would  die,  or  come close enough to it to lie curled and moaning so that
they  knew  it  would not rise again. Then too they would all go to sleep;
and  that adult, or that adult's body, would be gone when they woke. There
were  thirty  of them, then twenty, then ten-then only one. Squint was the
last,  a  very,  very old female at twenty-nine. She knew she was old. She
did  not  know she was dying, only that there was a terrible crushing pain
in  her  belly  that  made her gasp and sob. She did not know when she was
dead.  She  only  knew that that particular pain stopped, and then she was
conscious of another sort of pain. Not really pain. Strangeness. Numbness.
She  saw,  but  she saw queerly flatly, queerly flickeringly, in a queerly
distorted range of colors. She was not used to her new vision, and did not
recognize  what she saw. She tried to move her eyes and they did not move.
She  tried  to  move head, or arms, or legs, and could not because she did
not have any. She remained in that condition for some considerable time.
   Squint  was  not  a preparation, in the sense that the live but exposed
nervous  system of a biologist's brittle star is a preparation. She was an
experiment.
   She  was not a very great success. The attempt to preserve her identity
in  machine  storage  did not fail for the reasons that had terminated the
earlier  trials,  with  the  other  members  of  her  tribe: poor match of
chemistry  to receptors; incomplete transfer of information; wrong coding.
One  by  one  the  Heechee experimenters had met all of those problems and
solved  them.  Her  experiment  failed,  or  succeeded only in part, for a
different  reason.  There  was not enough of an identity in the being that
could  be recognized as "Squint" to preserve. She was not a biography, not
even  a journal. She was something like a census datum, punctuated by pain
and illustrated with fear.
   But that was not the only experiment the Heechee had in progress.
   In another section of the immense machine that orbited Earth's sun from
half  a  light-year  out, the stolen babies were beginning to thrive. They
were leading lives quite different from Squint's-lives marked by automatic
care,  heuristic  tests  and programmed challenges. The Heechee recognized
that,  although these australopithecines were a long way from intelligent,
they  contained  the seeds of wiser descendants. They decided to hurry the
process along.
   Not  much development occurred in the fifteen years between the removal
of  the  colony  from its prehistoric African home and Squint's death. The
Heechee  were not discouraged. In fifteen years, they did not expect much.
They had much longer-range plans than that.
   As  their plans also called for them, all of them, to be somewhere else
long  before  any  true  intelligence could look out of the eyes of one of
Squint's  descendants,  they  built  accordingly.  They so constructed and
programmed the artifact that it would last indefinitely. They arranged for
it  to  be  supplied with CHONfood from a convenient processor of cometary
material,  which  they  had  already set operating to serve other of their
installations,   and   which  was  potentially  equally  long-lived.  They
constructed  machines  to  sample  the  skills  of  the descendants of the
newborns  from  time  to  time,  and to repeat, as often as necessary, the
attempt  to  file  their identities in machine storage for later review if
any  of them ever came back to see how the experiment had gone. They would
have estimated this as very improbable, in view of their other plans.
   Still,  their  plans  encompassed  very  many  alternatives,  all going
simultaneously;  because the object of their plans was of great concern to
them. None of them might ever come back. But perhaps someone would.
   Since  Squint  could  not  communicate,  or act, in any useful way, the
Heechee  experimenters  thriftily  wiped  the  effective  sections  of her
storage  and  kept  her on the shelves only as a sort of library book, for
consultation  by later individuals of whatever kind they might be. (It was
this  that Janine was forced to consult, by reliving what Squint had lived
all  those hundreds of millennia before.) They left certain clues and data
for  use  by  whatever  generations might be able to understand them. They
tidied up behind them, as they always did. Then they went away and allowed
the  rest  of  that particular experiment, among all their experiments, to
run.
   For eight hundred thousand years.
   "Danine," Hooay was moaning, "Danine, are you dead?"
   She  looked up at his face, unable at first to focus, so that he looked
like a blurred, broad-faced moon with a double comet's tail wagging below.
"Help  me  up,  Hooay,"  she sobbed. "Take me back." Of them all, this had
been  the  worst.  She  felt raped, violated, expanded, changed. Her world
would   never   be   the   same  again.  Janine  did  not  know  the  word
"australopithecine,"  but  she  knew that the life she had just shared had
been  an animal's. Worse than an animal's, because somewhere in Squint had
been  the  spark  of  the  invention  of  thinking,  and thus the unwanted
capacity to fear.
   Janine  was  exhausted  and  she  felt  older  than  the Oldest One. At
just-turned  fifteen,  she was not a child any more. That account had been
overdrawn.  There  was no more childhood left for her. At the slope-walled
chamber  that was her personal pen she stopped. Hooay said apprehensively,
"Danine? What's wrong?"
   "There is a joke to tell you," she said.
   "You do not look like joking," he said.
   "It is a funny joke, though. Listen. The Oldest One has penned Wan with
my  sister  to  breed  them.  But  my  sister cannot breed. She has had an
operation so that she can never again bear a child."
   "That  is not a good joke," he protested. "No one would do a thing like
that!"
   "She did it, Hooay." She added quickly, "Do not be frightened. You will
not be punished. Only now bring the boy to me."
   Her  soft  eyes were brimming with tears. "How can I not be frightened?
Perhaps  I  should  awaken  the  Oldest One to tell him..." Then the tears
spilled over; he was terrified.
   She  comforted  him  and  coaxed  him, until other Old Ones came and he
spilled his terrible joke to them. Janine lay down on her pad, closing her
ears  to  their  excited,  woeful  chatter. She did not sleep, but she was
lying  with  her  eyes closed when she heard Wan and Tor come to the door.
When the boy was pushed inside she stood up to meet him.
   "Wan," she said, "I want you to put your aims around me."
   He looked at her grumpily. no one had told him what this was about, and
Wan,  too,  had had his hour in the couch with Squint. He looked terrible.
He  had never really had a chance to recover from the flu, had not rested,
had  not  accustomed himself to the great changes in his life since he had
met  the Herter-Halls. There were circles under his eyes and cracks at the
corners of his mouth. His feet were dirty, and so were his frayed clothes.
"Are you afraid you will fall down?" he shrilled.
   "I  am  not  afraid  of falling, and I want you to talk to me properly.
Don't squeak."
   He  looked  startled, but his voice settled into the lower register she
had tried to teach him. "Then why?"
   "Oh,  Wan." She shook her head impatiently and stepped forward into his
personal  space. It had not been necessary for her to tell him what to do.
His  arms went around her automatically both at the same height, as though
she  were a barrel to lift, the palms pressing against her shoulderblades.
She  pressed her lips against his, hard, dry and closed, then pulled away.
"Do you remember what this is, Wan?"
   "Of course! It is 'kissing'."
   "But  we  are  doing it wrong, Wan. Wait. Do it again while I do this."
She  protruded the tip of her tongue between almost closed lips and ran it
back  and  forth  across  his closed ones. "I think," she said, moving her
head  away,  "that  that  is  a better way, don't you? It makes me feel-it
makes me feel-I feel a little bit as though I were going to throw up."
   Alarmed,  he  tried  to  step  back, but she followed him closely. "Not
really throw up, just real funny."
   He  stayed  tensely  near  her,  face held away, but his expression was
troubled.  Carefully  keeping  the pitch of his voice down, he said, "Tiny
Jim says people do this before copulating. Or one person does it sometimes
to see if the other person is in heat."
   "In heat, Wan! That stinks. Say 'in love'."
   "I  think that 'in love' is different," he said stubbornly, "but anyway
to kiss is related to copulating. Tiny Jim says..."
   She put her hands on his shoulders. "Tiny Jim isn't here."
   "No, but Paul doesn't want us to..."
   "Paul  isn't  here,"  she said, stroking his slim neck with the tips of
her  fingers to see what that felt like. "Lurvy isn't here either. Anyway,
none  of what they think matters." The way it felt, she decided, was quite
strange.  It  wasn't  really  as though she were going to throw up, but as
though  some sort of liquid readjustment were going on inside her belly, a
sensation  like  nothing  she  had  ever  known  before. It was not at all
unpleasant.  "Let me take your clothes off, Wan, and then you can take off
mine."
   After they had practiced kissing again she said, "I think we should not
be  standing  up now." And some time later, when they were lying down, she
opened her eyes to stare into his wide-open ones.
   As  he raised himself for better leverage he hesitated. "If I do that,"
he said, "perhaps you will get pregnant."
   "If you don't do that," she said, "I think I will die."
   When  Janine  woke  up, hours later, Wan was already awake and dressed,
sitting  at  the  side of the room, leaning against the gold-skeined wall.
Janine's  heart went out to him. He looked like himself fifty years later.
The  youthful  face  seemed to have lines graven by decades of trouble and
pain.
   "I love you, Wan," she said.
   He  stirred  and  shrilled,  "Oh,  yes..."  Then  he caught himself and
dropped his voice to a grumble, "Oh, yes, Janine. And I love you. But I do
not know what they will do."
   "Probably they won't hurt you, Wan."
   Scornfully,  "Me? It is you I worry about, Janine. This is where I have
lived  all my life and sooner or later this would have happened. But you-I
am  worried about you." He added gloomily, "They are very noisy out there,
too. Something is happening."
   "I  don't  think  they will hurt us-any more, I mean," Janine corrected
herself,  thinking  about  the  dreaming couch. The distant chirping cries
were  coming closer. She dressed quickly and looked around, as Tor's voice
hailed Hooay outside the door.
   There  was nothing to show what had happened. Not even a drop of blood.
But  when Tor opened the door, fussed and worried, he stopped to squint at
them suspiciously, then sniffed the air. "Perhaps I will not have to breed
you, Danine, after all," he said, kind but frightened. "But Danine! Oowan!
There  is  a  terrible thing! Tar has fallen asleep and the old female has
run away!"
   Wan  and  Janine were dragged to the spindle, filled with nearly all of
the  Old  Ones.  They  were  milling  around  in  panic. Three of them lay
sprawled  and  snoring  where  they  had been dumped-Tar and two others of
Lurvy's guards, failures in their missions, found sound asleep and brought
back  in  fear  and  disgrace  for the judgment of the Oldest One. Who lay
motionless  but  alert  on his pedestal, cascades of color rippling around
his perimeter.
   To  the  flesh-and-blood creatures the Oldest One showed nothing of his
thoughts.  He was metal. He was formidable. He could be neither understood
nor  challenged.  Neither  Wan  nor  Janine,  nor  any of his near hundred
quaking children, could perceive the fear and anger that raced through his
circulating  memories. Fear that his plans were in jeopardy. Rage that his
children had failed to carry out their orders.
   The three that had failed would have to be punished, to set an example.
The  hundred-odd  others  would  also  have  to  be punished-somewhat more
lightly, so that the race would not become extinct-for failing to keep the
three  to  their  duty. As for the intruders-there was no punishment grave
enough  for  them!  Perhaps  they  should  be  abolished,  like  any other
challenging  organism  that  threatened  to damage its host. Perhaps worse
than that. Perhaps nothing within his powers was quite severe enough.
   But what was still in his power? He forced himself to stand. Janine saw
the  ripple  of lights flicker and freeze into a pattern as the Oldest One
rose to his extended height and spoke. "The female is to be recaptured and
preserved," he said. "This is to be done at once."
   He  stood  there,  wobbling  uneasily; the effectors for his limbs were
performing  erratically.  He  allowed  himself to kneel once more while he
pondered  his  options.  The  exertion of going to the control room to set
course-the  turmoil  in  his mind that had led him to do it-half a million
years  of  existence,  all  had  taken  their  toll.  He  needed  time  to
"rest"-time, that is, for his autonomic systems to retrace and repair what
damage  they  could,  and  perhaps time no longer would be enough. "Do not
wake  me  again  till this is done," he said, and the lights resumed their
random flicker, and slowly dwindled to darkness.
   Janine,  circled in Wan's arm-his body half toward the Oldest One, half
sheltering   her,   trembling  with  fear-knew  without  being  told  that
"preserved" meant killed. She was frightened, too.
   But she was also puzzled.
   The  Old  Ones who lay snoring through their trial and judgment had not
fallen  asleep  by  chance.  Janine recognized the results of a sleep-gun.
Janine knew also that none of her party had had one.
   For  that reason, Janine was not entirely surprised when, an hour later
and back in their pen, they heard a stifled grunt from outside.
   She  was  not  surprised  to  see  her  sister run in, waving a gun and
calling  to  them; not surprised that behind Lurvy a tattered Paul stepped
over  the  sleeping  form  of Tor. She was not even surprised, or not very
much  surprised,  to  see  that with them was another armed man she almost
recognized.  She  was not sure. She had met him only when she was a child.
But  he  looked  like the person she had seen on the relayed PV broadcasts
from  Earth, and in jolly messages that came from him on anniversaries and
holidays: Robin Broadhead.

   Not at his worst-not even when he was feeling older than the Oldest One
himself  and  as dead as dead Payter-had Paul looked as bad as the pitiful
creature  waving  a  gun  at him from the hatch of his own ship. Under the
skungy, month-old beard the man's face looked like a mummy's. He stank.
   "You'd better take a bath!" Paul snapped. "And put that silly gun away."
   The mummy slumped against the hatch of the ship. "You're Paul Hall," it
said, squinting at him. "For God's sake, do you have anything to eat?"
   Paul  stared  past  him.  "Isn't  there plenty still left in there?" He
pushed  into  the  ship  and  found  that, of course, there were stacks of
CHON-food  packets  exactly as they had been left. The mummy had been into
the  water  bags, had ripped at least three of them open; the floor of the
ship  was  puddled  and  muddied.  Paul offered a ration. "Keep your voice
down," he ordered. "And by the way, who are you?"
   "I'm Robin Broadhead. What do you do with this?"
   "Bite  into  it,"  snapped  Paul,  exasperated-less  because of the man
himself,  or even because of the way he smelled, than because he was still
shaking.  He  had  been  terrified that it would be an Old One he had come
across so unexpectedly. But-Robin Broadhead! What was he doing here?
   But  he  could  not  put  the  question just then. Broadhead was almost
literally  starving.  He turned the flat pillow of food over in his hands,
frowning  and  shaking,  and  then  bit into a corner of it. As soon as he
found  it  could  be  chewed  he  wolfed it down, crumbs spilling from his
mouth. He stared up at Paul while he jammed his mouth full faster than his
teeth  could  deal with it. "Take it easy," Paul said, alarmed. But he was
too late. The unfamiliar food, after so long a deprivation, did what could
have  been  expected  of  it.  Broadhead choked, gagged and vomited it up.
"Damn you!" Paul snarled. "They'll smell you all the way to the spindle!"
   Broadhead  leaned  back, gasping. "Sorry," he mumbled. "I thought I was
going to die. I pretty near did. Can you give me some water?"
   Paul  did,  a couple of sips at a time, and then allowed the man just a
corner  of  one  of  the brown and yellow packets, the blandest there was.
"Slowly!"  he ordered. "I'll give you more later." But he was beginning to
realize  how  good it was to have another human being there after-what was
it?  it  must have been two months, at least, of his solitary skulking and
hiding  and  plotting.  "I  don't know what you're doing here," he said at
last, "but I'm glad to see you."
   Broadhead  licked  the  last  crumbs  off his lips and managed to grin.
"Why,  that's  simple,"  he  said,  eyes avidly on the rest of the food in
Paul's hands. "I came here to rescue you."
   Broadhead  had  been  dehydrated and almost asphyxiated, but not really
starved. He kept down the crumbs Paul let him have and demanded more; kept
that  down  too,  and  was even able to help Paul clean up the mess he had
made. Paul found him clean clothes from Wan's sparse store in the ship-the
garments  were too long and too slim by far, but the waistband of the kilt
did not really need to close all the way-and led him to the largest of the
water troughs to get himself clean. It wasn't daintiness. It was fear. The
Old  Ones did not hear any better than human beings, nor see even quite as
well.  But  their  noses  were astonishingly acute. After two weeks of the
narrowest  of  escapes,  in  his first terrified blundering around Heechee
Heaven  after  Wan  and Lurvy had been captured, Paul had learned to bathe
three times a day.
   And much more.
   He  took  post  at  a juncture of three corridors, mounting guard while
Broadhead got the worst of his thirty days in a Heechee ship off his skin.
Rescue  them!  In  the first place, it wasn't true. Broadhead's intentions
were  more  subtle  and  complicated  than  that.  In  the  second  place,
Broadhead's  plans  were  not the same as those Paul had been maturing for
two months. He had some notion of tricking information out of the Dead Men
and only the haziest notion of what to do with the information when he got
it.  And  he  expected  Paul to help him carry two or three metric tons of
machinery around Heechee Heaven, never mind the risk, never mind that Paul
might  have  ideas of his own. The trouble with being rescued was that the
rescuers  expected  to be in charge of the operation. And expected Paul to
be grateful!
   Well,  he  admitted to himself, turning slowly to keep each corridor in
view-though  the  Old  Ones were less diligent in patrolling than they had
been  at  first-he would have been grateful enough if Broadhead had showed
up  at  first, in those days of panic when he ran and hid and did not dare
either stay or leave; or again, a couple of weeks later, when he had begun
to  work  out  a  plan,  had  dared  to go to the Dead Men's room and make
contact  with the Food Factory-and learned that Peter Herter was dead. The
shipboard computer was no use to him, too stupid and too overburdened even
to  relay  his  messages  to  Earth.  The  Dead Men were maddeningly. Were
maddening.  He was entirely on his own. And slowly his nerve came back and
he  began  to  plan.  Even to act. When he found that he could dare coming
quite  near the Old Ones provided he bathed enough to leave no odor trace,
he  began  his plan. Spying. Scheming. Studying. Recording-that was one of
the  hardest parts. It is very difficult to keep records of how your enemy
behaves,  what paths are frequented and on what occasions none of them are
likely  to  be  about, when you have nothing to write with. Or a watch. Or
even  the change of day and night, unheard of in the steady blue glow from
the  Heechee-metal walls. It had finally occurred to him to use the habits
of  the  Old Ones themselves as his chronometer of their behavior. When he
saw a party of them going back toward the spindle where the Oldest One lay
motionless,  they  were getting ready to sleep. When he saw a party moving
away,  it  meant  the  beginning  of a new day. They all slept at once, or
almost all, out of some imperative he could not imagine; and so there were
times  when he dared come nearer and nearer to the place where Wan, Janine
and  Lurvy  were  kept.  Had  even seen them once or twice, daring to hide
behind  a  berryfruit bush as the Old Ones were beginning to stir, peering
between the branches and then racing breathlessly away. He knew. He had it
all  worked  out. There were no more than a hundred or so of the Old Ones,
and they traveled usually in parties of only two or three.
   Remained  the  question  of  how  to deal with, even, a party of two or
three.
   Paul  Hall,  leaner  and  angrier  than  he  had ever been in his life,
thought  he  knew how to do that. In his first panicked days of flight and
hiding,  after  the others had been captured, he had blundered far and far
into  the  green and red corridors of Heechee Heaven. In some of them even
the  lights were fading and sparse. In some of them the air had a sour and
unhealthful  tang, and when he slept there he awoke with his head pounding
and  thick.  In  all of them there were objects, machines, gadgets things;
some  of  them  still  purring  or  ticking  quietly  to  themselves, some
flickering with a ceaseless rainbow of lights.
   He  could not stay in those places, because there was no food or water,
and  he  could  not  find what he most sought. There were no real weapons.
Perhaps  the  Heechee  had not needed them. But there was one machine that
had a gate of metal strips at one side and, when he wrenched them away, it
did  not  blow up or electrocute him, as he had half thought it would. And
he  had  a  spear.  And half a dozen times he encountered what looked like
smaller, more complicated versions of the Heechee tunnelers.
   And  some  of  them  still  worked.  When  the Heechee built they built
forever.
   It  took Paul three frightened, thirsty, baffling days of experiment to
make any of them function, stopping to creep back to the gold corridors or
the  ship for food and water, always sure that the thundering noise of the
machine  would  draw  the Old Ones down on him before he was ready. But it
did not. He learned to squeeze the nipple that hung down from the steering
yoke  to  make  the  ready lights spring into life, to shove the ponderous
knurled  wheel  forward or back to make it advance or retreat, to tread on
the  oval  floorplate that caused the blue-violet glow to lance out before
the  machine,  softening  even  the Heechee metal it touched. That was the
noisy part. Paul feared greatly that he would destroy something that would
wreck Heechee Heaven itself, if he did not bring down a search party. When
he  came  to move the machine to the place he had picked out it was almost
quiet, oozing forward on its rollogons. And he stopped to consider.
   He knew where the Old Ones went, and when.
   He  had  a  spear that could kill a single Old One, maybe could let him
defeat even two or three if he came on them by surprise.
   He possessed a machine that could annihilate any number of Old Ones, if
he could only get them to mass in front of it.
   It  all  added up to a strategy that might even work. It was chancy-oh,
God, it was chancy! It depended on at least half a dozen trials by combat.
Even  though  the  Old Ones did not seem to seek him armed, who was to say
that they might not learn? And what arms might they have? It meant killing
some  of  them,  one  by  one,  so  expertly and carefully that he did not
attract  the  attention  of  the whole tribe until he was ready for it-and
then  attracting  them all at once, or so large a majority of them that he
could  handle  the  rest  with his spear. (Was that really a good gambling
bet?) And, above all, it meant that the Oldest One, the great machine Paul
had  only  glimpsed  once or twice at long range and about whose powers he
knew nothing, must not intervene, and how likely was that?
   He had no sure answers. He did have hopes. The Oldest One was too large
to move easily through any of the corridors but the gold-skeined ones. Nor
did  it seem to move frequently at all. And perhaps he could somehow trick
it,  too,  before  the devouring haze of the tunneling machine-which could
not,  in  this place, really be a tunneling machine, but seemed to work in
about the same way. At every step the odds were against him, true.
   But  at every step there was at least a slim chance for success. And it
was not the risk that stopped him at the last.
   The  Paul  Hall  who  stole about and schemed in the tunnels of Heechee
Heaven,  half  crazed  with  anger and fear and worry for his wife and the
others, was not entirely crazy. He was the same
   Paul  Hall  whose  gentleness and patience had made Dorema Herter marry
him,  who  had  accepted  her  saucy,  sometimes  bratty little sister and
abrasive  father  as part of the bargain. He wanted very much to save them
and bring them to freedom. Even at risk. There was always a way out of the
risk  for  him,  if only to crawl aboard Wan's ship and return to the Food
Factory  and thus-slowly, alone and mournful, but safe-ultimately to Earth
and wealth.
   But, apart from risk, what was the cost?
   The  cost  was  wiping  out  perhaps an entire population of living and
intelligent  creatures. They had taken his wife from him, but they had not
really  harmed  her. And, try as he would, Paul could not convince himself
he had the right to exterminate them.
   And  now here was this "rescuer," this nearly dead castaway named Robin
Broadhead,  who  listened  sketchily to Paul's plan and smiled loftily and
said,  politely enough, "You're still working for me, Hall. We'll do it my
way."
   "The hell we will!"
   Broadhead stayed polite enough, and even reasonable-it was amazing what
a bath and a little food had done for him. "The key," he said, "is to find
out  what  we're up against. Help me lug this information-processing stuff
to  where  the Dead Men are, and we'll take care of that. That's the first
thing."
   "The first thing is rescuing my wife!"
   "But  why, Hall? She's all right where she is-you said so yourself. I'm
not  talking  about  forever. One day, maybe. We find out what we can from
the  Dead  Men.  We tape it all, pump them dry if we can. Then we take the
tapes and stick them in my ship, and then..."
   "No."
   "Yes!"
   "No,  and  keep your God-damned voice down!" They squared off like kids
in  a schoolyard, both flushed and furious, their eyes locked. Until Robin
Broadhead  grimaced  and shook his head and said, "Oh, hell. Paul? Are you
thinking what I'm thinking?"
   Paul  Hall  let  himself  relax. After a second he said, "Actually, I'm
thinking  the  two  of  us  would do better to figure out what is the best
thing to do, instead of arguing about who makes the decision."
   Broadhead  grinned.  "That was what I was thinking, all right. You know
what  my  trouble is? I'm so surprised to be still alive that I don't know
how to adjust to it."
   It  only  took  them  six hours to haul and set up the PMAL-2 processor
where  they  wanted  it, but it was six hours of hard work. They were both
near  the  frayed end of exhaustion and it would have made sense to sleep,
but  they  were  itching  with impatience, both of them. Once they had the
main  power  source  connected  to  the program banks Albert's prerecorded
voice  instructed  them, step by step, on how to do the rest-the processor
itself  sprawled  across the corridor, the voice terminals inside the Dead
Men's chamber, next to the radio link. Robin looked at Paul, Paul shrugged
to Robin, Robin started the program. From just outside the door they could
hear  the  flat, wheedling voice from the terminal: "Henrietta? Henrietta,
dear, can you answer me?"
   Pause.  no  answer.  The  program  Albert  had written with Sigfrid von
Shrink's  help  tried again: "Henrietta, it's Tom. Please speak to me." It
would  have  been  faster  to  punch  out  Henrietta's code to attract her
attention,  but  harder  to  square  with  the pretense that her long-lost
husband had reached her from some faroff outpost by radio.
   The  voice  tried again, and once more. Paul scowled and whispered, "It
isn't working."
   "Give  it  a chance," Robin said, but not confidently. They stood there
nervously,  while  the  dead  computer  voice pleaded. And then at last, a
hesitant voice whispered, "Tom? Tomasino, is that you?"
   Paul  Hall  was  a  normal human being, squashed a little out of shape,
perhaps,  from four years of imprisonment and a hundred days of flight and
fright.  Normal enough, though, to share the normal prurience; but what he
heard  was  more  than  he  wanted to hear. He grinned in embarrassment at
Robin  Broadhead,  who  shrugged  uneasily  back.  The hurt tenderness and
spiteful  jealousy  of other people is humiliating to hear and can only be
eased by laughter; the divorce detective passes around his bootleg tape of
a wired bed for comic relief on a slow day at the office. But this was not
comic!   Henrietta,  any  Henrietta,  even  the  machine  revenant  called
Henrietta  was  not  funny  in  her moment of heart's-desire, when she was
being gulled and betrayed. The program that wooed her was skillfully done.
It apologized and begged, and it even sobbed, in rustly tape-hissing sobs,
when  Henrietta's own flat tape voice broke with sobs of spent sadness and
hopeless joy. And then, as it had been programmed to do, it settled in for
the  kill.  Would you. Dear Henrietta, could you... Is it possible for you
to tell me how to operate a Heechee ship?
   Pause. Hesitation. Then the voice of the dead woman said:
   "Why-yes,  Tomasino."  Another  pause.  It lengthened itself, until the
programmed deceiver moved in to fill the gap:
   "Because  if  you could, dear, I think I might be able to join you. I'm
in a sort of a ship. It has a control room. If I knew how to work it..."
   It   was   incredible  to  Paul  that  even  a  poorly  stored  machine
intelligence  could  succumb  to  such  transparent blandishments. Succumb
Henrietta did. It was repellent to him to take part in the fraud, but take
part  he  did, and once started Henrietta could not be stopped. The secret
of  controlling  the Heechee ships? Of course, dear Tomasino! And the dead
woman  warned her fake lover to stand by for burst transmission and hurled
out a whistling crackle of machine talk of which Paul could not understand
a  sound  and  in  which  he  could  not find a word; but Robin Broadhead,
listening  to  the  private  status-report  voice  of  the computer on his
headset,  grinned  and nodded and held up thumb and forefinger in a circle
of  success.  Paul  signed  silence  and pulled him down the corridor. "If
you've got it," he whispered, "let's get out of here!"
   "Oh,  I've  got it!" chortled Robin. "She's got it all! She was in open
circuit  with  whatever  kind  of  machine  runs this thing, it picked her
brains and she picked its, and she's telling the whole thing."
   "Great. Now let's find Lurvy!"
   Broadhead  looked  at  him,  not  angry  but pleading. "Just a few more
minutes. Who knows what else she got?"
   "No!"
   "Yes!"-and  then  they  looked  at  each  other, and shook their heads.
"Compromise,"  said Robin Broadhead. "Fifteen minutes, all right? And then
we go rescue your wife."
   They  edged  back along the corridor with smiles of rueful satisfaction
on  their  faces;  but  the  satisfaction  drained.  The  voices  were not
embarrassingly intimate now. They were worse. They were almost quarreling.
There was somehow a snap and a snarl in the flat metallic voice that said,
"You're being a pig, Tom."
   The  program  was cloyingly reasonable: "But, Henrietta, dear, I'm only
trying to find out..."
   "What  you  try  to  find out," grated the voice, "depends on what your
capacities  to learn are. I'm trying to tell you something more important!
I  tried  to  tell  you  before. I tried to tell you all the while we were
coming  out  here, but, no, you didn't want to hear, all you wanted was to
get off in the lander with that fat bitch..."
   The  program knew when to be placatory. "I'm sorry, Henrietta, dear. If
you want me to learn some astrophysics I will."
   "Damn  right  you  will!" Pause. "It's terribly important, Tom!" Pause.
And then: "We go back to the Big Bang. Are you listening, Tom?"
   "Of  course  I  am,  dear,"  said  the program in its humblest and most
endearing way.
   "All  right!  It goes back to how the universe got started, and we know
that  pretty  well-with  one  little hazy transition point that's a little
obscure. Call it Point X."
   "Are you going to tell me what 'Point X' is, dear?"
   "Shut  up,  Tom! Listen! Before Point X, essentially the whole universe
was  packed into a tiny glob, no more than a matter of kilometers through,
super-dense, super hot, so squeezed it had no structure. Then it exploded.
It  began  to  expand-up to Point X, and that part is pretty clear. Do you
follow me so far, Tom?"
   "Yes, dear. That's basically simple cosmology, isn't it?"
   Pause.  "Just  pay  attention,"  Henrietta's voice said at last. "Then,
after  Point  X,  it  continued  to expand. As it expanded, little bits of
'matter'  began  to  condense  out  of  it.  First came nuclear particles,
hadrons and pious, electrons and protons, neutrons and quarks. Then 'real'
matter.  Real hydrogen atoms, then even helium atoms. The exploding volume
of  gas  began  to  slow. Turbulence broke it into immense clouds. Gravity
pulled  the clouds into clumps. As they shrank the heat of contraction set
nuclear  reactions  going.  They  glowed.  The  first stars were born. The
rest," she finished, "is what we can see going on now."
   The  program  picked  up its cue. "I see that, Henrietta, yes. How long
are we talking about, now?"
   "Ah,  good  question,"  she  said, in a voice not at all complimentary.
"From  the beginning of the Big Bang to Point X, three seconds. From Point
X to right now, about eighteen billion years. And there we have it."
   The  program was not written to deal with sarcasm, but even in the flat
metal  voice  sarcasm  hung.  It did its best. "Thank you, dear," it said,
"and now will you tell me what is special about Point X?"
   "I  would  tell  you  in a thick minute, my darling Tomasino," she said
sunnily, "except that you are not my darling Tomasino. That ass-head would
not  have  understood one word of what I just said, and I don't like being
lied to."
   And  no  matter  what  the program tried, not even when Robin Broadhead
dropped the pretense and spoke to her direct, Henrietta would say no more.
"Hell  with  it," said Broadhead at last. "We've got enough to worry about
in  the  next  couple  of hours. We don't have to go back eighteen billion
years for it."
   He  hit a pressure release on the side of the processor and caught what
came  out:  the  thick,  soft  rag-flop  tape  that  had caught everything
Henrietta  had said. He waved it aloft. "That's what I came for," he said,
grinning.  "And now, Paul, let's take care of your little problem-and then
go home and spend our millions!"
   In the deep, restless sleep of the Oldest One there were no dreams, but
there were irritations.
   The  irritations came faster and faster, more and more urgent. From the
time  the  first  Gateway  prospectors  had terrifyingly come until he had
written  (he  thought)  the  last of them off, only the wink of an eye-not
more  than  a  few years, really. And until the strangers and the boy were
caught, hardly a heartbeat; and until he was awakened again to be told the
female  had  escaped  no  time  at  all-none!  Hardly even time for him to
decouple sensors and effectors and settle down; and now there was still no
peace.  The children were panicked and quarrelsome. It was not their noise
alone  that  disturbed  him.  Noise  could not awaken the Oldest One; only
physical  attack,  or  being  addressed directly. What was most irritating
about  this  racket  was  that  it was not quite addressed to him, but not
quite  not,  either.  It was a debate-an argument; a few frightened voices
demanding  he  be  told something at once, a few even more frightened ones
pleading against it.
   And  that  was  incorrect.  For half a million years the Oldest One had
trained his children in manners. If he was needed, he was to be addressed.
He  was  not  to  be  awakened  for  trivial  causes, and certainly not by
accident.  Especially  now. Especially when each effort of waking was more
of  a  drain on his ancient fabric and the time was in sight when he might
not wake at all.
   The fretful rumpus did not stop.
   The  Oldest  One  called  on  his  external  sensors and gazed upon his
children.  Why  were  so  few  of them there? Why were nearly half of them
sprawled on the floor, evidently asleep?
   Painfully  he  activated  his communications system and spoke: "What is
happening?"
   When, quailing, they tried to answer and the Oldest One understood what
they  were  saying, the bands of color on his shell raced and blurred. The
female  not  recaptured.  The  younger female and the boy gone too. Twenty
more  of  the children found hopelessly asleep, and scores of others, gone
to search the artifact, not reporting back.
   Something was terribly wrong.
   Even  at  the  very  end of its useful life the Oldest One was a superb
machine.  There were resources seldom used, powers not tapped for hundreds
of  thousands of years. He rose on his rollogons to tower over the quaking
children  and  reached  down  into his deepest and least-used memories for
guidance  and  knowledge.  On  his  foreplate, between the external vision
receptors,  two  polished  blue  knobs  began  a faint drone, and atop his
carapace  a  shallow  dish  glowed  with  faint  violet light. It had been
thousands  of years since the Oldest One had used any of his more punitive
effectors,  but  as information from the great stores of memories gathered
he  began  to  believe that it was time to use them again. He reached into
the  stored  personalities,  even,  and Henrietta was open to him; he knew
what  she  had said, and what the new interlopers had asked. He understood
(what  Henrietta  had not) the meaning of the hand weapons Robin Broadhead
had been waving around; in the deepest of all memories, the ones that went
back  even  before  his own flesh-and-blood life, there was the lance that
made his own ancestors go to sleep, and this was clearly much the same.
   Here  was  trouble  on  a scale he had never known before, of a kind he
could  not readily cope with. If he could get at them... But he could not.
His  great  bulk  could not travel through the artifact's passages, except
the  gold-skeined  ones; the weapons that were ready to destroy would have
no  targets.  The  children? Yes, perhaps. Perhaps they could hunt out and
overcome the others; certainly it was worth the effort to order them to do
so, the few survivors, and he did. But in the rational, mechanical mind of
the  Oldest One the capacity for computation was unimpaired. He could read
the odds well. They were not good.
   The question was, was his great plan endangered?
   The  answer  was yes. But there, at least, there was something he could
do. The heart of the plan was the place where the artifact was controlled.
It was the nerve center of the entire construct; it was where he had dared
to set in motion the final stages of his plan.
   Before  he  had finished framing the decision he was acting it out. The
great  metal  bulk  shifted  and  turned,  and  then rolled out across the
spindle,  into  the  wide-mouthed  tunnel  that  led to the controls. Once
there, he was secure. Let them come if they chose! The weaponry was ready.
Its  great  drain on his dwindling powers was making him slow and unsteady
to move, but there was power enough. He could blockade himself and let the
flesh-and-blood  things  settle  things however they might, and then... He
stopped.  Ahead of him one of the wall-aligning machines was out of place.
It  sat squarely in the center of the corridor, and behind it... If he had
been  just  a trifle less drained, the fraction of a second faster.... But
he  was not. The glow from the wall aligner washed over him. He was blind.
He  was  deaf. He felt the external protuberances burn off his shell, felt
the great soft cylinders he rolled on melt and stick.
   The  Oldest  One did not know how to feel pain. He did know how to feel
anguish of the soul. He had failed.
   The  flesh-and-blood things had control of his artifacts, and his plans
were at an end forever.

   My name is Robin Broadhead, and I am the richest person there is in the
whole  solar  system.  The  only  one who comes close is old Bover, and he
would  come  a  lot closer if he hadn't thrown half of his money into slum
clearance  and  urban  rehabilitation  and  a lot of what was left into an
inch-by-inch scan of trans-Plutonian space, looking for the ship with what
was  left of his wife, Trish. (What he is going to do with her if he finds
her  I  can't  imagine.)  The  surviving Herter-Halls are also filthy with
money.  That's  a  good  thing,  especially for Wan and Janine, who have a
complicated  relationship  to  sort  out,  in  a complicatedly unwelcoming
world.  My  wife, Essie, is in the best of health. I love her. When I die,
that  is,  when  even  Full  Medical  can't patch me up any more, I have a
little plan about how to deal with someone else I love, and that satisfies
me.  Almost  everything  satisfies  me.  The  only exception is my science
advisor, Albert, who keeps trying to explain Mach's Principle to me.
   When  we  took  over  Heechee Heaven, we got it all. The way to control
Heechee  ships.  The way to build Heechee ships, including the theory that
makes  it  possible  to  go  faster  than  light.  No,  it doesn't involve
"hyperspace"  or  the  "fourth dimension". It is very simple. Acceleration
multiplies  mass,  so  says  Einstein-the real one, not Albert. But if the
rest  mass  is  zero it does not matter how many times you multiply it. It
remains zero. Albert says that mass can be created, and proves it by basic
logical  principles:  it exists, therefore it can be created. Therefore it
can  be  eliminated, since what can be made to be can also be made to stop
being.  That  is  the Heechee secret, and with Albert's help to set up the
experiment, and Morton's help to coerce the Gateway Corp into making ships
available,  we  tried  it  out.  It  didn't  cost  me  a  cent; one of the
advantages  of  great  wealth  is that you don't have to spend it. All you
have  to  do  is get other people to spend it for you, and that's what law
programs are for.
   So  we sent two Fives out at once from Gateway. One was on lander power
only,  and  it  contained two people and a cylinder of solid aluminum with
strain detectors attached. The other held a full crew, ready for an actual
mission.  The instrument ship had a live camera pickup with an image split
three  ways:  one  on  the gravity meter, one on the second ship, one on a
cesium-atom digital clock.
   To my eyes the experiment didn't show a thing. The second ship began to
disappear, and the gravity meter recorded its disappearance. Big deal! But
Albert  was  elated. "Its mass began to disappear before it did, Robin! My
God.  Anyone  could  have tried that experiment any time in the last dozen
years! There's going to be at least a ten-million-dollar science bonus for
this!"
   "Put  it in petty cash," I said, and stretched, and rolled over to kiss
Essie, because we happened to be in bed at the time.
   "Is  very  interesting,  dear  Robin," she said drowsily, and kissed me
back.  Albert  grinned and averted his eyes, partly because Essie has been
tinkering  with  his  program  and partly because he knew as well as I did
that what she said was politely untrue. Astrophysics did not much interest
my  Essie. What interested her was the chance to play with working Heechee
machine intelligences, and that interested her very much. Eighteen hours a
day  much,  until  she  had tracked down all the major systems in what was
left  of  the  Oldest  One,  and  the Dead Men, and the Dead Non-Men whose
memories  went  back  to  an African savannah the better part of a million
years  ago.  Not  that she cared a lot about what was in the memories; but
how  it  was  there  was  her  very  business, at which she was very good.
Reshuffling  my  Albert  program  was  the  least of what Essie got out of
Heechee  Heaven.  What  we all got was a very great deal indeed. The grand
charts  of  the Galaxy, showing everywhere the Heechee had been. The grand
charts of black holes, showing where they are now. Even where Kiara is. As
one  tiny  fringe benefit, I even got the answer to one question that on a
purely subjective level had been interesting me very much: why was I still
alive?  The  ship  that carried me to Heechee Heaven had flipped over into
deceleration  mode  after  nineteen  days.  By  all the laws of parity and
common  sense,  that  meant  it  would not arrive for another nineteen, by
which  time I should have been surely dead; but in fact it docked in five.
And I wasn't dead at all, or not quite; but why?
   Albert  gave me the answer. Every flight ever successfully completed in
a  Heechee ship had been between two bodies that, relatively, were more or
less  at  rest-a few tens or at most a few hundreds of kilometers a second
difference  in  their  relative  velocities. no more. Not enough to make a
difference. But my flight had been pursuing an object itself in very rapid
motion. It had been almost all acceleration. The slowdown had taken only a
tiny fraction of the speedup. And so I lived.
   And  all that was very satisfying, and yet... And yet there is always a
price.
   There  always  has  been.  Every  big jump forward has carried a hidden
cost,  all  through  history. Man invented agriculture. That meant someone
had  to  plant  de  cotton  and  someone had to hoe de corn. And dat's how
slavery  was  born.  Man  invented  the  automobile, and got a dividend of
pollution and highway death. Man got curious about the way the sun shines,
and  out of his curiosity came the H-bomb. Man found the Heechee artifacts
and  tracked  down  some  of  their  secrets. And what did we get? For one
thing, we got Payter, almost killing a world, with a power no one had ever
had  before  him. For another we got some brand-new questions, the answers
to  which  I  have  not yet quite nerved myself up to face. Questions that
Albert  wants to try to answer, about Mach's Principle; and that Henrietta
raised, with her talk about Point X and the "missing mass". And a very big
question  in  my own mind. When the Oldest One broke Heechee Heaven out of
its  orbit  and sent it flying through space toward the core of the Galaxy
what, exactly, was he heading toward?
   The  scariest, I guess, and also the most satisfying, I know, moment of
my  life  was when we had burned the feelers off the Oldest One and, armed
with  Henrietta's  instructions,  sat  down  before  the  control board of
Heechee  Heaven. It took two to make it move. Lurvy Herter-Hall and I were
the  two  most experienced pilots present-if you didn't count Wan, who was
off  with  Janine,  rounding up the waking Old Ones to tell them there had
been a change in government. Lurvy took the right-hand seat and I took the
left  (wondering a lot just what strange-shaped butt had first sat in it).
And  there  we went. It took more than a month to get back to orbiting the
Moon,  which  was  the  point  I had picked out. It wasn't a wasted month,
there  was  plenty  to  do  on  Heechee Heaven; but it went pretty slowly,
because I was in a very big hurry to get home.
   It  took  all  the  nerve I had to squeeze that teat, but, you know, it
wasn't  all  that  hard. Once we understood that the main bank of controls
carried  the  codes  for  all  the  preset  objectives-there are more than
fifteen thousand of them, all over the Galaxy and some outside-it was just
a matter of knowing which code was which. Then, all of us really delighted
with  ourselves,  we  decided  to  show  off.  We  got  a  squawk from the
radio-astronomers  on  the  far  side  because  our  circumlunar orbit was
getting in the way of their dishes every time we came around. So we moved.
You  do  that with the secondary boards, the ones no one has ever dared to
touch  in midflight and that don't seem to do much on the original launch.
Main  boards,  preprogrammed  objectives;  secondary boards, any point you
want,  provided  you can spell out its galactic coordinates. But the joker
is  that  you  can't  use  the  secondary  boards  until you've nulled the
primaries by setting them all down to zero-that translates to a clear deep
red  color  on  each-and if any prospector ever happened to do that on his
own, he lost his programming to get back to Gateway. How simple everything
is  once you know. And so we put that big son-of-a-bitching artifact, half
a million metric tons of it, in close Earth orbit, and invited company.
   The  company  I  wanted  most  was  my  wife. What I wanted next was my
science  program, Albert Einstein-that's not really a reflection on Essie,
you  know,  because  she wrote him. It was a tossup whether I went down to
her or she came up to me, but not in her mind. She wanted to get her hands
On the machine intelligences in Heechee Heaven, I would judge, at least as
much  as  I  wanted  to  get  mine on her. In a 100-minute Earth orbit the
transmission  time  isn't  bad,  anyway.  As  soon as we were in range the
machine  Albert  had  programmed  for  me  was  talking  to  him,  pumping
everything it had learned into him, and by the time I was ready to talk to
him he was ready to talk back.
   Of course it wasn't the same. Albert in full three-dimensional color in
the  tank  at  home  was  a lot more fun to chat with than black-and-white
Albert  on  a  flat  plate in Heechee Heaven. But until some new equipment
came  up from Earth that was all I had, and anyway it was the same Albert.
"Good  to  see you again, Robin," he said benevolently, poking the stem of
his  pipe  toward  me. "I guess you know you have about a million messages
waiting for you?"
   "They'll wait." Anyway, I had already had about a million, or it seemed
that way. What they mostly said was that everybody was annoyed but, in the
long  run, delighted; and I was once again very rich. "What I want to hear
first," I said, "is what you want to tell me."
   "Sure  thing,  Robin." He tapped out his pipe, regarding me. "Well," he
said,  "technology first. We know the general theory of the Heechee drive,
and  we're  getting  a  handle  on  the faster-than-light radio. As to the
information-handling  circuits  in the Dead Men and so on-as I am sure you
know,"  he  twinkled,  "Cospozha Lavorovna-Broadhead is on her way to join
you.  I  think we may confidently expect considerable progress there, very
quickly.  In  a  few days a volunteer crew will go to the Food Factory. We
are  pretty  sure it, too, can be controlled, and if so it will be brought
into  some nearby orbit for study and, I think I can promise, duplication.
I  don't  suppose  you  want to hear about minor technology in detail just
now?"
   "Not really," I said. "Or not right at this minute."
   "Then,"  he  said,  nodding as he filled the pipe again, "let me get to
some  theoretical  considerations.  First  there  is the question of black
holes.  We  have  unequivocally  located  the one your friend, Gelle-Klara
Moynlin,  is  in. I believe it would be possible to send a ship there with
reasonable  assurance that it would arrive without serious damage. Return,
however,  is  another question. There appears to be nothing in the Heechee
stores that gives us a cookbook recipe for getting anything out of a black
hole.  Theory,  yes.  But  if one should desire to convert the theory into
practice  that  will require R&D. A lot of it. I would hesitate to promise
results  in  less  than,  say,  a  matter of years. More likely decades. I
know,"  he  said,  leaning  forward  earnestly,  "that this is a matter of
personal  importance  to  you,  Robin.  It  also  may be a matter of grave
importance  to  all  of  us,  by  which I mean not only the human race but
machine intelligences as well." I had never seen him look so serious. "You
see,"  he said, "the destination of the artifact, Heechee Heaven, has also
been unequivocally identified. May I show you a picture?"
   That  was  rhetoric,  of course. I didn't reply, and he didn't wait. He
shrank  down  into a corner of the flatplate screen while the main picture
appeared.  It  was  a wash of white, shaped like a very amateurishly drawn
Turkish  crescent.  It  was  not  symmetrical. The crescent was off to one
side,  and  the  rest  of  the  picture  was black except for an irregular
sprinkle  of light that completed the horns of the crescent and protracted
them into a hazy ellipse.
   "It  is  too  bad  you  cannot  see this in color, Robin," said Albert,
squinting up from his corner of the screen. "It is blue rather than white.
Shall  I  tell  you what you are seeing? It is orbiting matter around some
very  large  object.  The  matter to your left, which is coming toward us,
travels fast enough to emit light. The matter to the right, which is going
away,  travels  more  slowly  relative to us. What we are seeing is matter
turning  into radiation as it is drawn into an extremely large black hole,
which is located at the center of our Galaxy."
   "I thought the speed of light was not relative!" I snapped.
   He  expanded to fill the screen again. "It is not, Robin, but the orbit
velocity  of  the  matter  which  produces it is. That picture is from the
Gateway file, and until just recently it was not located in space. But now
it  is  clear that it is at, indeed that in a sense it forms, the galactic
core."
   He  paused  while he lit his pipe, looking at me steadily. Well, that's
not quite true. There was the split-second lag, and even Albert's circuits
couldn't  do  anything  about it; if I moved his gaze lingered where I had
been for just long enough to be disconcerting. I didn't rush him, and when
he had finished puffing the pipe alight he said:
   "Robin,  I  am often unsure of what information to volunteer to you. If
you  ask me a question, that's different. About any subject you suggest, I
will  tell  you  as much of what I know as you will listen to. I will also
tell you what may be so, if you ask for a hypothesis; and I will volunteer
hypotheses  when,  according  to  the constraints written into my program,
that  seems  appropriate.  Gospozha  Lavorovna-Broadhead has written quite
complex  normative  instructions for this sort of decision-making, but, to
simplify,  they come down to an equation. Let V represent the 'value' of a
hypothesis.  Let  P  represent  its  probability  of  being true. If I can
complete  the sum of VP so that it equals at least one, then I should, and
do, volunteer the hypothesis. But, oh, Robin, how hard it is to assign the
correct  numerical  values  to P and V/In the specific case now at issue I
cannot be in any way sure of any value I can give its probability. But its
importance  is  very high. To all intents, it might as well be regarded as
infinite."
   By  then  he  had  me  sweating.  What  I  know for sure about Albert's
programming  is that the longer he takes to tell me something, the less he
thinks  I  am going to like hearing it. "Albert," I said, "get the hell on
with it."
   "Sure thing, Robin," he said, nodding, but unwilling to be rushed, "but
let   me   first  say  that  this  conjecture  satisfies  not  only  known
astrophysics,  although  on  a  rather  complex level, but also some other
questions, e. g., where Heechee Heaven was going when you turned it around
and  why  the  Heechee  themselves  disappeared. Before I can give you the
conjecture I must review four main points, as follows.
   "One.  The quantities Tiny Jim referred to as 'gosh numbers'. These are
numerical  quantities,  mostly  of the sort called 'dimensionless' because
they  are  the  same  in any units you measure. The mass ratio between the
electron  and  the  proton.  The  Dirac  number  to express the difference
between   electromagnetic   and   gravitational   force.   The   Eddington
fine-structure  constant.  And  so  forth.  We know these numbers to great
precision.  What  we  do  not  know  is  why  they  are what they are. Why
shouldn't the fine-structure constant be, say, 150 instead of 137-plus? If
we  understood  astrophysics-if we had a complete theory-we should be able
to  deduce these numbers from the theory. We do have a good theory, but we
can't  deduce  the  gosh  numbers  from it. Why? Is it possible," he asked
gravely, "that these numbers are in some way accidental?"
   He  paused,  puffing  on  his pipe, and then held up two fingers. "Two.
Mach's  Principle.  This  also  turns  Out to be a question, but perhaps a
somewhat  easier  one. My late predecessor," he said, twinkling a little-I
think  to  reassure  me  that  this was, indeed, easier to handle-"my late
predecessor gave us the theory of relativity, which is commonly understood
to  mean  that everything is relative to something else excepting only the
velocity  of  light.  When you are at home on Tappan Sea, Robin, you weigh
about eighty-five kilograms. That is to say, that is a measure of how much
you  and  the  planet  Earth  attract  each other; it is your weight, in a
sense,  relative  to  the Earth. We also have a quality called 'mass'. The
best measure of 'mass' is the force necessary to accelerate an object, say
you,  from  a state of rest. We usually consider 'mass' and 'weight' to be
about  the  same,  and  on  the surface of the Earth they are, but mass is
supposed  to  be  an  intrinsic  quality of matter, while weight is always
relative  to  something  else.  But,"  he  twinkled  again,  "let's  do  a
gedanke-experiment, Robin. Let's suppose that you're the only thing in the
universe.  There's  no  other  matter. What would you weigh? Nothing. What
would  your  mass  be?  Ah,  that's the question. Let's suppose you have a
little  rocket-belt  and  you  decided  to  accelerate  yourself. You then
measure  the  acceleration and compute the force to move you, and you come
out with your mass-do you? No, Robin, you do not. Because there is nothing
to  measure  movement  against! 'Moving', as a concept, is meaningless. So
mass itself-according to Mach's Principle-depends on some external system,
Mach  thought  it  might  be  what he called 'the entire background of the
universe',  to  be  meaningful.  And  according to Mach's Principle, as my
predecessor  and  others  extended  it,  so  do  all the other 'intrinsic'
characteristics  of  matter,  energy  and  space...  including  the  'gosh
numbers'. Robin, am I wearying you?"
   "You  bet  your  ass  you  are,  Albert," I snarled, "but go ahead!" He
smiled  and held up three fingers. "Three. What Henrietta called Point X'.
As  you remember, Henrietta failed her doctoral defense, but I have made a
study  of  her dissertation and I am able to say what she meant by it. For
the  first three seconds after the Big Bang, which is to say the beginning
of  the  universe  as  we  now know it, the entire universe was relatively
compact,   exceedingly   hot,   and   entirely   symmetrical.  Henrietta's
dissertation  quoted  at  length from an old Cambridge mathematician named
Tong  B.  Tang  and  others; the point they made was that after that time,
after  what  Henrietta called 'Point X', the symmetry became 'frozen'. All
the  constants  we  now  observe  became fixed at that point. All the gosh
numbers.  They  did not exist before 'Point X'. They have existed, and are
unchangeable, ever since.
   "So  at  Point  X in time, three seconds after the beginning of the Big
Bang,  something  happened.  It may have been some quite random event-some
turbulence in the exploding cloud.
   "Or it may have been deliberate."
   He stopped and smoked for a while, watching me. When I did not react he
sighed  and  held  up  four  fingers.  "Four,  Robin,  and  the last. I do
apologize   for  this  long  preamble.  The  final  point  in  Henrietta's
conjecture  had to do with 'missing mass'. There simply does not appear to
be  enough  mass  in  the  universe  to  fit the otherwise very successful
theories  of  the  Big  Bang.  Here  Henrietta made an immense leap in her
doctoral  dissertation.  She suggested that the Heechee had learned how to
create  mass  and destroy it-and in this, as we now know, she was correct,
although  it was only a guess on her part, and the seniors before whom she
conducted the defense of her dissertation were very quick to challenge it.
She then made a further leap. She suggested that the Heechee had, in fact,
caused  some mass to disappear. Not on a ship, although if she had guessed
that   she  would  have  been  correct.  On  a  very  large  scale.  On  a
universe-wide  scale,  in  fact. She conjectured that they had studied the
'gosh  numbers'  as we have, and come to certain conclusions which seem to
be  true. Here, Robin, it gets a little tricky, so pay close attention-but
we are almost home.
   "You see, these fundamental constants like the 'gosh numbers' determine
whether  or  not  life  can  exist  in the universe. Among very many other
things,  to  be sure. But if some of them were a little higher or a little
lower,  life  could  not exist. Do you see the logical consequence of that
statement?  Yes,  I think you do. It is a simple syllogism. Major premise,
the  'gosh  numbers'  are  not  fixed  by  natural law but could have been
different  if certain different events had taken place at 'Point X'. Minor
premise,  if they were different in certain directions, the universe would
be  less  hospitable  to  life.  Conclusion?  Ah,  that's the heart of it.
Conclusion:  If  they  were  different  in  certain  other directions, the
universe might be more hospitable to life."
   And  he  stopped  talking,  and  sat regarding me, reaching down into a
carpet slipper with one hand to scratch the sole of his foot.
   I  don't  know  which of us would have out-waited the other then. I was
trying  to digest a lot of very indigestible ideas, and old Albert, he was
determined  to  give  me time to digest them. Before either of those could
happen Paul Hall came trotting into the cubicle I had made my own yelling,
"Company! Hey, Robin! We've got visitors!"
   Well,  my  first  thought was Essie, of course; we'd talked; I knew she
was  on  her  way to the Kennedy launchport at least, even if not actually
waiting  there  for our orbit to settle down and get off. I stared at Paul
and  then  at  my  watch.  "There hasn't been time," I said, because there
hadn't.
   He was grinning. "Come and see the poor bastards," he chortled.
   And that's what they were, all right. Six of them, crammed into a Five.
Launched  from  Gateway  less than twenty-four hours after I had taken off
from  the  Moon,  carrying enough armament to wipe out a whole division of
Oldest  Ones,  ready  to  save  and profit. They had flown all the way out
after  Heechee  Heaven,  reversed  course  and  flown  all  the  way back.
Somewhere  en  route  we  must  have  passed them without knowing it. Poor
bastards!  But  they  were pretty decent guys, volunteers, taking off on a
mission  that  must  have  seemed  insecure  even  by Gateway standards. I
promised  them that they would get a share of the profits there was plenty
to  go  around. It wasn't their fault that we didn't need them, especially
considering how much we might have needed them if we had.
   So  we  made  them  welcome.  Janine  proudly  showed them around. Wan,
grinning  and  waving  his sleep-gun around, introduced them to the gentle
Old  Ones,  placid  in  the face of this new invasion. And by the time all
that  settled  down I realized that what I needed most was food and sleep,
and I took both.
   When  I woke up the first news I got was that Essie was on her way, but
not due for a while yet. I fidgeted around for a while, trying to remember
everything  Albert  had  said,  trying to make a mental picture of the Big
Bang  and that critical third-second instant when everything got frozen...
and  not  really  succeeding.  So  I  called  Albert again and said, "More
hospitable how?"
   "Ah,  Robin,"  he  said-nothing  ever  takes  him by surprise "that's a
question  I can't answer. We don't even know what all the Machian features
of  the universe are, but maybe... Maybe," he said, showing by the crinide
at  the  corners of his eyes that he was only guessing to humor me, "maybe
immortality?  Maybe  a  faster  synaptic speed of an organic brain, i. e.,
higher intelligence? Maybe only more planets that are suitable for life to
evolve?  Any  of the above. Or all of them. The important thing is that we
can theorize that such 'more hospitable' features could exist, and that it
should  be  possible  to  deduce  them  from  a  proper theoretical basis.
Henrietta  went  that  far.  Then  she  went a little further. Suppose the
Heechee  (she  suggested)  learned  a  little  more  astrophysics than we,
decided  what the right features would be-and set out to produce them! How
would they go about it? Well, one way would be to shrink the universe back
to  the  primordial  state,  and start over again with a new Big Bang! How
could  that  happen?  If  you  can create and destroy mass-easy! Juggle it
around.  Stop the expansion. Start it contracting again. Then somehow stay
outside of the point concentration, wait for it to explode again-and then,
from  outside  the  monobloc,  do  whatever  had  to be done to change the
fundamental  dimensionless  numbers of the universe, so that a new one was
born that would be-well, call it heaven."
   My eyes were popping. "Is that possible?"
   "To  you  or  me?  Now? No. Absolutely impossible. Wouldn't have a clue
where to begin."
   "Not to you or me, dummy! To the Heechee!"
   "Ah,  Robin,"  he  said  mournfully, "who can say? I don't see how, but
that  doesn't mean they wouldn't. I can't even guess how to manipulate the
universe  to  make it come out right. But that might not be necessary. You
have to assume they would have some way of existing, essentially, forever.
That's  necessary  even to do it once. And if forever, why, then you could
simply  make  random  changes  and  see  what  happened, until you got the
universe you wanted."
   He  took  time  to look at his cold pipe thoughtfully for a moment, and
then  put  it  in his sweatshirt pocket unlit. "That's as far as Henrietta
got  with her dissertation before they really fell in on her. Because then
she  said that the 'missing mass' might in fact prove that the Heechee had
really begun to interfere with the orderly development of the universe-she
said  they  were  removing  mass from the outer galaxies to make them fall
back more rapidly. Perhaps, she thought, they were also adding mass at the
center-if  there  is  one.  And  she  said that that might explain why the
Heechee had run away. They started the process, she guessed, and then went
off  to  hide somewhere, in some sort of timeless stasis, maybe like a big
black  hole,  until  it ran its course and they were ready to come out and
start things over again. That's when it really bit the fan! no wonder. Can
you  imagine  a  bunch of physics professors trying to cope with something
like  that?  They  said  she should try for a degree in Heechee psychology
instead of astrophysics. They said she had nothing to offer but conjecture
and  assumption-no  way to test the theory, just a guess. And they thought
it was a bad one. So they refused her dissertation, and she didn't get her
doctorate,  and so she went off to Gateway to be a prospector and wound up
where  she  is.  Dead.  And,"  he  said thoughtfully, pulling the pipe out
again,  "I do actually, Robin, think she was wrong, or at least sloppy. We
have  very  little  evidence  that  the  Heechee  had  any possible way of
affecting matters in any galaxy but our own, and she was talking about the
entire universe."
   "But you're not sure?"
   "Not a bit sure, Robin."
   I yelled, "Don't you at least have a fucking guess?"
   "Sure  thing,  Robin," he said gloomily, "but no more than that. Please
calm  yourself.  See,  the  scale  is wrong. The universe is too big, from
anything  we  know.  And the time is too short. The Heechee were here less
than  a  million years ago, and the expansion time of the universe to date
is something like twenty thousand times that long-recoil time could hardly
be  less.  It's  mathematically  bad odds that they would have picked that
particular time to show up."
   "Show up?"
   He  coughed. "I left out a step, Robin. There's another guess in there,
and  I'm  afraid  it's  my  own.  Suppose this is the universe the Heechee
built.  Suppose  they somehow evolved in a less hospitable one, but didn't
like  it,  and  caused  it to contract to make a new one, which is the one
we're  in.  That  doesn't fit badly, you know. They could have come Out to
look around, maybe found it just the way they wanted it. And now maybe the
ones who did the exploring have gone back to get the rest of them."
   "Albert! For Christ's sake!"
   He  said  gently,  "Robin, I wouldn't be saying these things if I could
help  it.  It's  only  a  conjecture.  I don't think you have any idea how
difficult  it  is for me to conjecture in this way, and I wouldn't be able
to  do it except for-well, here's the thing. There is one possible way for
something  to  survive a contraction and a new Big Bang, and that is to be
in  a place where time effectively stops. What kind of place is that? Why,
a  black  hole. A big one. One big enough so that it is not losing mass by
quantum  tunneling,  and  therefore can survive indefinitely. I know where
there's  a black hole like that, Robin. Mass, about fifteen thousand times
the  sun. Location, the center of our Galaxy." He glanced at his watch and
changed  expression. "If my calculations are close, Robin," he said, "your
wife should be arriving about now."
   "Einstein! The first damn thing she's going to do is rewrite you!"
   He  twinkled. "She already has, Robin," he pointed out, "and one of the
things she has taught me to do is to relieve tension, when appropriate, by
some comical or personally rewarding comment."
   "You're telling me I ought to be all tensed up?"
   "Well,  not  really, Robin," he said. "All this is quite theoretical-if
that much. And in terms of human life, perhaps a long way off. But perhaps
not.  That  black  hole  in  the  center  of  our  Galaxy  is at least one
possibility  for the place where the Heechee went, and, in terms of flight
time  in  a  Heechee  ship,  not  all that distant. And-I said that we had
determined  the  objective of the Oldest One's course? That was it, Robin.
It was heading straight for that black hole when you turned it around."
   I  was tired of being on Heechee Heaven weeks before Essie was. She was
having  the  time of her life with the machine intelligences. But I wasn't
tired  of  Essie,  so  I  stayed around until she at last admitted she had
everything  she could use on rag-flop tape, and forty-eight hours later we
were back at the Tappan Sea. And ninety minutes after that Wilma Liederman
was  there with all the tools of her trade, checking Essie out to the last
crumb  under her toenail. I wasn't worried. I could see that Essie was all
right,  and when Wilma agreed to stay on for a drink she admitted it. Then
she wanted to talk about the medical machine the Dead Men had used to keep
Wan  in  shape, all the time he was growing up, and before she left we had
set  up  a  million-dollar  research and development company-with Wilma as
president-to  see  what could be done with it, and that's how easy it was.
That's how easy it all is, when everything's going your way.
   Or  almost everything. There was still that sort of uneasy feeling when
I  thought  about the Heechee (if it was the Heechee) at that place at the
middle of the Galaxy (if that's where they were). That is very unsettling,
you  know. If Albert had suggested that the Heechee were going to come out
breathing  fire  and destruction (or just come out at all) within the next
year,  why,  sure, I could have worried the hell out of that. If he'd said
ten  years  or  even  a  hundred  I  could have worked up pensiveness as a
minimum, and probably full-scale fright. But when you come to astronomical
times-well,  hell!  How easy is it to worry about something that might not
happen for another billion years?
   And yet the notion just would not go away.
   It made me fidgety through dinner, after Wilma left, and when I brought
in the coffee Essie was curled in front of the fireplace, very trim in her
stretch  pants,  brushing her long hair, and she looked up at me and said,
"Will probably not happen, you know, Robin."
   "How  can  you  be  so sure? There are fifteen thousand Heechee targets
programmed into those ships. We've checked out, what? Fewer than a hundred
and  fifty  of  them, and one of those was Heechee Heaven. Law of averages
says  there are a hundred others like that somewhere, and who's to say one
of them isn't racing in to tell the Heechee what we're doing right now?"
   "Dear  Robin,"  she  said, turning to rub her nose against my knee in a
friendly  way,  "drink  your  coffee.  You  know nothing about statistical
mathematics and, anyway, who's to say they would mean to do us harm?"
   "They  wouldn't  have  to  mean to! I know what would happen, for God's
sake.  It's  obvious. It's what happened to the Tahitians, the Tasmanians,
the  Eskimos,  the  American  Indians-it's  what  has always happened, all
through  history.  A  people  that  comes up against a superior culture is
destroyed. Nobody means it. They just can't survive!"
   "Always, Robin?"
   "Oh, come on!"
   "No, mean it," she insisted. "Counterexample: What happened when Romans
discovered Gauls?"
   "They conquered the shit out of them, that's what!"
   "True.  No, nearly true. But then, a couple of hundred years later, who
conquered who, Robin? The barbarians conquered Rome, Robin."
   "I'm not talking about conquest! I'm talking about a racial inferiority
complex.  What  happens  to  any  race  that  lives in contact with a race
smarter than they are?"
   "Why,  different  things  under  different circumstances, Robin. Greeks
were  smarter  than  Romans,  Robin.  Romans never had a new idea in their
lives,  except to build with or kill people with. Romans didn't mind. They
even  took  Greeks  right into their homes, to teach them all about poetry
and  history  and  science. As slaves. Dear Robin," she said, putting down
her  coffee  cup  and  coming  up  to sit next to me, "wisdom is a kind of
resource. Tell me. When you want information, who do you ask?"
   I  thought it over for a minute. "Well, Albert, mostly," I admitted. "I
see  what  you're  saying,  but that's different. It's a computer's job to
know more and think faster than I do, in certain ways. That's what they're
for."
   "Exactly, dear Robin. As far as can tell, you have not been destroyed."
She  rubbed  her  cheek  against  mine  and then sat up straight. "You are
restless," she decided. "What would you like to do?"
   "What  are  my  options?"  I asked, reaching for her, but she shook her
head.
   "Don't  mean  that,  anyway not this minute. Want to watch PV? I have a
taped section from tonight's news, when you and Wilma were scheming, which
shows your good friends visiting their ancestral home."
   "The  Old  Ones  in Africa? Saw it this afternoon." Some local promoter
had  thought  it  would be good publicity to show Olduvai Gorge to the Old
Ones.  He  was  right.  The  Old Ones didn't like it a lot-hated the heat,
chirped  grumpily  at  each  other  about  the shots they had had to take,
didn't  care much for the air flight. But they were news. So were Paul and
Lurvy,  at  the  moment in Dortmund to arrange for a mausoleum for Lurvy's
father  as soon as his remains got back from the Food Factory. So was Wan,
getting  rich  on  PV  appearances  as The Boy from Heechee Heaven; so was
Janine,  having a marvelous time meeting her singing-star pen-pals at last
in  the  flesh.  So  was  I. We were all rich in money and fame. What they
would  make of it, after all, I could not guess. But what I wanted at last
became clear. "Get a sweater, Essie," I said. "Let's go for a walk."
   We  strolled down to the edge of the icy water, holding hands. "Why, is
snowing,"  Essie  announced, peering up at the bubble seven hundred meters
over  our  heads.  Usually  you  can't  see  it very clearly, but tonight,
edge-lighted  from the heaters that keep snow or ice from crumbling it, it
was  a  milky  dome,  broken  with  reflections from lights on the ground,
stretching from horizon to horizon.
   "Is it too cold for you?"
   "Perhaps  just here, near the water," she acknowledged. We climbed back
up  the  slope to the little palm grove by the fountain and sat on a bench
to watch the lights on Tappan Sea. It was comfortable there. The air never
gets  really  cold  under the bubble, but the water is the Hudson, running
naked  through  seven  or  eight  hundred  kilometers  before  it hits the
Palisades Dam, and every once in a while in winter chunks of sheet ice bob
under the barriers and wind up rubbing against our boat dock.
   "Essie," I said, "I've been thinking."
   "Know that, dear Robin," she said.
   "About the Oldest One. The machine."
   "Oh,  really?"  She  pulled her feet up to get them off the grass, damp
from  vagrant  drifts  from  the  fountain. "Very fine machine," she said.
"Quite  tame,  since  you pulled its teeth. Provided is not given external
effectors,  or  mobility,  or  access to control circuits of any kind-yes,
quite tame."
   "What  I want to know," I said, "is whether you could build one like it
for a human being."
   "Ah!"  she  said.  "Hum.  Yes, I think so. Would take some time and, of
course, large sums of money, but yes."
   "And you could store a human personality in it-after the person died, I
mean? As well as the Dead Men were stored?"
   "Quite  a  good  bit  better,  would  say.  Some  difficulties.  Mostly
biochemical,  not  my  department." She leaned back, looking upward at the
iridescent  bubble overhead and said consideringly: "When I write computer
program,  Robin, I speak to computer, in some language or other. I tell it
what  it  is  and  what  it is to do. Heechee programming is not the same.
Rests  on  direct  chemical  readout  of  brain.  Old  Ones  brain  is not
chemically quite identical with yours and mine, therefore Dead Man storage
is  very  far  from perfect. But Old Ones must be much farther from actual
Heechee, for whom process was first developed. Heechee man-aged to convert
process  without  any  apparent difficulty, therefore it can be done. Yes.
When  you  die, dear Robin, is possible to read your brain into a machine,
then  put  machine  in Heechee ship and fly it off to Sagittarius YY black
hole,  where  it  can say hello to Gelle-Klara Moynlin and explain episode
was  not your fault. For this you have my guarantee, only you must not die
for,  say,  five to eight years yet, to allow for necessary research. Will
you promise that for me, please."
   There  are  times when something catches me so by surprise that I don't
know  whether  to  cry,  or  get  angry, or laugh. In this case I stood up
quickly  and  stared down at my dear wife. And then I decided which to do,
and laughed. "Sometimes you startle me, Essie," I said.
   "But why, Robin?" She reached out and took my hand. "Suppose it was the
other  way  around,  hey?  Suppose  it was I who, many years ago, had been
through a very great personal tragedy. Exactly like yours, Robin. In which
someone  I  loved very much was harmed very severely, in such a way that I
could  never  see  that person or explain to her what happened. Do you not
think  I would want very much to at least speak to her again, in some way,
to tell her how I felt?"
   I  started  to  answer, but she stood up and put her finger on my lips.
"Was  rhetorical  question,  Robin.  We both know answer. If your Kiara is
still  alive,  she  will  want  very much to hear from you. This is beyond
doubt.  So," she said, "here is plan. You will die-not soon, I hope. Brain
will  go  into machine. Maybe will make extra copy for me, you permit? But
one  copy  flies  off  to black hole to look for Kiara, and finds her, and
says to her, 'Kiara, dear, what happened could not be helped, but wish you
to  know  I would have given life itself to save you.' And then, Robin, do
you  know  what Kiara will answer to this strange machine that appears out
of nowhere, perhaps only a few hours, her time, after incident itself?"
   I  didn't!  The  whole  point  was  that I didn't! But I didn't say so,
because  Essie didn't give me a chance. She said, "Then Kiara will answer,
'Why,  Robin  dear, I know you would. Because of all men ever born you are
the  one  whom  I  most  trust and respect and love.' I know she would say
this, Robin, because for her it would be true. As it is for me."

   At six o'clock on Robin Broadhead's tenth birthday, he had a party. The
woman  next  door  gave  him  socks,  a  board game and, as a sort of joke
present,  a  book  entitled  Everything  We  Know About the Heechee. Their
tunnels  had  only  recently  been discovered on Venus, and there was much
conjecture  about  the location of the place where the Heechee went, their
physical  appearance  and  their  purposes.  The joke part of the book was
that,  although  it  contained a hundred and sixty pages, all of them were
blank.
   At that same time on that same day-or at any rate, at its equivalent in
local  time,  which  was a great deal different-a person was taking a turn
under  the  stars  before  retiring for sleep. He was also anticipating an
anniversary  of  a  sort,  but  not  a party. He was a long way from Robin
Broadhead's   birthday   cake   and  candles,  more  than  forty  thousand
light-years; and a long way from the appearance of a human being. He had a
name,  but  out  of  respect  and  because of the work he had done, he was
usually   called   something  which  translates  as  "Captain".  Over  his
squared-off, finely furred head the stars were extremely bright and close.
When  he squinted up at them they hurt his eyes, in spite of the carefully
designed  glass-like shell that covered the place he lived and much of his
entire  planet.  Sullen  red  type-Ms. brighter than the Moon as seen from
Earth. Three golden Cs. A single hot, straw-colored F, painful to look at.
There  were no Os or Bs in his sky. There were also no faint stars at all.
Captain  could  identify  every  star  he saw, because there were only ten
thousand or so of them, nearly all cool and old ones, and even the dimmest
clearly   visible   to   the   naked   eye.   And  beyond  those  familiar
thousands-well,  he could not see beyond them, not from where he strolled,
but  he  knew  from  his  many  spaceflights  that  past  them all was the
turbulent,  almost  invisible, bluetinged shell that surrounded everything
he  and  his  people  owned  of the universe. It was a sky that would have
terrified  a human being. On this night, rehearsing in his mind what would
happen after he woke, it almost frightened the captain.
   Wide  of shoulder and hip, narrow front to back, the captain waddled as
he walked back to the belt that would bring him to his sleeping cocoon. It
was  a short trip. By his perceptions, only a few minutes. (Forty thousand
light-years  away  Robin Broadhead ate, slept, entered junior high, smoked
his  first  dope,  broke  a  bone in his wrist and had it knit, and put on
nearly  ten  kilos  before the captain got off the belt.) The captain said
good-night  to  his drowsy roommates (two of whom were, from time to time,
his  sexual  mates  as  well),  removed  the  necklaces  of  rank from his
shoulders,  unstrapped  the  life-support  and  communications  unit  from
between  his  wide  spaced legs, raised the lid of his cocoon, and slipped
inside. He turned over eight or ten times, covering himself with the soft,
spongy,  dense  sleeping  litter.  The  captain's  people  had  come  from
burrowers  rather than scamperers across a plain. They slept best as their
prehistoric  ancestors  had  slept.  When  the  captain  had  made himself
comfortable,  he reached one skinny hand up through the litter to pull the
top  of  the  cocoon closed. As he had done all of his life. As all of his
people  had  done  to  sleep well. As they had pulled the stars themselves
over  to cover them when they decided on the necessity for a very long and
worrisome sleep for all of them.
   The  joke of Robin's birthday book was a little spoiled, because it was
not  quite true. Some things were known about the Heechee. In some ways it
was  evident  that  they  were  very  unlike  human  beings,  but  in very
significant  ways-the  same!  In  curiosity. Only curiosity could have led
them  to  visit  so many strange places, so very far apart. In technology.
Heechee  science  was  not  the  same  as human, but it rested on the same
thermodynamics, the same laws of motion, the same stretch of the mind into
tininess  and  immensity, the nuclear particle and the universe itself. In
basic  chemistry  of  the  body. They breathed quite similar air. They ate
quite compatible food.
   What  was  central to what everyone knew about the Heechee or hoped, or
guessed-was that they were not really, when you came right down to it, all
that  different  from  human beings. A few thousand years ahead, maybe, in
civilization  and  science.  Maybe  not  even  that much. And in that what
everyone  guessed  (or hoped) was not wrong. Less than eight hundred years
passed  between  the  time  the  first  crude Heechee ship ventured to try
mass-cancellation  as  a  means  of  transport  and  the  time  when their
expeditions  had washed over most of the Galaxy. (In Olduvai Gorge, one of
Squint's  ancestors  puzzled  over  what  to do with the antelope bone his
mother had given him.)
   Eight hundred years-but what years!
   The  Heechee  exploded.  There were a billion of them. Then ten. Then a
hundred.   They  built  wheeled  and  rollered  vehicles  to  conquer  the
unfamiliar  surface  of  their  planet,  and  in  no more than a couple of
generations  were  off  into space on rockets; a few generations more, and
they  were  searching  the  planets  of nearby stars. They learned as they
went.  They  deployed  instruments  of  immense  size and great subtlety-a
neutron star for a gravity detector; an interferometer a light-year across
to  catch  and  measure  the  radio  waves  from galaxies whose red-shifts
approached  the  limit. The stars they visited and the galaxies they gazed
at were almost identical with those seen from Earth-astronomical time does
not trouble with a few hundred thousand years-but they saw more keenly and
understood more thoroughly.
   And  what  they  saw  and  understood  was,  at  the end, of surpassing
importance  to  them. For Albert's conjecture was true-nearly true-true in
every detail up to the point at which it became terribly false.
   As a result of their understanding, the Heechee did what seemed to them
best.
   They  recalled  all their far-flung expeditions, tidying behind them to
carry away everything that might be useful and could be moved.
   They   studied   some   million  stars  and  from  those  chose  a  few
thousand-some  to  cast  away,  because they were dangerous, some to bring
together.  It  was  not hard for them to do. The ability to cancel mass or
create meant that the forces of gravity were their servants. They selected
a  population  of  stable stars and long-lived, winnowed out the dangerous
ones,  and  brought them together, or near enough together to do what they
wanted off them. Black holes come in all sizes. A certain concentration of
matter  in  a certain volume of space and gravity wraps it closed. A black
hole  can  be  as  big as a galaxy, with its component stars hardly closer
than  in  our  own.  The  Heechee's plans were not so grand. They sought a
volume  of  space  a  few  dozen light-years across, filled it with stars,
entered it in their ships..
   And watched it close around them.
   From  that  time  on  the  Heechee were sealed off from the rest of the
universe, burrowed into their nest of stars. Time changed for them. Within
a black hole the flow of time slows-slows greatly. In the universe outside
more  than  three-quarters of a million years went by. Within, what seemed
to  Captain no more than a couple of decades. While they were stamping out
comfortable  nests  for  themselves  in their captured planets (long since
hewn into livability; they had had nearly a century in which to ), the
mild,  gentle  Pliocene epoch gave place to the storms and siroccos of the
Pleistocene.  The Gtinz ice crept down from the north, and retreated; then
the  Mindel,  the  Riss,  the  Worm.  The  Australopithecines  Captain had
kidnapped-to  help  along,  perhaps,  or  at least to study in the hope of
finding  hope  in  them-disappeared,  a failed experiment. Pithecanthropus
appeared,  and  was  gone;  Heidelberg man; the Neanderthalers. They crept
north  and  south  as  the ice directed, inventing tools, learning to bury
their  dead  and ring them with a circle of ibex horns, learning-beginning
to  learn-to speak. Land bridges sprouted between the continents, and were
washed  away. Over some of them scared, starving primitive tribes crept, a
wave  from  Asia  that  ultimately  flowed  down from Alaska to Cape Horn,
another  wave  that  stayed  where  it was, growing pads of fat around the
sinuses to shield its lungs against the stinging Arctic cold. The children
that  Captain fathered in the warrens of Venus, and kept with him while he
and  his  teams  surveyed the Earth and selected the most promising of its
primates  for  acquisition,  were  not  yet  fully grown when homo sapiens
learned the uses of fire and the wheel.
   And time passed.
   Each  beat  of  Captain's  twin  hearts took half a day in the universe
outside.  When  the Sumerians came down from their mountains to invent the
city  on  the  Persian  plateau, Captain was invited to participate in the
forthcoming  anniversary talk. As he prepared his guest list, Sargon built
an  empire.  While  he  instructed  his  machines with the program for the
meeting  small,  shivering  men  hewed  blue  stone  into  menhirs to form
Stonehenge.  Columbus  discovered  America  while Captain was fretful over
last-minute  cancellations and changes; he finished his evening meal while
the  first  human  rockets  tottered into orbit and decided to stretch his
legs  before  retiring as a human explorer, wild with surprise, broke into
the  first  Heechee  tunnel  on  Venus. He slept through the time of Robin
Broadhead's  growth,  puberty,  voyage to Gateway and voyages from it, the
discovery  of  the  Food Factory, the decision to explore it. He half woke
just  as  the Herter-Hall party was starting its four-year climb to orbit,
and  went  back  to  sleep-to  him  it  was the equivalent of less than an
hour-through  all  their wearying trip. Captain, after all that, was still
relatively  young.  He  had  the equivalent of a good ten years of active,
energetic  life  ahead  of him-or what the outside universe would see as a
quarter of a million years.
   The  purpose  of  the  anniversary  meeting  was  to review the Heechee
decision  to  retreat  to a black hole, and to contemplate what else might
need be done.
   It was a short meeting. All Heechee meetings were short, when they were
not   social   and   prolonged   purely   for   the  pleasure  they  gave;
machine-mediated  discussions  eliminated so much waste that the fate of a
world could be settled in minutes.
   Settled  many  things were. There was disquieting news. The F-type star
they  had,  somewhat  hesitantly,  included in their nest was showing some
signs which might indicate ultimate instability. Not soon. But it might be
well  to  consider  expelling it from their neighborhood. Some of the news
was  unhappy  but  expected.  The  most recent messenger ship from outside
revealed no trace of another spacefaring civilization coming to life. Some
of   it  was  expected  and  discounted  in  advance.  The  most  rigorous
theoretical  tests  had shown that the theory of oscillating universes was
correct;  and  that, indeed, the Mach's-Principle hypothesis (they did not
call  it  by  that name) which suggested that at an early point in the Big
Bang  the  dimensionless  numbers could be changed was valid. Finally, the
decision  to so situate themselves that time outside passed forty thousand
times  faster  than in their closed-up sphere was reopened for discussion.
Was  40,000  to  1 enough of a gain? It could be made more-as much more as
anyone could wish-simply by contracting the size of the hole, and perhaps,
at  the  same  time,  excluding  that troublesome F. Studies were ordered.
Congratulations were exchanged. The meeting was over.
   Captain,  his work for the time through, went once again to the surface
for a stroll.
   It  was  daylight  now. The transparent screens had darkened themselves
accordingly.  Even  so,  fifteen  or  twenty  bright  stars  shone  in the
blue-green  sky,  defying their sun. The captain yawned widely, thought of
breakfast,  decided  instead  to  relax.  He  sat  drowsily  in  the tawny
sunshine,   thinking   of   the   meeting  and  all  that  surrounded  it.
Heechee-human  similarities  were  great  enough  for  the captain to be a
little  disappointed,  on  the  personal  level,  that  those creatures he
himself  had  chosen  and  established  in  the  artifact  had not come to
anything  much.  Of  course, they might yet. The messenger rockets came in
only  every  year  or two, as they might have estimated it-more like every
fifty  thousand  years  by  the  standards  of human beings on Earth-and a
star-going  civilization  might  slip  between the cracks. Even if his own
project failed, there were still fifteen or sixteen others, all around the
Galaxy,   where  they  had  seen  at  least  hopeful  traces  of  some-day
intelligent   life.   But   most   were   not  even  as  advanced  as  the
Australopithecines.
   The  captain  sat  back  in  his forked bench, his life-support capsule
comfortably  resting in the angle beneath him, and squinted up at the sky.
If  they  came, he wondered, how would they know when they came? Would the
sky  split open? (Softly, he chided himself.) Would the thin Schwarzschild
shell  of their black hole simply evaporate, and a universe of stars shine
in? Not much more likely.
   But, if and when it happened, they would know. He was sure of that.
   The evidence was sure.
   It  was  not  the sort of evidence that only the Heechee could read. If
any  of  their experiments did attain civilization and science, they would
see  it too. The anisotropic nature of the 3K cosmic background radiation,
showing  an  inexplicable "drift". (Human beings had learned to read that,
if  not  to  understand  it.)  The  physical  theory  that  suggested such
fundamental  numbers  as  made  life  possible in the first place could be
changed.  (Human beings had learned to understand that, but not to be sure
it  was  true.)  The  subtle clues from distant galaxies that showed their
rate  of expansion was slowing down, had already for some of them begun to
reverse.  This was past the point of human capability for observation-yet;
but only, perhaps, by a matter of years or decades.
   When it became clear to the Heechee not only that the universe might be
destroyed  in order to rebuild it-but that Someone, somewhere was actually
doing  it-they  were appalled. Try as they would, they could get no fix on
Who was doing it, or where They might be. All that was sure was that, with
Them, the Heechee wanted no confrontation.
   So  Captain,  and all the other Heechee, wished their experiments great
wisdom  and prosperity. Out of charity and kindness. Out of curiosity. And
out  of  something  else. The experiments were more than experiments. They
were a sort of buffer state.
   If  any  of  the  experimental  races the Heechee had started truly had
flourished, they might by now be truly technological. They might by now be
finding  traces of the Heechee themselves, and how awed they might be, the
captain  thought, by those evidences the Heechee had left behind. He tried
to  smile  as  he  formed the equation in his mind: "Experiments" (are to)
"Heechee" (as) "Heechee" (are to)... "Them."
   Whoever "They" were.
   At  least, Captain thought grayly to himself, when They do come back to
reoccupy  this  universe  that  They  are  reshaping  to suit Their whims,
They'll have to get through those others before They get to us.
Книго
[X]